Angels
And Demons
Dan
Brown
For Blythe . . .
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
A debt of gratitude to Emily Bestler, Jason Kaufman, Ben
Kaplan, and everyone at Pocket Books for their belief in this project.
To my friend and agent, Jake Elwell, for his enthusiasm and
unflagging effort.
To the legendary George Wieser, for convincing me to write
novels.
To my dear friend Irv Sittler, for facilitating my audience
with the Pope, secreting me into parts of Vatican City few ever see, and making
my time in Rome unforgettable.
To one of the most ingenious and gifted artists alive, John
Langdon, who rose brilliantly to my impossible challenge and created the
ambigrams for this novel.
To Stan Planton, head librarian, Ohio University
Chillicothe, for being my number one source of information on countless topics.
To Sylvia Cavazzini, for her gracious tour through the
secret Passetto.
And to the best parents a kid could hope for, Dick and
Connie Brown . . . for everything.
Thanks also to CERN, Henry Beckett, Brett Trotter, the
Pontifical Academy of Science, Brookhaven Institute, FermiLab Library, Olga
Wieser, Don Ulsch of the National Security Institute, Caroline H. Thompson at
University of Wales, Kathryn Gerhard and Omar Al Kindi, John Pike and the
Federation of American Scientists, Heimlich Viserholder, Corinna and Davis
Hammond, Aizaz Ali, the Galileo Project of Rice University, Julie Lynn and
Charlie Ryan at Mockingbird Pictures, Gary Goldstein, Dave (Vilas) Arnold and Andra
Crawford, the GlobalFraternal Network, the Phillips Exeter Academy Library, Jim
Barrington, John Maier, the exceptionally keen eye of Margie Wachtel,
alt.masonic.members, Alan Wooley, the Library of Congress Vatican Codices
Exhibit, Lisa Callamaro and the Callamaro Agency, Jon A. Stowell, Musei
Vaticani, Aldo Baggia, Noah Alireza, Harriet Walker, Charles Terry, Micron
Electronics, Mindy Homan, Nancy andDick Curtin, Thomas D. Nadeau, NuvoMedia
andRocket E books, Frank and Sylvia Kennedy, Rome Board of Tourism, Maestro
GregoryBrown, Val Brown, Werner Brandes, Paul Krupin at Direct Contact, Paul
Stark, Tom King at Computalk Network, Sandy and Jerry Nolan, Web guru Linda
George, the National Academy of Art in Rome, physicist and fellow scribe Steve
Howe, Robert Weston, the Water Street Bookstore in Exeter, New Hampshire, and
the Vatican Observatory.
FACT
The worlds largest scientific research
facilitySwitzerlands Conseil Européen pour la Recherche
Nucléaire (CERN)recently succeeded in producing the first particles of
antimatter. Antimatter is identical to physical matter except that it is
composed of particles whose electric charges are opposite to those found in
normal matter.
Antimatter is the most powerful energy source known to man. It
releases energy with 100 percent efficiency (nuclear fission is 1.5 percent
efficient). Antimatter creates no pollution or radiation, and a droplet could
power New York City for a full day.
There is, however, one catch . . .
Antimatter is highly unstable. It ignites when it comes in
contact with absolutely anything . . . even air. A single gram of antimatter
contains the energy of a 20 kiloton nuclear bombthe size of the bomb dropped
on Hiroshima.
Until recently antimatter has been created only in very
small amounts (a few atoms at a time). But CERN has now broken ground on its
new Antiproton Deceleratoran advanced antimatter production facility that
promises to create antimatter in much larger quantities.
One question looms: Will this highly volatile substance save
the world, or will it be used to create the most deadly weapon ever made?
AUTHORS NOTE
References to all works of art, tombs, tunnels, and
architecture in Rome are entirely factual (as are their exact locations). They
can still be seen today.
The brotherhood of the Illuminati is also factual.
PROLOGUE
Physicist Leonardo Vetra smelled burning flesh, and he knew
it was his own. He stared up in terror at the dark figure looming over him. What
do you want!
La chiave, the raspy voice replied. The password.
But . . . I dont
The intruder pressed down again, grinding the white hot
object deeper into Vetras chest. There was the hiss of broiling flesh.
Vetra cried out in agony. There is no password! He felt
himself drifting toward unconsciousness.
The figure glared. Ne avevo paura. I was afraid of that.
Vetra fought to keep his senses, but the darkness was
closing in. His only solace was in knowing his attacker would never obtain what
he had come for. A moment later, however, the figure produced a blade and
brought it to Vetras face. The blade hovered. Carefully. Surgically.
For the love of God! Vetra screamed. But it was too late.
1
High atop the steps of the Pyramid of Giza a young woman
laughed and called down to him. Robert, hurry up! I knew I should have married
a younger man! Her smile was magic.
He struggled to keep up, but his legs felt like stone. Wait, he
begged. Please . . .
As he climbed,
his vision began to blur. There was a thundering in his ears. I must reach her!
But when he looked up again, the woman had disappeared. In her place stood an
old man with rotting teeth. The man stared down, curling his lips into a lonely
grimace. Then he let out a scream of anguish that resounded across the desert.
Robert Langdon
awoke with a start from his nightmare. The phone beside his bed was ringing.
Dazed, he picked up the receiver.
Hello?
Im looking for
Robert Langdon, a mans voice said.
Langdon sat up in
his empty bed and tried to clear his mind. This . . . is Robert Langdon. He
squinted at his digital clock. It was 5:18 A.M.
I must see you
immediately.
Who is this?
My name is
Maximilian Kohler. Im a discrete particle physicist.
A what ?
Langdon could barely focus. Are you sure youve got the right Langdon?
Youre a
professor of religious iconology at Harvard University. Youve written three
books on symbology and
Do you know what
time it is?
I apologize. I
have something you need to see. I cant discuss it on the phone.
A knowing groan
escaped Langdons lips. This had happened before. One of the perils of writing
books about religious symbology was the calls from religious zealots who wanted
him to confirm their latest sign from God. Last month a stripper from Oklahoma
had promised Langdon the best sex of his life if he would fly down and verify
the authenticity of a cruciform that had magically appeared on her bed sheets.
The Shroud of Tulsa, Langdon had called it.
How did you get
my number? Langdon tried to be polite, despite the hour.
On the Worldwide
Web. The site for your book.
Langdon frowned.
He was damn sure his books site did not include his home phone number. The man
was obviously lying.
I need to see
you, the caller insisted. Ill pay you well.
Now Langdon was
getting mad. Im sorry, but I really
If you leave
immediately, you can be here by
Im not going
anywhere! Its five oclock in the morning! Langdon hung up and collapsed back
in bed. He closed his eyes and tried to fall back asleep. It was no use. The
dream was emblazoned in his mind. Reluctantly, he put on his robe and went
downstairs.
Robert Langdon
wandered barefoot through his deserted Massachusetts Victorian home and nursed
his ritual insomnia remedya mug of steaming Nestlés Quik. The April
moon filtered through the bay windows and played on the oriental carpets.
Langdons colleagues often joked that his place looked more like an
anthropology museum than a home. His shelves were packed with religious
artifacts from around the worldan ekuaba from Ghana, a gold cross from Spain,
a cycladic idol from the Aegean, and even a rare woven boccus from Borneo, a
young warriors symbol of perpetual youth.
As Langdon sat on
his brass Maharishis chest and savored the warmth of the chocolate, the bay
window caught his reflection. The image was distorted and pale . . . like a
ghost. An aging ghost, he thought, cruelly reminded that his youthful spirit
was living in a mortal shell.
Although not
overly handsome in a classical sense, the forty five year old Langdon had what
his female colleagues referred to as an erudite appealwisps of gray in his
thick brown hair, probing blue eyes, an arrestingly deep voice, and the strong,
carefree smile of a collegiate athlete. A varsity diver in prep school and
college, Langdon still had the body of a swimmer, a toned, six foot physique
that he vigilantly maintained with fifty laps a day in the university pool.
Langdons friends
had always viewed him as a bit of an enigmaa man caught between centuries. On
weekends he could be seen lounging on the quad in blue jeans, discussing
computer graphics or religious history with students; other times he could be
spotted in his Harris tweed and paisley vest, photographed in the pages of
upscale art magazines at museum openings where he had been asked to lecture.
Although a tough
teacher and strict disciplinarian, Langdon was the first to embrace what he
hailed as the lost art of good clean fun. He relished recreation with an
infectious fanaticism that had earned him a fraternal acceptance among his students.
His campus nicknameThe Dolphinwas a reference both to his affable nature
and his legendary ability to dive into a pool and outmaneuver the entire
opposing squad in a water polo match.
As Langdon sat
alone, absently gazing into the darkness, the silence of his home was shattered
again, this time by the ring of his fax machine. Too exhausted to be annoyed,
Langdon forced a tired chuckle.
Gods people, he
thought. Two thousand years of waiting for their Messiah, and theyre still
persistent as hell.
Wearily, he
returned his empty mug to the kitchen and walked slowly to his oak paneled
study. The incoming fax lay in the tray. Sighing, he scooped up the paper and
looked at it.
Instantly, a wave
of nausea hit him.
The image on the
page was that of a human corpse. The body had been stripped naked, and its head
had been twisted, facing completely backward. On the victims chest was a
terrible burn. The man had been branded . . . imprinted with a single word. It
was a word Langdon knew well. Very well. He stared at the ornate lettering in
disbelief.
Illuminati, he
stammered, his heart pounding. It cant be . . .
In slow motion,
afraid of what he was about to witness, Langdon rotated the fax 180 degrees. He
looked at the word upside down.
Instantly, the
breath went out of him. It was like he had been hit by a truck. Barely able to
believe his eyes, he rotated the fax again, reading the brand right side up and
then upside down.
Illuminati, he
whispered.
Stunned, Langdon
collapsed in a chair. He sat a moment in utter bewilderment. Gradually, his
eyes were drawn to the blinking red light on his fax machine. Whoever had sent
this fax was still on the line . . . waiting to talk. Langdon gazed at the
blinking light a long time.
Then, trembling, he
picked up the receiver.
2
Do I have your
attention now? the mans voice said when Langdon finally answered the line.
Yes, sir, you
damn well do. You want to explain yourself?
I tried to tell
you before. The voice was rigid, mechanical. Im a physicist. I run a
research facility. Weve had a murder. You saw the body.
How did you find
me? Langdon could barely focus. His mind was racing from the image on the fax.
I already told
you. The Worldwide Web. The site for your book, The Art of the Illuminati.
Langdon tried to
gather his thoughts. His book was virtually unknown in mainstream literary
circles, but it had developed quite a following on line. Nonetheless, the
callers claim still made no sense. That page has no contact information,
Langdon challenged. Im certain of it.
I have people
here at the lab very adept at extracting user information from the Web.
Langdon was
skeptical. Sounds like your lab knows a lot about the Web.
We should, the
man fired back. We invented it.
Something in the
mans voice told Langdon he was not joking.
I must see you,
the caller insisted. This is not a matter we can discuss on the phone. My lab
is only an hours flight from Boston.
Langdon stood in
the dim light of his study and analyzed the fax in his hand. The image was
overpowering, possibly representing the epigraphical find of the century, a
decade of his research confirmed in a single symbol.
Its urgent,
the voice pressured.
Langdons eyes
were locked on the brand. Illuminati, he read over and over. His work had
always been based on the symbolic equivalent of fossilsancient documents and
historical hearsaybut this image before him was today. Present tense. He felt
like a paleontologist coming face to face with a living dinosaur.
Ive taken the
liberty of sending a plane for you, the voice said. It will be in Boston in
twenty minutes.
Langdon felt his
mouth go dry. An hours flight . . .
Please forgive
my presumption, the voice said. I need you here.
Langdon looked
again at the faxan ancient myth confirmed in black and white. The implications
were frightening. He gazed absently through the bay window. The first hint of
dawn was sifting through the birch trees in his backyard, but the view looked
somehow different this morning. As an odd combination of fear and exhilaration
settled over him, Langdon knew he had no choice.
You win, he
said. Tell me where to meet the plane.
3
Thousands of
miles away, two men were meeting. The chamber was dark. Medieval. Stone.
Benvenuto, the
man in charge said. He was seated in the shadows, out of sight. Were you
successful?
Si, the dark
figure replied. Perfectamente. His words were as hard as the rock walls.
And there will
be no doubt who is responsible?
None.
Superb. Do you
have what I asked for?
The killers eyes
glistened, black like oil. He produced a heavy electronic device and set it on
the table.
The man in the
shadows seemed pleased. You have done well.
Serving the
brotherhood is an honor, the killer said.
Phase two begins
shortly. Get some rest. Tonight we change the world.
4
Robert Langdons
Saab 900S tore out of the Callahan Tunnel and emerged on the east side of
Boston Harbor near the entrance to Logan Airport. Checking his directions
Langdon found Aviation Road and turned left past the old Eastern Airlines
Building. Three hundred yards down the access road a hangar loomed in the
darkness. A large number 4 was painted on it. He pulled into the parking lot
and got out of his car.
A round faced man
in a blue flight suit emerged from behind the building. Robert Langdon? he
called. The mans voice was friendly. He had an accent Langdon couldnt place.
Thats me,
Langdon said, locking his car.
Perfect timing,
the man said. Ive just landed. Follow me, please.
As they circled
the building, Langdon felt tense. He was not accustomed to cryptic phone calls
and secret rendezvous with strangers. Not knowing what to expect he had donned
his usual classroom attirea pair of chinos, a turtleneck, and a Harris tweed
suit jacket. As they walked, he thought about the fax in his jacket pocket,
still unable to believe the image it depicted.
The pilot seemed
to sense Langdons anxiety. Flyings not a problem for you, is it, sir?
Not at all,
Langdon replied. Branded corpses are a problem for me. Flying I can handle.
The man led
Langdon the length of the hangar. They rounded the corner onto the runway.
Langdon stopped
dead in his tracks and gaped at the aircraft parked on the tarmac. Were
riding in that ?
The man grinned.
Like it?
Langdon stared a
long moment. Like it? What the hell is it?
The craft before
them was enormous. It was vaguely reminiscent of the space shuttle except that
the top had been shaved off, leaving it perfectly flat. Parked there on the
runway, it resembled a colossal wedge. Langdons first impression was that he
must be dreaming. The vehicle looked as airworthy as a Buick. The wings were
practically nonexistentjust two stubby fins on the rear of the fuselage. A
pair of dorsal guiders rose out of the aft section. The rest of the plane was
hullabout 200 feet from front to backno windows, nothing but hull.
Two hundred
fifty thousand kilos fully fueled, the pilot offered, like a father bragging
about his newborn. Runs on slush hydrogen. The shells a titanium matrix with
silicon carbide fibers. She packs a 20:1 thrust/weight ratio; most jets run at
7:1. The director must be in one helluva a hurry to see you. He doesnt usually
send the big boy.
This thing flies
? Langdon said.
The pilot smiled.
Oh yeah. He led Langdon across the tarmac toward the plane. Looks kind of
startling, I know, but you better get used to it. In five years, all youll see
are these babiesHSCTsHigh Speed Civil Transports. Our labs one of the first
to own one.
Must be one hell
of a lab, Langdon thought.
This ones a
prototype of the Boeing X 33, the pilot continued, but there are dozens of
othersthe National Aero Space Plane, the Russians have Scramjet, the Brits
have HOTOL. The futures here, its just taking some time to get to the public
sector. You can kiss conventional jets good bye.
Langdon looked up
warily at the craft. I think Id prefer a conventional jet.
The pilot
motioned up the gangplank. This way, please, Mr. Langdon. Watch your step.
Minutes later,
Langdon was seated inside the empty cabin. The pilot buckled him into the front
row and disappeared toward the front of the aircraft.
The cabin itself
looked surprisingly like a wide body commercial airliner. The only exception
was that it had no windows, which made Langdon uneasy. He had been haunted his
whole life by a mild case of claustrophobiathe vestige of a childhood incident
he had never quite overcome.
Langdons
aversion to closed spaces was by no means debilitating, but it had always
frustrated him. It manifested itself in subtle ways. He avoided enclosed sports
like racquetball or squash, and he had gladly paid a small fortune for his
airy, high ceilinged Victorian home even though economical faculty housing was
readily available. Langdon had often suspected his attraction to the art world
as a young boy sprang from his love of museums wide open spaces.
The engines
roared to life beneath him, sending a deep shudder through the hull. Langdon
swallowed hard and waited. He felt the plane start taxiing. Piped in country
music began playing quietly overhead.
A phone on the
wall beside him beeped twice. Langdon lifted the receiver.
Hello?
Comfortable, Mr.
Langdon?
Not at all.
Just relax.
Well be there in an hour.
And where
exactly is there ? Langdon asked, realizing he had no idea where he was
headed.
Geneva, the
pilot replied, revving the engines. The labs in Geneva.
Geneva, Langdon
repeated, feeling a little better. Upstate New York. Ive actually got family
near Seneca Lake. I wasnt aware Geneva had a physics lab.
The pilot
laughed. Not Geneva, New York, Mr. Langdon. Geneva, Switzerland.
The word took a
long moment to register. Switzerland? Langdon felt his pulse surge. I
thought you said the lab was only an hour away!
It is, Mr.
Langdon. The pilot chuckled. This plane goes Mach fifteen.
5
On a busy
European street, the killer serpentined through a crowd. He was a powerful man.
Dark and potent. Deceptively agile. His muscles still felt hard from the thrill
of his meeting.
It went well, he
told himself. Although his employer had never revealed his face, the killer
felt honored to be in his presence. Had it really been only fifteen days since
his employer had first made contact? The killer still remembered every word of
that call . . .
My name is
Janus, the caller had said. We are kinsmen of a sort. We share an enemy. I
hear your skills are for hire.
It depends whom
you represent, the killer replied.
The caller told
him.
Is this your
idea of a joke?
You have heard
our name, I see, the caller replied.
Of course. The
brotherhood is legendary.
And yet you find
yourself doubting I am genuine.
Everyone knows
the brothers have faded to dust.
A devious ploy.
The most dangerous enemy is that which no one fears.
The killer was skeptical.
The brotherhood endures?
Deeper
underground than ever before. Our roots infiltrate everything you see . . .
even the sacred fortress of our most sworn enemy.
Impossible. They
are invulnerable.
Our reach is
far.
No ones reach
is that far.
Very soon, you
will believe. An irrefutable demonstration of the brotherhoods power has
already transpired. A single act of treachery and proof.
What have you
done?
The caller told
him.
The killers eyes
went wide. An impossible task.
The next day,
newspapers around the globe carried the same headline. The killer became a
believer.
Now, fifteen days
later, the killers faith had solidified beyond the shadow of a doubt. The
brotherhood endures, he thought. Tonight they will surface to reveal their power.
As he made his
way through the streets, his black eyes gleamed with foreboding. One of the
most covert and feared fraternities ever to walk the earth had called on him
for service. They have chosen wisely, he thought. His reputation for secrecy
was exceeded only by that of his deadliness.
So far, he had
served them nobly. He had made his kill and delivered the item to Janus as
requested. Now, it was up to Janus to use his power to ensure the items
placement.
The placement . .
.
The killer
wondered how Janus could possibly handle such a staggering task. The man
obviously had connections on the inside. The brotherhoods dominion seemed
limitless.
Janus, the killer
thought. A code name, obviously. Was it a reference, he wondered, to the Roman
two faced god . . . or to the moon of Saturn? Not that it made any difference.
Janus wielded unfathomable power. He had proven that beyond a doubt.
As the killer
walked, he imagined his ancestors smiling down on him. Today he was fighting
their battle, he was fighting the same enemy they had fought for ages, as far
back as the eleventh century . . . when the enemys crusading armies had first
pillaged his land, raping and killing his people, declaring them unclean,
defiling their temples and gods.
His ancestors had
formed a small but deadly army to defend themselves. The army became famous
across the land as protectorsskilled executioners who wandered the countryside
slaughtering any of the enemy they could find. They were renowned not only for
their brutal killings, but also for celebrating their slayings by plunging
themselves into drug induced stupors. Their drug of choice was a potent
intoxicant they called hashish.
As their
notoriety spread, these lethal men became known by a single wordHassassin
literally the followers of hashish. The name Hassassin became synonymous
with death in almost every language on earth. The word was still used today,
even in modern English . . . but like the craft of killing, the word had
evolved.
It was now
pronounced assassin.
6
Sixty four
minutes had passed when an incredulous and slightly air sick Robert Langdon
stepped down the gangplank onto the sun drenched runway. A crisp breeze rustled
the lapels of his tweed jacket. The open space felt wonderful. He squinted out
at the lush green valley rising to snowcapped peaks all around them.
Im dreaming, he
told himself. Any minute now Ill be waking up.
Welcome to
Switzerland, the pilot said, yelling over the roar of the X 33s misted fuel
HEDM engines winding down behind them.
Langdon checked
his watch. It read 7:07 A.M.
You just crossed
six time zones, the pilot offered. Its a little past 1 P.M. here.
Langdon reset his
watch.
How do you
feel?
He rubbed his
stomach. Like Ive been eating Styrofoam.
The pilot nodded.
Altitude sickness. We were at sixty thousand feet. Youre thirty percent
lighter up there. Lucky we only did a puddle jump. If wed gone to Tokyo Id
have taken her all the way upa hundred miles. Now thatll get your insides
rolling.
Langdon gave a
wan nod and counted himself lucky. All things considered, the flight had been
remarkably ordinary. Aside from a bone crushing acceleration during take off,
the planes motion had been fairly typicaloccasional minor turbulence, a few
pressure changes as theyd climbed, but nothing at all to suggest they had been
hurtling through space at the mind numbing speed of 11,000 miles per hour.
A handful of
technicians scurried onto the runway to tend to the X 33. The pilot escorted
Langdon to a black Peugeot sedan in a parking area beside the control tower.
Moments later they were speeding down a paved road that stretched out across
the valley floor. A faint cluster of buildings rose in the distance. Outside,
the grassy plains tore by in a blur.
Langdon watched
in disbelief as the pilot pushed the speedometer up around 170 kilometers an
hourover 100 miles per hour. What is it with this guy and speed? he wondered.
Five kilometers
to the lab, the pilot said. Ill have you there in two minutes.
Langdon searched
in vain for a seat belt. Why not make it three and get us there alive?
The car raced on.
Do you like
Reba? the pilot asked, jamming a cassette into the tape deck.
A woman started
singing.
Its just the
fear of being alone . . .
No fear here,
Langdon thought absently. His female colleagues often ribbed him that his
collection of museum quality artifacts was nothing more than a transparent
attempt to fill an empty home, a home they insisted would benefit greatly from
the presence of a woman. Langdon always laughed it off, reminding them he
already had three loves in his lifesymbology, water polo, and bachelorhoodthe
latter being a freedom that enabled him to travel the world, sleep as late as
he wanted, and enjoy quiet nights at home with a brandy and a good book.
Were like a
small city, the pilot said, pulling Langdon from his daydream. Not just labs.
Weve got supermarkets, a hospital, even a cinema.
Langdon nodded
blankly and looked out at the sprawling expanse of buildings rising before
them.
In fact, the pilot
added, we possess the largest machine on earth.
Really? Langdon
scanned the countryside.
You wont see it
out there, sir. The pilot smiled. Its buried six stories below the earth.
Langdon didnt
have time to ask. Without warning the pilot jammed on the brakes. The car
skidded to a stop outside a reinforced sentry booth.
Langdon read the
sign before them.
Securite. Arretez
He suddenly felt
a wave of panic, realizing where he was. My God! I didnt bring my passport!
Passports are
unnecessary, the driver assured. We have a standing arrangement with the
Swiss government.
Langdon watched
dumbfounded as his driver gave the guard an ID. The sentry ran it through an
electronic authentication device. The machine flashed green.
Passenger name?
Robert Langdon,
the driver replied.
Guest of?
The director.
The sentry arched
his eyebrows. He turned and checked a computer printout, verifying it against
the data on his computer screen. Then he returned to the window. Enjoy your
stay, Mr. Langdon.
The car shot off
again, accelerating another 200 yards around a sweeping rotary that led to the
facilitys main entrance. Looming before them was a rectangular, ultramodern
structure of glass and steel. Langdon was amazed by the buildings striking
transparent design. He had always had a fond love of architecture.
The Glass
Cathedral, the escort offered.
A church?
Hell, no. A
church is the one thing we dont have. Physics is the religion around here. Use
the Lords name in vain all you like, he laughed, just dont slander any
quarks or mesons.
Langdon sat
bewildered as the driver swung the car around and brought it to a stop in front
of the glass building. Quarks and mesons? No border control? Mach 15 jets? Who
the hell are these guys? The engraved granite slab in front of the building
bore the answer:
CERN
Conseil
Européen pour la Recherche Nucléaire
Nuclear
Research? Langdon asked, fairly certain his translation was correct.
The driver did
not answer. He was leaning forward, busily adjusting the cars cassette player.
This is your stop. The director will meet you at this entrance.
Langdon noted a
man in a wheelchair exiting the building. He looked to be in his early sixties.
Gaunt and totally bald with a sternly set jaw, he wore a white lab coat and
dress shoes propped firmly on the wheelchairs footrest. Even at a distance his
eyes looked lifelesslike two gray stones.
Is that him?
Langdon asked.
The driver looked
up. Well, Ill be. He turned and gave Langdon an ominous smile. Speak of the
devil.
Uncertain what to
expect, Langdon stepped from the vehicle.
The man in the
wheelchair accelerated toward Langdon and offered a clammy hand. Mr. Langdon?
We spoke on the phone. My name is Maximilian Kohler.
7
Maximilian
Kohler, director general of CERN, was known behind his back as König
King. It was a title more of fear than reverence for the figure who ruled over
his dominion from a wheelchair throne. Although few knew him personally, the
horrific story of how he had been crippled was lore at CERN, and there were few
there who blamed him for his bitterness . . . nor for his sworn dedication to
pure science.
Langdon had only
been in Kohlers presence a few moments and already sensed the director was a
man who kept his distance. Langdon found himself practically jogging to keep up
with Kohlers electric wheelchair as it sped silently toward the main entrance.
The wheelchair was like none Langdon had ever seenequipped with a bank of
electronics including a multiline phone, a paging system, computer screen, even
a small, detachable video camera. King Kohlers mobile command center.
Langdon followed
through a mechanical door into CERNs voluminous main lobby.
The Glass
Cathedral, Langdon mused, gazing upward toward heaven.
Overhead, the
bluish glass roof shimmered in the afternoon sun, casting rays of geometric
patterns in the air and giving the room a sense of grandeur. Angular shadows
fell like veins across the white tiled walls and down to the marble floors. The
air smelled clean, sterile. A handful of scientists moved briskly about, their
footsteps echoing in the resonant space.
This way,
please, Mr. Langdon. His voice sounded almost computerized. His accent was
rigid and precise, like his stern features. Kohler coughed and wiped his mouth
on a white handkerchief as he fixed his dead gray eyes on Langdon. Please
hurry. His wheelchair seemed to leap across the tiled floor.
Langdon followed
past what seemed to be countless hallways branching off the main atrium. Every
hallway was alive with activity. The scientists who saw Kohler seemed to stare
in surprise, eyeing Langdon as if wondering who he must be to command such
company.
Im embarrassed
to admit, Langdon ventured, trying to make conversation, that Ive never
heard of CERN.
Not surprising,
Kohler replied, his clipped response sounding harshly efficient. Most
Americans do not see Europe as the world leader in scientific research. They
see us as nothing but a quaint shopping districtan odd perception if you
consider the nationalities of men like Einstein, Galileo, and Newton.
Langdon was
unsure how to respond. He pulled the fax from his pocket. This man in the
photograph, can you
Kohler cut him
off with a wave of his hand. Please. Not here. I am taking you to him now. He
held out his hand. Perhaps I should take that.
Langdon handed
over the fax and fell silently into step.
Kohler took a
sharp left and entered a wide hallway adorned with awards and commendations. A
particularly large plaque dominated the entry. Langdon slowed to read the
engraved bronze as they passed.
ARS ELECTRONICA
AWARD
For Cultural
Innovation in the Digital Age
Awarded to Tim
Berners Lee and CERN
for the invention
of the
WORLDWIDE WEB
Well Ill be
damned, Langdon thought, reading the text. This guy wasnt kidding. Langdon had
always thought of the Web as an American invention. Then again, his knowledge
was limited to the site for his own book and the occasional on line exploration
of the Louvre or El Prado on his old Macintosh.
The Web, Kohler
said, coughing again and wiping his mouth, began here as a network of in house
computer sites. It enabled scientists from different departments to share daily
findings with one another. Of course, the entire world is under the impression
the Web is U.S. technology.
Langdon followed
down the hall. Why not set the record straight?
Kohler shrugged,
apparently disinterested. A petty misconception over a petty technology. CERN
is far greater than a global connection of computers. Our scientists produce
miracles almost daily.
Langdon gave
Kohler a questioning look. Miracles? The word miracle was certainly not
part of the vocabulary around Harvards Fairchild Science Building. Miracles
were left for the School of Divinity.
You sound
skeptical, Kohler said. I thought you were a religious symbologist. Do you
not believe in miracles?
Im undecided on
miracles, Langdon said. Particularly those that take place in science labs.
Perhaps miracle
is the wrong word. I was simply trying to speak your language.
My language?
Langdon was suddenly uncomfortable. Not to disappoint you, sir, but I study
religious symbology Im an academic, not a priest.
Kohler slowed
suddenly and turned, his gaze softening a bit. Of course. How simple of me.
One does not need to have cancer to analyze its symptoms.
Langdon had never
heard it put quite that way.
As they moved
down the hallway, Kohler gave an accepting nod. I suspect you and I will
understand each other perfectly, Mr. Langdon.
Somehow Langdon
doubted it.
As the pair
hurried on, Langdon began to sense a deep rumbling up ahead. The noise got more
and more pronounced with every step, reverberating through the walls. It seemed
to be coming from the end of the hallway in front of them.
Whats that?
Langdon finally asked, having to yell. He felt like they were approaching an
active volcano.
Free Fall Tube,
Kohler replied, his hollow voice cutting the air effortlessly. He offered no
other explanation.
Langdon didnt
ask. He was exhausted, and Maximilian Kohler seemed disinterested in winning
any hospitality awards. Langdon reminded himself why he was here. Illuminati.
He assumed somewhere in this colossal facility was a body . . . a body branded
with a symbol he had just flown 3,000 miles to see.
As they
approached the end of the hall, the rumble became almost deafening, vibrating
up through Langdons soles. They rounded the bend, and a viewing gallery
appeared on the right. Four thick paned portals were embedded in a curved wall,
like windows in a submarine. Langdon stopped and looked through one of the
holes.
Professor Robert
Langdon had seen some strange things in his life, but this was the strangest.
He blinked a few times, wondering if he was hallucinating. He was staring into
an enormous circular chamber. Inside the chamber, floating as though
weightless, were people. Three of them. One waved and did a somersault in
midair.
My God, he
thought. Im in the land of Oz.
The floor of the
room was a mesh grid, like a giant sheet of chicken wire. Visible beneath the
grid was the metallic blur of a huge propeller.
Free fall tube,
Kohler said, stopping to wait for him. Indoor skydiving. For stress relief.
Its a vertical wind tunnel.
Langdon looked on
in amazement. One of the free fallers, an obese woman, maneuvered toward the
window. She was being buffeted by the air currents but grinned and flashed
Langdon the thumbs up sign. Langdon smiled weakly and returned the gesture,
wondering if she knew it was the ancient phallic symbol for masculine virility.
The heavyset
woman, Langdon noticed, was the only one wearing what appeared to be a
miniature parachute. The swathe of fabric billowed over her like a toy. Whats
her little chute for? Langdon asked Kohler. It cant be more than a yard in
diameter.
Friction,
Kohler said. Decreases her aerodynamics so the fan can lift her. He started
down the the corridor again. One square yard of drag will slow a falling body
almost twenty percent.
Langdon nodded
blankly.
He never
suspected that later that night, in a country hundreds of miles away, the
information would save his life.
8
When Kohler and
Langdon emerged from the rear of CERNs main complex into the stark Swiss
sunlight, Langdon felt as if hed been transported home. The scene before him
looked like an Ivy League campus.
A grassy slope
cascaded downward onto an expansive lowlands where clusters of sugar maples
dotted quadrangles bordered by brick dormitories and footpaths. Scholarly
looking individuals with stacks of books hustled in and out of buildings. As if
to accentuate the collegiate atmosphere, two longhaired hippies hurled a
Frisbee back and forth while enjoying Mahlers Fourth Symphony blaring from a
dorm window.
These are our
residential dorms, Kohler explained as he accelerated his wheelchair down the
path toward the buildings. We have over three thousand physicists here. CERN
single handedly employs more than half of the worlds particle physiciststhe
brightest minds on earthGermans, Japanese, Italians, Dutch, you name it. Our
physicists represent over five hundred universities and sixty nationalities.
Langdon was
amazed. How do they all communicate?
English, of
course. The universal language of science.
Langdon had
always heard math was the universal language of science, but he was too tired
to argue. He dutifully followed Kohler down the path.
Halfway to the
bottom, a young man jogged by. His T shirt proclaimed the message:
NO GUT, NO GLORY!
Langdon looked
after him, mystified. Gut?
General Unified
Theory. Kohler quipped. The theory of everything.
I see, Langdon
said, not seeing at all.
Are you familiar
with particle physics, Mr. Langdon?
Langdon shrugged.
Im familiar with general physicsfalling bodies, that sort of thing. His
years of high diving experience had given him a profound respect for the
awesome power of gravitational acceleration. Particle physics is the study of
atoms, isnt it?
Kohler shook his
head. Atoms look like planets compared to what we deal with. Our interests lie
with an atoms nucleus a mere ten thousandth the size of the whole. He
coughed again, sounding sick. The men and women of CERN are here to find
answers to the same questions man has been asking since the beginning of time.
Where did we come from? What are we made of?
And these
answers are in a physics lab?
You sound
surprised.
I am. The
questions seem spiritual.
Mr. Langdon, all
questions were once spiritual. Since the beginning of time, spirituality and
religion have been called on to fill in the gaps that science did not
understand. The rising and setting of the sun was once attributed to Helios and
a flaming chariot. Earthquakes and tidal waves were the wrath of Poseidon.
Science has now proven those gods to be false idols. Soon all Gods will be
proven to be false idols. Science has now provided answers to almost every
question man can ask. There are only a few questions left, and they are the
esoteric ones. Where do we come from? What are we doing here? What is the
meaning of life and the universe?
Langdon was
amazed. And these are questions CERN is trying to answer?
Correction.
These are questions we are answering.
Langdon fell
silent as the two men wound through the residential quadrangles. As they
walked, a Frisbee sailed overhead and skidded to a stop directly in front of
them. Kohler ignored it and kept going.
A voice called
out from across the quad. Sil vous plat!
Langdon looked
over. An elderly white haired man in a College Paris sweatshirt waved to him.
Langdon picked up the Frisbee and expertly threw it back. The old man caught it
on one finger and bounced it a few times before whipping it over his shoulder
to his partner. Merci! he called to Langdon.
Congratulations,
Kohler said when Langdon finally caught up. You just played toss with a Noble
prize winner, Georges Charpak, inventor of the multiwire proportional chamber.
Langdon nodded.
My lucky day.
It took Langdon
and Kohler three more minutes to reach their destinationa large, well kept
dormitory sitting in a grove of aspens. Compared to the other dorms, this
structure seemed luxurious. The carved stone sign in front read Building C.
Imaginative title,
Langdon thought.
But despite its
sterile name, Building C appealed to Langdons sense of architectural
styleconservative and solid. It had a red brick facade, an ornate balustrade,
and sat framed by sculpted symmetrical hedges. As the two men ascended the
stone path toward the entry, they passed under a gateway formed by a pair of
marble columns. Someone had put a sticky note on one of them.
This column is
Ionic
Physicist
graffiti? Langdon mused, eyeing the column and chuckling to himself. Im relieved
to see that even brilliant physicists make mistakes.
Kohler looked
over. What do you mean?
Whoever wrote
that note made a mistake. That column isnt Ionic. Ionic columns are uniform in
width. That ones tapered. Its Doricthe Greek counterpart. A common mistake.
Kohler did not
smile. The author meant it as a joke, Mr. Langdon. Ionic means containing
ionselectrically charged particles. Most objects contain them.
Langdon looked
back at the column and groaned.
Langdon was still
feeling stupid when he stepped from the elevator on the top floor of Building
C. He followed Kohler down a well appointed corridor. The decor was
unexpectedtraditional colonial Frencha cherry divan, porcelain floor vase,
and scrolled woodwork.
We like to keep
our tenured scientists comfortable, Kohler explained.
Evidently,
Langdon thought. So the man in the fax lived up here? One of your upper level
employees?
Quite, Kohler
said. He missed a meeting with me this morning and did not answer his page. I
came up here to locate him and found him dead in his living room.
Langdon felt a
sudden chill realizing that he was about to see a dead body. His stomach had
never been particularly stalwart. It was a weakness hed discovered as an art
student when the teacher informed the class that Leonardo da Vinci had gained
his expertise in the human form by exhuming corpses and dissecting their
musculature.
Kohler led the
way to the far end of the hallway. There was a single door. The Penthouse, as
you would say, Kohler announced, dabbing a bead of perspiration from his
forehead.
Langdon eyed the
lone oak door before them. The name plate read:
Leonardo Vetra
Leonardo Vetra,
Kohler said, would have been fifty eight next week. He was one of the most
brilliant scientists of our time. His death is a profound loss for science.
For an instant
Langdon thought he sensed emotion in Kohlers hardened face. But as quickly as
it had come, it was gone. Kohler reached in his pocket and began sifting
through a large key ring.
An odd thought
suddenly occurred to Langdon. The building seemed deserted. Where is
everyone? he asked. The lack of activity was hardly what he expected
considering they were about to enter a murder scene.
The residents
are in their labs, Kohler replied, finding the key.
I mean the
police, Langdon clarified. Have they left already?
Kohler paused,
his key halfway into the lock. Police?
Langdons eyes
met the directors. Police. You sent me a fax of a homicide. You must have
called the police.
I most certainly
have not.
What?
Kohlers gray
eyes sharpened. The situation is complex, Mr. Langdon.
Langdon felt a
wave of apprehension. But . . . certainly someone else knows about this!
Yes. Leonardos
adopted daughter. She is also a physicist here at CERN. She and her father
share a lab. They are partners. Ms. Vetra has been away this week doing field
research. I have notified her of her fathers death, and she is returning as we
speak.
But a man has
been murd
A formal
investigation, Kohler said, his voice firm, will take place. However, it will
most certainly involve a search of Vetras lab, a space he and his daughter
hold most private. Therefore, it will wait until Ms. Vetra has arrived. I feel
I owe her at least that modicum of discretion.
Kohler turned the
key.
As the door swung
open, a blast of icy air hissed into the hall and hit Langdon in the face. He
fell back in bewilderment. He was gazing across the threshold of an alien
world. The flat before him was immersed in a thick, white fog. The mist swirled
in smoky vortexes around the furniture and shrouded the room in opaque haze.
What the . . .
? Langdon stammered.
Freon cooling
system, Kohler replied. I chilled the flat to preserve the body.
Langdon buttoned
his tweed jacket against the cold. Im in Oz, he thought. And I forgot my magic
slippers.
9
The corpse on the
floor before Langdon was hideous. The late Leonardo Vetra lay on his back,
stripped naked, his skin bluish gray. His neck bones were jutting out where
they had been broken, and his head was twisted completely backward, pointing
the wrong way. His face was out of view, pressed against the floor. The man lay
in a frozen puddle of his own urine, the hair around his shriveled genitals
spidered with frost.
Fighting a wave
of nausea, Langdon let his eyes fall to the victims chest. Although Langdon
had stared at the symmetrical wound a dozen times on the fax, the burn was
infinitely more commanding in real life. The raised, broiled flesh was
perfectly delineated . . . the symbol flawlessly formed.
Langdon wondered
if the intense chill now raking through his body was the air conditioning or
his utter amazement with the significance of what he was now staring at.
His heart pounded
as he circled the body, reading the word upside down, reaffirming the genius of
the symmetry. The symbol seemed even less conceivable now that he was staring
at it.
Mr. Langdon?
Langdon did not
hear. He was in another world . . . his world, his element, a world where
history, myth, and fact collided, flooding his senses. The gears turned.
Mr. Langdon?
Kohlers eyes probed expectantly.
Langdon did not
look up. His disposition now intensified, his focus total. How much do you
already know?
Only what I had
time to read on your website. The word Illuminati means the enlightened ones.
It is the name of some sort of ancient brotherhood.
Langdon nodded.
Had you heard the name before?
Not until I saw
it branded on Mr. Vetra.
So you ran a web
search for it?
Yes.
And the word
returned hundreds of references, no doubt.
Thousands,
Kohler said. Yours, however, contained references to Harvard, Oxford, a
reputable publisher, as well as a list of related publications. As a scientist
I have come to learn that information is only as valuable as its source. Your
credentials seemed authentic.
Langdons eyes
were still riveted on the body.
Kohler said
nothing more. He simply stared, apparently waiting for Langdon to shed some
light on the scene before them.
Langdon looked
up, glancing around the frozen flat. Perhaps we should discuss this in a
warmer place?
This room is
fine. Kohler seemed oblivious to the cold. Well talk here.
Langdon frowned.
The Illuminati history was by no means a simple one. Ill freeze to death
trying to explain it. He gazed again at the brand, feeling a renewed sense of
awe.
Although accounts
of the Illuminati emblem were legendary in modern symbology, no academic had
ever actually seen it. Ancient documents described the symbol as an ambigramambi
meaning bothsignifying it was legible both ways. And although ambigrams were
common in symbologyswastikas, yin yang, Jewish stars, simple crossesthe idea
that a word could be crafted into an ambigram seemed utterly impossible. Modern
symbologists had tried for years to forge the word Illuminati into a
perfectly symmetrical style, but they had failed miserably. Most academics had
now decided the symbols existence was a myth.
So who are the
Illuminati? Kohler demanded.
Yes, Langdon
thought, who indeed? He began his tale.
Since the
beginning of history, Langdon explained, a deep rift has existed between
science and religion. Outspoken scientists like Copernicus
Were murdered,
Kohler interjected. Murdered by the church for revealing scientific truths.
Religion has always persecuted science.
Yes. But in the
1500s, a group of men in Rome fought back against the church. Some of Italys
most enlightened menphysicists, mathematicians, astronomersbegan meeting
secretly to share their concerns about the churchs inaccurate teachings. They
feared that the churchs monopoly on truth threatened academic enlightenment
around the world. They founded the worlds first scientific think tank, calling
themselves the enlightened ones.
The Illuminati.
Yes, Langdon
said. Europes most learned minds . . . dedicated to the quest for scientific
truth.
Kohler fell
silent.
Of course, the
Illuminati were hunted ruthlessly by the Catholic Church. Only through rites of
extreme secrecy did the scientists remain safe. Word spread through the
academic underground, and the Illuminati brotherhood grew to include academics
from all over Europe. The scientists met regularly in Rome at an ultrasecret
lair they called the Church of Illumination.
Kohler coughed
and shifted in his chair.
Many of the
Illuminati, Langdon continued, wanted to combat the churchs tyranny with
acts of violence, but their most revered member persuaded them against it. He
was a pacifist, as well as one of historys most famous scientists.
Langdon was
certain Kohler would recognize the name. Even nonscientists were familiar with
the ill fated astronomer who had been arrested and almost executed by the
church for proclaiming that the sun, and not the earth, was the center of the
solar system. Although his data were incontrovertible, the astronomer was
severely punished for implying that God had placed mankind somewhere other than
at the center of His universe.
His name was
Galileo Galilei, Langdon said.
Kohler looked up.
Galileo?
Yes. Galileo was
an Illuminatus. And he was also a devout Catholic. He tried to soften the
churchs position on science by proclaiming that science did not undermine the
existence of God, but rather reinforced it. He wrote once that when he looked
through his telescope at the spinning planets, he could hear Gods voice in the
music of the spheres. He held that science and religion were not enemies, but
rather allies two different languages telling the same story, a story of
symmetry and balance . . . heaven and hell, night and day, hot and cold, God
and Satan. Both science and religion rejoiced in Gods symmetry . . . the
endless contest of light and dark. Langdon paused, stamping his feet to stay
warm.
Kohler simply sat
in his wheelchair and stared.
Unfortunately,
Langdon added, the unification of science and religion was not what the church
wanted.
Of course not,
Kohler interrupted. The union would have nullified the churchs claim as the
sole vessel through which man could understand God. So the church tried Galileo
as a heretic, found him guilty, and put him under permanent house arrest. I am quite
aware of scientific history, Mr. Langdon. But this was all centuries ago. What
does it have to do with Leonardo Vetra?
The million
dollar question. Langdon cut to the chase. Galileos arrest threw the
Illuminati into upheaval. Mistakes were made, and the church discovered the
identities of four members, whom they captured and interrogated. But the four
scientists revealed nothing . . . even under torture.
Torture?
Langdon nodded.
They were branded alive. On the chest. With the symbol of a cross.
Kohlers eyes
widened, and he shot an uneasy glance at Vetras body.
Then the
scientists were brutally murdered, their dead bodies dropped in the streets of
Rome as a warning to others thinking of joining the Illuminati. With the church
closing in, the remaining Illuminati fled Italy.
Langdon paused to
make his point. He looked directly into Kohlers dead eyes. The Illuminati
went deep underground, where they began mixing with other refugee groups
fleeing the Catholic purgesmystics, alchemists, occultists, Muslims, Jews.
Over the years, the Illuminati began absorbing new members. A new Illuminati
emerged. A darker Illuminati. A deeply anti Christian Illuminati. They grew
very powerful, employing mysterious rites, deadly secrecy, vowing someday to
rise again and take revenge on the Catholic Church. Their power grew to the
point where the church considered them the single most dangerous anti Christian
force on earth. The Vatican denounced the brotherhood as Shaitan.
Shaitan?
Its Islamic. It
means adversary . . . Gods adversary. The church chose Islam for the name
because it was a language they considered dirty. Langdon hesitated. Shaitan
is the root of an English word . . .Satan.
An uneasiness
crossed Kohlers face.
Langdons voice
was grim. Mr. Kohler, I do not know how this marking appeared on this mans
chest . . . or why . . . but you are looking at the long lost symbol of the
worlds oldest and most powerful satanic cult.
10
The alley was
narrow and deserted. The Hassassin strode quickly now, his black eyes filling
with anticipation. As he approached his destination, Januss parting words
echoed in his mind. Phase two begins shortly. Get some rest.
The Hassassin
smirked. He had been awake all night, but sleep was the last thing on his mind.
Sleep was for the weak. He was a warrior like his ancestors before him, and his
people never slept once a battle had begun. This battle had most definitely
begun, and he had been given the honor of spilling first blood. Now he had two
hours to celebrate his glory before going back to work.
Sleep? There are
far better ways to relax . . .
An appetite for
hedonistic pleasure was something bred into him by his ancestors. His
ascendants had indulged in hashish, but he preferred a different kind of
gratification. He took pride in his bodya well tuned, lethal machine, which,
despite his heritage, he refused to pollute with narcotics. He had developed a
more nourishing addiction than drugs . . . a far more healthy and satisfying
reward.
Feeling a
familiar anticipation swelling within him, the Hassassin moved faster down the
alley. He arrived at the nondescript door and rang the bell. A view slit in the
door opened, and two soft brown eyes studied him appraisingly. Then the door
swung open.
Welcome, the
well dressed woman said. She ushered him into an impeccably furnished sitting
room where the lights were low. The air was laced with expensive perfume and
musk. Whenever you are ready. She handed him a book of photographs. Ring me
when you have made your choice. Then she disappeared.
The Hassassin
smiled.
As he sat on the
plush divan and positioned the photo album on his lap, he felt a carnal hunger
stir. Although his people did not celebrate Christmas, he imagined that this is
what it must feel like to be a Christian child, sitting before a stack of
Christmas presents, about to discover the miracles inside. He opened the album
and examined the photos. A lifetime of sexual fantasies stared back at him.
Marisa. An
Italian goddess. Fiery. A young Sophia Loren.
Sachiko. A
Japanese geisha. Lithe. No doubt skilled.
Kanara. A
stunning black vision. Muscular. Exotic.
He examined the
entire album twice and made his choice. He pressed a button on the table beside
him. A minute later the woman who had greeted him reappeared. He indicated his
selection. She smiled. Follow me.
After handling
the financial arrangements, the woman made a hushed phone call. She waited a
few minutes and then led him up a winding marble staircase to a luxurious
hallway. Its the gold door on the end, she said. You have expensive taste.
I should, he
thought. I am a connoisseur.
The Hassassin
padded the length of the hallway like a panther anticipating a long overdue
meal. When he reached the doorway he smiled to himself. It was already ajar . .
. welcoming him in. He pushed, and the door swung noiselessly open.
When he saw his
selection, he knew he had chosen well. She was exactly as he had requested . .
. nude, lying on her back, her arms tied to the bedposts with thick velvet
cords.
He crossed the
room and ran a dark finger across her ivory abdomen. I killed last night, he
thought. You are my reward.
11
Satanic? Kohler
wiped his mouth and shifted uncomfortably. This is the symbol of a satanic
cult?
Langdon paced the
frozen room to keep warm. The Illuminati were satanic. But not in the modern
sense.
Langdon quickly
explained how most people pictured satanic cults as devil worshiping fiends,
and yet Satanists historically were educated men who stood as adversaries to
the church. Shaitan. The rumors of satanic black magic animal sacrifices and
the pentagram ritual were nothing but lies spread by the church as a smear
campaign against their adversaries. Over time, opponents of the church, wanting
to emulate the Illuminati, began believing the lies and acting them out. Thus,
modern Satanism was born.
Kohler grunted
abruptly. This is all ancient history. I want to know how this symbol got
here.
Langdon took a
deep breath. The symbol itself was created by an anonymous sixteenth century
Illuminati artist as a tribute to Galileos love of symmetrya kind of sacred
Illuminati logo. The brotherhood kept the design secret, allegedly planning to
reveal it only when they had amassed enough power to resurface and carry out
their final goal.
Kohler looked
unsettled. So this symbol means the Illuminati brotherhood is resurfacing?
Langdon frowned.
That would be impossible. There is one chapter of Illuminati history that I
have not yet explained.
Kohlers voice
intensified. Enlighten me.
Langdon rubbed
his palms together, mentally sorting through the hundreds of documents hed
read or written on the Illuminati. The Illuminati were survivors, he
explained. When they fled Rome, they traveled across Europe looking for a safe
place to regroup. They were taken in by another secret society . . . a
brotherhood of wealthy Bavarian stone craftsmen called the Freemasons.
Kohler looked
startled. The Masons?
Langdon nodded,
not at all surprised that Kohler had heard of the group. The brotherhood of the
Masons currently had over five million members worldwide, half of them residing
in the United States, and over one million of them in Europe.
Certainly the
Masons are not satanic, Kohler declared, sounding suddenly skeptical.
Absolutely not.
The Masons fell victim of their own benevolence. After harboring the fleeing
scientists in the 1700s, the Masons unknowingly became a front for the
Illuminati. The Illuminati grew within their ranks, gradually taking over
positions of power within the lodges. They quietly reestablished their
scientific brotherhood deep within the Masonsa kind of secret society within a
secret society. Then the Illuminati used the worldwide connection of Masonic
lodges to spread their influence.
Langdon drew a
cold breath before racing on. Obliteration of Catholicism was the Illuminatis
central covenant. The brotherhood held that the superstitious dogma spewed
forth by the church was mankinds greatest enemy. They feared that if religion
continued to promote pious myth as absolute fact, scientific progress would
halt, and mankind would be doomed to an ignorant future of senseless holy
wars.
Much like we see
today.
Langdon frowned.
Kohler was right. Holy wars were still making headlines. My God is better than
your God. It seemed there was always close correlation between true believers
and high body counts.
Go on, Kohler
said.
Langdon gathered
his thoughts and continued. The Illuminati grew more powerful in Europe and
set their sights on America, a fledgling government many of whose leaders were
MasonsGeorge Washington, Ben Franklinhonest, God fearing men who were unaware
of the Illuminati stronghold on the Masons. The Illuminati took advantage of
the infiltration and helped found banks, universities, and industry to finance
their ultimate quest. Langdon paused. The creation of a single unified world
statea kind of secular New World Order.
Kohler did not
move.
A New World
Order, Langdon repeated, based on scientific enlightenment. They called it
their Luciferian Doctrine. The church claimed Lucifer was a reference to the
devil, but the brotherhood insisted Lucifer was intended in its literal Latin
meaningbringer of light. Or Illuminator.
Kohler sighed,
and his voice grew suddenly solemn. Mr. Langdon, please sit down.
Langdon sat
tentatively on a frost covered chair.
Kohler moved his
wheelchair closer. I am not sure I understand everything you have just told
me, but I do understand this. Leonardo Vetra was one of CERNs greatest assets.
He was also a friend. I need you to help me locate the Illuminati.
Langdon didnt
know how to respond. Locate the Illuminati? Hes kidding, right? Im afraid,
sir, that will be utterly impossible.
Kohlers brow
creased. What do you mean? You wont
Mr. Kohler.
Langdon leaned toward his host, uncertain how to make him understand what he
was about to say. I did not finish my story. Despite appearances, it is
extremely unlikely that this brand was put here by the Illuminati. There has
been no evidence of their existence for over half a century, and most scholars
agree the Illuminati have been defunct for many years.
The words hit
silence. Kohler stared through the fog with a look somewhere between
stupefaction and anger. How the hell can you tell me this group is extinct
when their name is seared into this man!
Langdon had been asking
himself that question all morning. The appearance of the Illuminati ambigram
was astonishing. Symbologists worldwide would be dazzled. And yet, the academic
in Langdon understood that the brands reemergence proved absolutely nothing
about the Illuminati.
Symbols,
Langdon said, in no way confirm the presence of their original creators.
What is that
supposed to mean?
It means that
when organized philosophies like the Illuminati go out of existence, their
symbols remain . . . available for adoption by other groups. Its called
transference. Its very common in symbology. The Nazis took the swastika from
the Hindus, the Christians adopted the cruciform from the Egyptians, the
This morning,
Kohler challenged, when I typed the word Illuminati into the computer, it
returned thousands of current references. Apparently a lot of people think this
group is still active.
Conspiracy
buffs, Langdon replied. He had always been annoyed by the plethora of
conspiracy theories that circulated in modern pop culture. The media craved
apocalyptic headlines, and self proclaimed cult specialists were still
cashing in on millennium hype with fabricated stories that the Illuminati were
alive and well and organizing their New World Order. Recently the New York
Times had reported the eerie Masonic ties of countless famous menSir Arthur
Conan Doyle, the Duke of Kent, Peter Sellers, Irving Berlin, Prince Philip,
Louis Armstrong, as well as a pantheon of well known modern day industrialists
and banking magnates.
Kohler pointed
angrily at Vetras body. Considering the evidence, I would say perhaps the
conspiracy buffs are correct.
I realize how it
appears, Langdon said as diplomatically as he could. And yet a far more
plausible explanation is that some other organization has taken control of the
Illuminati brand and is using it for their own purposes.
What purposes?
What does this murder prove?
Good question,
Langdon thought. He also was having trouble imagining where anyone could have
turned up the Illuminati brand after 400 years. All I can tell you is that
even if the Illuminati were still active today, which I am virtually positive
they are not, they would never be involved in Leonardo Vetras death.
No?
No. The
Illuminati may have believed in the abolition of Christianity, but they wielded
their power through political and financial means, not through terrorists acts.
Furthermore, the Illuminati had a strict code of morality regarding who they
saw as enemies. They held men of science in the highest regard. There is no way
they would have murdered a fellow scientist like Leonardo Vetra.
Kohlers eyes
turned to ice. Perhaps I failed to mention that Leonardo Vetra was anything
but an ordinary scientist.
Langdon exhaled
patiently. Mr. Kohler, Im sure Leonardo Vetra was brilliant in many ways, but
the fact remains
Without warning,
Kohler spun in his wheelchair and accelerated out of the living room, leaving a
wake of swirling mist as he disappeared down a hallway.
For the love of
God, Langdon groaned. He followed. Kohler was waiting for him in a small alcove
at the end of the hallway.
This is
Leonardos study, Kohler said, motioning to the sliding door. Perhaps when
you see it youll understand things differently. With an awkward grunt, Kohler
heaved, and the door slid open.
Langdon peered
into the study and immediately felt his skin crawl. Holy mother of Jesus, he
said to himself.
12
In another
country, a young guard sat patiently before an expansive bank of video
monitors. He watched as images flashed before himlive feeds from hundreds of
wireless video cameras that surveyed the sprawling complex. The images went by
in an endless procession.
An ornate
hallway.
A private office.
An industrial
size kitchen.
As the pictures
went by, the guard fought off a daydream. He was nearing the end of his shift,
and yet he was still vigilant. Service was an honor. Someday he would be
granted his ultimate reward.
As his thoughts
drifted, an image before him registered alarm. Suddenly, with a reflexive jerk
that startled even himself, his hand shot out and hit a button on the control
panel. The picture before him froze.
His nerves
tingling, he leaned toward the screen for a closer look. The reading on the
monitor told him the image was being transmitted from camera #86a camera that
was supposed to be overlooking a hallway.
But the image
before him was most definitely not a hallway.
13
Langdon stared in
bewilderment at the study before him. What is this place? Despite the welcome
blast of warm air on his face, he stepped through the door with trepidation.
Kohler said
nothing as he followed Langdon inside.
Langdon scanned
the room, not having the slightest idea what to make of it. It contained the
most peculiar mix of artifacts he had ever seen. On the far wall, dominating
the decor, was an enormous wooden crucifix, which Langdon placed as fourteenth
century Spanish. Above the cruciform, suspended from the ceiling, was a
metallic mobile of the orbiting planets. To the left was an oil painting of the
Virgin Mary, and beside that was a laminated periodic table of elements. On the
side wall, two additional brass cruciforms flanked a poster of Albert Einstein,
his famous quote reading:
God Does Not Play
Dice With the Universe
Langdon moved
into the room, looking around in astonishment. A leather bound Bible sat on
Vetras desk beside a plastic Bohr model of an atom and a miniature replica of
Michelangelos Moses.
Talk about
eclectic, Langdon thought. The warmth felt good, but something about the decor
sent a new set of chills through his body. He felt like he was witnessing the
clash of two philosophical titans . . . an unsettling blur of opposing forces.
He scanned the titles on the bookshelf:
The God Particle
The Tao of Physics
God: The Evidence
One of the
bookends was etched with a quote:
True science
discovers God waiting behind every door.
Pope Pius XII
Leonardo was a
Catholic priest, Kohler said.
Langdon turned.
A priest? I thought you said he was a physicist.
He was both. Men
of science and religion are not unprecedented in history. Leonardo was one of
them. He considered physics Gods natural law. He claimed Gods handwriting
was visible in the natural order all around us. Through science he hoped to
prove Gods existence to the doubting masses. He considered himself a theo
physicist.
Theo physicist?
Langdon thought it sounded impossibly oxymoronic.
The field of
particle physics, Kohler said, has made some shocking discoveries
latelydiscoveries quite spiritual in implication. Leonardo was responsible for
many of them.
Langdon studied
CERNs director, still trying to process the bizarre surroundings.
Spirituality and physics? Langdon had spent his career studying religious
history, and if there was one recurring theme, it was that science and religion
had been oil and water since day one . . . archenemies . . . unmixable.
Vetra was on the
cutting edge of particle physics, Kohler said. He was starting to fuse
science and religion . . . showing that they complement each other in most
unanticipated ways. He called the field New Physics. Kohler pulled a book from
the shelf and handed it to Langdon.
Langdon studied
the cover. God, Miracles, and the New Physics by Leonardo Vetra.
The field is
small, Kohler said, but its bringing fresh answers to some old
questionsquestions about the origin of the universe and the forces that bind
us all. Leonardo believed his research had the potential to convert millions to
a more spiritual life. Last year he categorically proved the existence of an
energy force that unites us all. He actually demonstrated that we are all
physically connected . . . that the molecules in your body are intertwined with
the molecules in mine . . . that there is a single force moving within all of
us.
Langdon felt
disconcerted. And the power of God shall unite us all. Mr. Vetra actually
found a way to demonstrate that particles are connected?
Conclusive
evidence. A recent Scientific American article hailed New Physics as a surer
path to God than religion itself.
The comment hit
home. Langdon suddenly found himself thinking of the antireligious Illuminati.
Reluctantly, he forced himself to permit a momentary intellectual foray into
the impossible. If the Illuminati were indeed still active, would they have
killed Leonardo to stop him from bringing his religious message to the masses?
Langdon shook off the thought. Absurd! The Illuminati are ancient history! All
academics know that!
Vetra had plenty
of enemies in the scientific world, Kohler went on. Many scientific purists
despised him. Even here at CERN. They felt that using analytical physics to
support religious principles was a treason against science.
But arent
scientists today a bit less defensive about the church?
Kohler grunted in
disgust. Why should we be? The church may not be burning scientists at the
stake anymore, but if you think theyve released their reign over science, ask
yourself why half the schools in your country are not allowed to teach
evolution. Ask yourself why the U.S. Christian Coalition is the most
influential lobby against scientific progress in the world. The battle between
science and religion is still raging, Mr. Langdon. It has moved from the
battlefields to the boardrooms, but it is still raging.
Langdon realized
Kohler was right. Just last week the Harvard School of Divinity had marched on
the Biology Building, protesting the genetic engineering taking place in the
graduate program. The chairman of the Bio Department, famed ornithologist
Richard Aaronian, defended his curriculum by hanging a huge banner from his
office window. The banner depicted the Christian fish modified with four
little feeta tribute, Aaronian claimed, to the African lungfishes evolution
onto dry land. Beneath the fish, instead of the word Jesus, was the
proclamation Darwin!
A sharp beeping
sound cut the air, and Langdon looked up. Kohler reached down into the array of
electronics on his wheelchair. He slipped a beeper out of its holder and read
the incoming message.
Good. That is
Leonardos daughter. Ms. Vetra is arriving at the helipad right now. We will
meet her there. I think it best she not come up here and see her father this
way.
Langdon agreed.
It would be a shock no child deserved.
I will ask Ms.
Vetra to explain the project she and her father have been working on . . .
perhaps shedding light on why he was murdered.
You think
Vetras work is why he was killed?
Quite possibly.
Leonardo told me he was working on something groundbreaking. That is all he
said. He had become very secretive about the project. He had a private lab and
demanded seclusion, which I gladly afforded him on account of his brilliance.
His work had been consuming huge amounts of electric power lately, but I
refrained from questioning him. Kohler rotated toward the study door. There
is, however, one more thing you need to know before we leave this flat.
Langdon was not
sure he wanted to hear it.
An item was
stolen from Vetra by his murderer.
An item?
Follow me.
The director
propelled his wheelchair back into the fog filled living room. Langdon
followed, not knowing what to expect. Kohler maneuvered to within inches of
Vetras body and stopped. He ushered Langdon to join him. Reluctantly, Langdon
came close, bile rising in his throat at the smell of the victims frozen
urine.
Look at his
face, Kohler said.
Look at his face?
Langdon frowned. I thought you said something was stolen.
Hesitantly,
Langdon knelt down. He tried to see Vetras face, but the head was twisted 180
degrees backward, his face pressed into the carpet.
Struggling
against his handicap Kohler reached down and carefully twisted Vetras frozen
head. Cracking loudly, the corpses face rotated into view, contorted in agony.
Kohler held it there a moment.
Sweet Jesus!
Langdon cried, stumbling back in horror. Vetras face was covered in blood. A
single hazel eye stared lifelessly back at him. The other socket was tattered
and empty. They stole his eye ?
14
Langdon stepped
out of Building C into the open air, grateful to be outside Vetras flat. The
sun helped dissolve the image of the empty eye socket emblazoned into his mind.
This way,
please, Kohler said, veering up a steep path. The electric wheelchair seemed
to accelerate effortlessly. Ms. Vetra will be arriving any moment.
Langdon hurried
to keep up.
So, Kohler
asked. Do you still doubt the Illuminatis involvement?
Langdon had no
idea what to think anymore. Vetras religious affiliations were definitely
troubling, and yet Langdon could not bring himself to abandon every shred of
academic evidence he had ever researched. Besides, there was the eye . . .
I still
maintain, Langdon said, more forcefully than he intended. that the Illuminati
are not responsible for this murder. The missing eye is proof.
What?
Random
mutilation, Langdon explained, is very . . . un Illuminati. Cult specialists
see desultory defacement from inexperienced fringe sectszealots who commit
random acts of terrorismbut the Illuminati have always been more deliberate.
Deliberate?
Surgically removing someones eyeball is not deliberate?
It sends no
clear message. It serves no higher purpose.
Kohlers
wheelchair stopped short at the top of the hill. He turned. Mr. Langdon,
believe me, that missing eye does indeed serve a higher purpose . . . a much
higher purpose.
As the two men
crossed the grassy rise, the beating of helicopter blades became audible to the
west. A chopper appeared, arching across the open valley toward them. It banked
sharply, then slowed to a hover over a helipad painted on the grass.
Langdon watched,
detached, his mind churning circles like the blades, wondering if a full
nights sleep would make his current disorientation any clearer. Somehow, he
doubted it.
As the skids
touched down, a pilot jumped out and started unloading gear. There was a lot of
itduffels, vinyl wet bags, scuba tanks, and crates of what appeared to be high
tech diving equipment.
Langdon was
confused. Is that Ms. Vetras gear? he yelled to Kohler over the roar of the
engines.
Kohler nodded and
yelled back, She was doing biological research in the Balearic Sea.
I thought you
said she was a physicist !
She is. Shes a
Bio Entanglement Physicist. She studies the interconnectivity of life systems.
Her work ties closely with her fathers work in particle physics. Recently she
disproved one of Einsteins fundamental theories by using atomically
synchronized cameras to observe a school of tuna fish.
Langdon searched
his hosts face for any glint of humor. Einstein and tuna fish? He was starting
to wonder if the X 33 space plane had mistakenly dropped him off on the wrong
planet.
A moment later,
Vittoria Vetra emerged from the fuselage. Robert Langdon realized today was
going to be a day of endless surprises. Descending from the chopper in her
khaki shorts and white sleeveless top, Vittoria Vetra looked nothing like the
bookish physicist he had expected. Lithe and graceful, she was tall with
chestnut skin and long black hair that swirled in the backwind of the rotors.
Her face was unmistakably Italiannot overly beautiful, but possessing full,
earthy features that even at twenty yards seemed to exude a raw sensuality. As
the air currents buffeted her body, her clothes clung, accentuating her slender
torso and small breasts.
Ms. Vetra is a
woman of tremendous personal strength, Kohler said, seeming to sense Langdons
captivation. She spends months at a time working in dangerous ecological
systems. She is a strict vegetarian and CERNs resident guru of Hatha yoga.
Hatha yoga?
Langdon mused. The ancient Buddhist art of meditative stretching seemed an odd
proficiency for the physicist daughter of a Catholic priest.
Langdon watched
Vittoria approach. She had obviously been crying, her deep sable eyes filled
with emotions Langdon could not place. Still, she moved toward them with fire
and command. Her limbs were strong and toned, radiating the healthy
luminescence of Mediterranean flesh that had enjoyed long hours in the sun.
Vittoria,
Kohler said as she approached. My deepest condolences. Its a terrible loss
for science . . . for all of us here at CERN.
Vittoria nodded
gratefully. When she spoke, her voice was smootha throaty, accented English.
Do you know who is responsible yet?
Were still
working on it.
She turned to
Langdon, holding out a slender hand. My name is Vittoria Vetra. Youre from
Interpol, I assume?
Langdon took her
hand, momentarily spellbound by the depth of her watery gaze. Robert Langdon.
He was unsure what else to say.
Mr. Langdon is
not with the authorities, Kohler explained. He is a specialist from the U.S.
Hes here to help us locate who is responsible for this situation.
Vittoria looked
uncertain. And the police?
Kohler exhaled
but said nothing.
Where is his
body? she demanded.
Being attended
to.
The white lie
surprised Langdon.
I want to see
him, Vittoria said.
Vittoria,
Kohler urged, your father was brutally murdered. You would be better to
remember him as he was.
Vittoria began to
speak but was interrupted.
Hey, Vittoria!
voices called from the distance. Welcome home!
She turned. A
group of scientists passing near the helipad waved happily.
Disprove any
more of Einsteins theories? one shouted.
Another added,
Your dad must be proud!
Vittoria gave the
men an awkward wave as they passed. Then she turned to Kohler, her face now
clouded with confusion. Nobody knows yet?
I decided
discretion was paramount.
You havent told
the staff my father was murdered ? Her mystified tone was now laced with
anger.
Kohlers tone
hardened instantly. Perhaps you forget, Ms. Vetra, as soon as I report your
fathers murder, there will be an investigation of CERN. Including a thorough
examination of his lab. I have always tried to respect your fathers privacy.
Your father has told me only two things about your current project. One, that
it has the potential to bring CERN millions of francs in licensing contracts in
the next decade. And two, that it is not ready for public disclosure because it
is still hazardous technology. Considering these two facts, I would prefer
strangers not poke around inside his lab and either steal his work or kill
themselves in the process and hold CERN liable. Do I make myself clear?
Vittoria stared,
saying nothing. Langdon sensed in her a reluctant respect and acceptance of
Kohlers logic.
Before we report
anything to the authorities, Kohler said, I need to know what you two were
working on. I need you to take us to your lab.
The lab is
irrelevant, Vittoria said. Nobody knew what my father and I were doing. The
experiment could not possibly have anything to do with my fathers murder.
Kohler exhaled a
raspy, ailing breath. Evidence suggests otherwise.
Evidence? What
evidence?
Langdon was
wondering the same thing.
Kohler was
dabbing his mouth again. Youll just have to trust me.
It was clear,
from Vittorias smoldering gaze, that she did not.
15
Langdon strode
silently behind Vittoria and Kohler as they moved back into the main atrium
where Langdons bizarre visit had begun. Vittorias legs drove in fluid
efficiencylike an Olympic divera potency, Langdon figured, no doubt born from
the flexibility and control of yoga. He could hear her breathing slowly and
deliberately, as if somehow trying to filter her grief.
Langdon wanted to
say something to her, offer his sympathy. He too had once felt the abrupt
hollowness of unexpectedly losing a parent. He remembered the funeral mostly,
rainy and gray. Two days after his twelfth birthday. The house was filled with
gray suited men from the office, men who squeezed his hand too hard when they
shook it. They were all mumbling words like cardiac and stress. His mother
joked through teary eyes that shed always been able to follow the stock market
simply by holding her husbands hand . . . his pulse her own private ticker
tape.
Once, when his
father was alive, Langdon had heard his mom begging his father to stop and
smell the roses. That year, Langdon bought his father a tiny blown glass rose
for Christmas. It was the most beautiful thing Langdon had ever seen . . . the
way the sun caught it, throwing a rainbow of colors on the wall. Its lovely,
his father had said when he opened it, kissing Robert on the forehead. Lets
find a safe spot for it. Then his father had carefully placed the rose on a
high dusty shelf in the darkest corner of the living room. A few days later,
Langdon got a stool, retrieved the rose, and took it back to the store. His
father never noticed it was gone.
The ping of an
elevator pulled Langdon back to the present. Vittoria and Kohler were in front
of him, boarding the lift. Langdon hesitated outside the open doors.
Is something
wrong? Kohler asked, sounding more impatient than concerned.
Not at all,
Langdon said, forcing himself toward the cramped carriage. He only used
elevators when absolutely necessary. He preferred the more open spaces of
stairwells.
Dr. Vetras lab
is subterranean, Kohler said.
Wonderful,
Langdon thought as he stepped across the cleft, feeling an icy wind churn up
from the depths of the shaft. The doors closed, and the car began to descend.
Six stories,
Kohler said blankly, like an analytical engine.
Langdon pictured
the darkness of the empty shaft below them. He tried to block it out by staring
at the numbered display of changing floors. Oddly, the elevator showed only two
stops. Ground Level and LHC.
Whats LHC stand
for? Langdon asked, trying not to sound nervous.
Large Hadron
Collider, Kohler said. A particle accelerator.
Particle
accelerator? Langdon was vaguely familiar with the term. He had first heard it
over dinner with some colleagues at Dunster House in Cambridge. A physicist
friend of theirs, Bob Brownell, had arrived for dinner one night in a rage.
The bastards
canceled it! Brownell cursed.
Canceled what?
they all asked.
The SSC!
The what?
The
Superconducting Super Collider!
Someone shrugged.
I didnt know Harvard was building one.
Not Harvard! he
exclaimed. The U.S. ! It was going to be the worlds most powerful particle
accelerator! One of the most important scientific projects of the century! Two
billion dollars into it and the Senate sacks the project! Damn Bible Belt lobbyists!
When Brownell
finally calmed down, he explained that a particle accelerator was a large,
circular tube through which subatomic particles were accelerated. Magnets in
the tube turned on and off in rapid succession to push particles around and
around until they reached tremendous velocities. Fully accelerated particles
circled the tube at over 180,000 miles per second.
But thats
almost the speed of light, one of the professors exclaimed.
Damn right,
Brownell said. He went on to say that by accelerating two particles in opposite
directions around the tube and then colliding them, scientists could shatter
the particles into their constituent parts and get a glimpse of natures most
fundamental components. Particle accelerators, Brownell declared, are
critical to the future of science. Colliding particles is the key to
understanding the building blocks of the universe.
Harvards Poet in
Residence, a quiet man named Charles Pratt, did not look impressed. It sounds
to me, he said, like a rather Neanderthal approach to science . . . akin to
smashing clocks together to discern their internal workings.
Brownell dropped
his fork and stormed out of the room.
So CERN has a
particle accelerator? Langdon thought, as the elevator dropped. A circular tube
for smashing particles. He wondered why they had buried it underground.
When the elevator
thumped to a stop, Langdon was relieved to feel terra firma beneath his feet.
But when the doors slid open, his relief evaporated. Robert Langdon found
himself standing once again in a totally alien world.
The passageway
stretched out indefinitely in both directions, left and right. It was a smooth
cement tunnel, wide enough to allow passage of an eighteen wheeler. Brightly
lit where they stood, the corridor turned pitch black farther down. A damp wind
rustled out of the darknessan unsettling reminder that they were now deep in
the earth. Langdon could almost sense the weight of the dirt and stone now hanging
above his head. For an instant he was nine years old . . . the darkness forcing
him back . . . back to the five hours of crushing blackness that haunted him
still. Clenching his fists, he fought it off.
Vittoria remained
hushed as she exited the elevator and strode off without hesitation into the
darkness without them. Overhead the flourescents flickered on to light her
path. The effect was unsettling, Langdon thought, as if the tunnel were alive .
. . anticipating her every move. Langdon and Kohler followed, trailing a
distance behind. The lights extinguished automatically behind them.
This particle
accelerator, Langdon said quietly. Its down this tunnel someplace?
Thats it
there. Kohler motioned to his left where a polished, chrome tube ran along the
tunnels inner wall.
Langdon eyed the
tube, confused. Thats the accelerator? The device looked nothing like he had
imagined. It was perfectly straight, about three feet in diameter, and extended
horizontally the visible length of the tunnel before disappearing into the
darkness. Looks more like a high tech sewer, Langdon thought. I thought
particle accelerators were circular.
This accelerator
is a circle, Kohler said. It appears straight, but that is an optical
illusion. The circumference of this tunnel is so large that the curve is
imperceptiblelike that of the earth.
Langdon was
flabbergasted. This is a circle? But . . . it must be enormous!
The LHC is the
largest machine in the world.
Langdon did a
double take. He remembered the CERN driver saying something about a huge
machine buried in the earth. But
It is over eight
kilometers in diameter . . . and twenty seven kilometers long.
Langdons head
whipped around. Twenty seven kilometers? He stared at the director and then
turned and looked into the darkened tunnel before him. This tunnel is twenty
seven kilometers long? Thats . . . thats over sixteen miles!
Kohler nodded.
Bored in a perfect circle. It extends all the way into France before curving
back here to this spot. Fully accelerated particles will circle the tube more
than ten thousand times in a single second before they collide.
Langdons legs
felt rubbery as he stared down the gaping tunnel. Youre telling me that CERN
dug out millions of tons of earth just to smash tiny particles?
Kohler shrugged.
Sometimes to find truth, one must move mountains.
16
Hundreds of miles
from CERN, a voice crackled through a walkie talkie. Okay, Im in the
hallway.
The technician
monitoring the video screens pressed the button on his transmitter. Youre
looking for camera #86. Its supposed to be at the far end.
There was a long
silence on the radio. The waiting technician broke a light sweat. Finally his
radio clicked.
The camera isnt
here, the voice said. I can see where it was mounted, though. Somebody must
have removed it.
The technician
exhaled heavily. Thanks. Hold on a second, will you?
Sighing, he
redirected his attention to the bank of video screens in front of him. Huge
portions of the complex were open to the public, and wireless cameras had gone
missing before, usually stolen by visiting pranksters looking for souvenirs.
But as soon as a camera left the facility and was out of range, the signal was
lost, and the screen went blank. Perplexed, the technician gazed up at the
monitor. A crystal clear image was still coming from camera #86.
If the camera was
stolen, he wondered, why are we still getting a signal? He knew, of course,
there was only one explanation. The camera was still inside the complex, and
someone had simply moved it. But who? And why?
He studied the
monitor a long moment. Finally he picked up his walkie talkie. Are there any
closets in that stairwell? Any cupboards or dark alcoves?
The voice
replying sounded confused. No. Why?
The technician
frowned. Never mind. Thanks for your help. He turned off his walkie talkie
and pursed his lips.
Considering the
small size of the video camera and the fact that it was wireless, the
technician knew that camera #86 could be transmitting from just about anywhere
within the heavily guarded compounda densely packed collection of thirty two
separate buildings covering a half mile radius. The only clue was that the
camera seemed to have been placed somewhere dark. Of course, that wasnt much
help. The complex contained endless dark locationsmaintenance closets, heating
ducts, gardening sheds, bedroom wardrobes, even a labyrinth of underground
tunnels. Camera #86 could take weeks to locate.
But thats the
least of my problems, he thought.
Despite the
dilemma posed by the cameras relocation, there was another far more unsettling
matter at hand. The technician gazed up at the image the lost camera was
transmitting. It was a stationary object. A modern looking device like nothing
the technician had ever seen. He studied the blinking electronic display at its
base.
Although the
guard had undergone rigorous training preparing him for tense situations, he
still sensed his pulse rising. He told himself not to panic. There had to be an
explanation. The object appeared too small to be of significant danger. Then
again, its presence inside the complex was troubling. Very troubling, indeed.
Today of all
days, he thought.
Security was
always a top priority for his employer, but today, more than any other day in
the past twelve years, security was of the utmost importance. The technician
stared at the object for a long time and sensed the rumblings of a distant
gathering storm.
Then, sweating,
he dialed his superior.
17
Not many children
could say they remembered the day they met their father, but Vittoria Vetra
could. She was eight years old, living where she always had, Orfanotrofio di
Siena, a Catholic orphanage near Florence, deserted by parents she never knew.
It was raining that day. The nuns had called for her twice to come to dinner,
but as always she pretended not to hear. She lay outside in the courtyard,
staring up at the raindrops . . . feeling them hit her body . . . trying to
guess where one would land next. The nuns called again, threatening that
pneumonia might make an insufferably headstrong child a lot less curious about
nature.
I cant hear you,
Vittoria thought.
She was soaked to
the bone when the young priest came out to get her. She didnt know him. He was
new there. Vittoria waited for him to grab her and drag her back inside. But he
didnt. Instead, to her wonder, he lay down beside her, soaking his robes in a
puddle.
They say you ask
a lot of questions, the young man said.
Vittoria scowled.
Are questions bad?
He laughed.
Guess they were right.
What are you
doing out here?
Same thing
youre doing . . . wondering why raindrops fall.
Im not
wondering why they fall! I already know!
The priest gave
her an astonished look. You do ?
Sister Francisca
says raindrops are angels tears coming down to wash away our sins.
Wow! he said,
sounding amazed. So that explains it.
No it doesnt!
the girl fired back. Raindrops fall because everything falls! Everything
falls! Not just rain!
The priest
scratched his head, looking perplexed. You know, young lady, youre right.
Everything does fall. It must be gravity.
It must be what
?
He gave her an
astonished look. You havent heard of gravity ?
No.
The priest
shrugged sadly. Too bad. Gravity answers a lot of questions.
Vittoria sat up.
Whats gravity? she demanded. Tell me!
The priest gave
her a wink. What do you say I tell you over dinner.
The young priest
was Leonardo Vetra. Although he had been an award winning physics student while
in university, hed heard another call and gone into the seminary. Leonardo and
Vittoria became unlikely best friends in the lonely world of nuns and
regulations. Vittoria made Leonardo laugh, and he took her under his wing,
teaching her that beautiful things like rainbows and the rivers had many
explanations. He told her about light, planets, stars, and all of nature
through the eyes of both God and science. Vittorias innate intellect and
curiosity made her a captivating student. Leonardo protected her like a
daughter.
Vittoria was
happy too. She had never known the joy of having a father. When every other
adult answered her questions with a slap on the wrist, Leonardo spent hours
showing her books. He even asked what her ideas were. Vittoria prayed Leonardo
would stay with her forever. Then one day, her worst nightmare came true.
Father Leonardo told her he was leaving the orphanage.
Im moving to
Switzerland, Leonardo said. I have a grant to study physics at the University
of Geneva.
Physics?
Vittoria cried. I thought you loved God !
I do, very much.
Which is why I want to study his divine rules. The laws of physics are the
canvas God laid down on which to paint his masterpiece.
Vittoria was
devastated. But Father Leonardo had some other news. He told Vittoria he had
spoken to his superiors, and they said it was okay if Father Leonardo adopted
her.
Would you like
me to adopt you? Leonardo asked.
Whats adopt
mean? Vittoria said.
Father Leonardo
told her.
Vittoria hugged
him for five minutes, crying tears of joy. Oh yes! Yes!
Leonardo told her
he had to leave for a while and get their new home settled in Switzerland, but
he promised to send for her in six months. It was the longest wait of
Vittorias life, but Leonardo kept his word. Five days before her ninth
birthday, Vittoria moved to Geneva. She attended Geneva International School
during the day and learned from her father at night.
Three years later
Leonardo Vetra was hired by CERN. Vittoria and Leonardo relocated to a
wonderland the likes of which the young Vittoria had never imagined.
Vittoria Vetras
body felt numb as she strode down the LHC tunnel. She saw her muted reflection
in the LHC and sensed her fathers absence. Normally she existed in a state of
deep calm, in harmony with the world around her. But now, very suddenly,
nothing made sense. The last three hours had been a blur.
It had been 10
A.M. in the Balearic Islands when Kohlers call came through. Your father has
been murdered. Come home immediately. Despite the sweltering heat on the deck
of the dive boat, the words had chilled her to the bone, Kohlers emotionless
tone hurting as much as the news.
Now she had returned
home. But home to what? CERN, her world since she was twelve, seemed suddenly
foreign. Her father, the man who had made it magical, was gone.
Deep breaths, she
told herself, but she couldnt calm her mind. The questions circled faster and
faster. Who killed her father? And why? Who was this American
specialist"? Why was Kohler insisting on seeing the lab?
Kohler had said
there was evidence that her fathers murder was related to the current project.
What evidence? Nobody knew what we were working on! And even if someone found
out, why would they kill him?
As she moved down
the LHC tunnel toward her fathers lab, Vittoria realized she was about to
unveil her fathers greatest achievement without him there. She had pictured
this moment much differently. She had imagined her father calling CERNs top
scientists to his lab, showing them his discovery, watching their awestruck
faces. Then he would beam with fatherly pride as he explained to them how it
had been one of Vittorias ideas that had helped him make the project a reality
. . . that his daughter had been integral in his breakthrough. Vittoria felt a
lump in her throat. My father and I were supposed to share this moment
together. But here she was alone. No colleagues. No happy faces. Just an American
stranger and Maximilian Kohler.
Maximilian
Kohler. Der König.
Even as a child,
Vittoria had disliked the man. Although she eventually came to respect his
potent intellect, his icy demeanor always seemed inhuman, the exact antithesis
of her fathers warmth. Kohler pursued science for its immaculate logic . . .
her father for its spiritual wonder. And yet oddly there had always seemed to
be an unspoken respect between the two men. Genius, someone had once explained
to her, accepts genius unconditionally.
Genius, she
thought. My father . . . Dad. Dead.
The entry to
Leonardo Vetras lab was a long sterile hallway paved entirely in white tile.
Langdon felt like he was entering some kind of underground insane asylum.
Lining the corridor were dozens of framed, black and white images. Although
Langdon had made a career of studying images, these were entirely alien to him.
They looked like chaotic negatives of random streaks and spirals. Modern art?
he mused. Jackson Pollock on amphetamines?
Scatter plots,
Vittoria said, apparently noting Langdons interest. Computer representations
of particle collisions. Thats the Z particle, she said, pointing to a faint
track that was almost invisible in the confusion. My father discovered it five
years ago. Pure energyno mass at all. It may well be the smallest building
block in nature. Matter is nothing but trapped energy.
Matter is energy?
Langdon cocked his head. Sounds pretty Zen. He gazed at the tiny streak in the
photograph and wondered what his buddies in the Harvard physics department
would say when he told them hed spent the weekend hanging out in a Large
Hadron Collider admiring Z particles.
Vittoria,
Kohler said, as they approached the labs imposing steel door, I should
mention that I came down here this morning looking for your father.
Vittoria flushed
slightly. You did?
Yes. And imagine
my surprise when I discovered he had replaced CERNs standard keypad security
with something else. Kohler motioned to an intricate electronic device mounted
beside the door.
I apologize,
she said. You know how he was about privacy. He didnt want anyone but the two
of us to have access.
Kohler said,
Fine. Open the door.
Vittoria stood a
long moment. Then, pulling a deep breath, she walked to the mechanism on the
wall.
Langdon was in no
way prepared for what happened next.
Vittoria stepped
up to the device and carefully aligned her right eye with a protruding lens
that looked like a telescope. Then she pressed a button. Inside the machine,
something clicked. A shaft of light oscillated back and forth, scanning her
eyeball like a copy machine.
Its a retina
scan, she said. Infallible security. Authorized for two retina patterns only.
Mine and my fathers.
Robert Langdon
stood in horrified revelation. The image of Leonardo Vetra came back in grisly
detailthe bloody face, the solitary hazel eye staring back, and the empty eye
socket. He tried to reject the obvious truth, but then he saw it . . . beneath
the scanner on the white tile floor . . . faint droplets of crimson. Dried
blood.
Vittoria,
thankfully, did not notice.
The steel door
slid open and she walked through.
Kohler fixed
Langdon with an adamant stare. His message was clear: As I told you . . . the
missing eye serves a higher purpose.
18
The womans hands
were tied, her wrists now purple and swollen from chafing. The mahogany skinned
Hassassin lay beside her, spent, admiring his naked prize. He wondered if her
current slumber was just a deception, a pathetic attempt to avoid further
service to him.
He did not care.
He had reaped sufficient reward. Sated, he sat up in bed.
In his country
women were possessions. Weak. Tools of pleasure. Chattel to be traded like
livestock. And they understood their place. But here, in Europe, women feigned
a strength and independence that both amused and excited him. Forcing them into
physical submission was a gratification he always enjoyed.
Now, despite the
contentment in his loins, the Hassassin sensed another appetite growing within
him. He had killed last night, killed and mutilated, and for him killing was
like heroin . . . each encounter satisfying only temporarily before increasing
his longing for more. The exhilaration had worn off. The craving had returned.
He studied the
sleeping woman beside him. Running his palm across her neck, he felt aroused
with the knowledge that he could end her life in an instant. What would it
matter? She was subhuman, a vehicle only of pleasure and service. His strong
fingers encircled her throat, savoring her delicate pulse. Then, fighting
desire, he removed his hand. There was work to do. Service to a higher cause
than his own desire.
As he got out of
bed, he reveled in the honor of the job before him. He still could not fathom
the influence of this man named Janus and the ancient brotherhood he commanded.
Wondrously, the brotherhood had chosen him. Somehow they had learned of his
loathing . . . and of his skills. How, he would never know. Their roots reach
wide.
Now they had
bestowed on him the ultimate honor. He would be their hands and their voice.
Their assassin and their messenger. The one his people knew as Malak al haq
the Angel of Truth.
19
Vetras lab was
wildly futuristic.
Stark white and
bounded on all sides by computers and specialized electronic equipment, it
looked like some sort of operating room. Langdon wondered what secrets this
place could possibly hold to justify cutting out someones eye to gain
entrance.
Kohler looked
uneasy as they entered, his eyes seeming to dart about for signs of an
intruder. But the lab was deserted. Vittoria moved slowly too . . . as if the
lab felt unknown without her father there.
Langdons gaze
landed immediately in the center of the room, where a series of short pillars
rose from the floor. Like a miniature Stonehenge, a dozen or so columns of
polished steel stood in a circle in the middle of the room. The pillars were
about three feet tall, reminding Langdon of museum displays for valuable gems.
These pillars, however, were clearly not for precious stones. Each supported a
thick, transparent canister about the size of a tennis ball can. They appeared
empty.
Kohler eyed the
canisters, looking puzzled. He apparently decided to ignore them for the time
being. He turned to Vittoria. Has anything been stolen?
Stolen? How?
she argued. The retina scan only allows entry to us.
Just look
around.
Vittoria sighed
and surveyed the room for a few moments. She shrugged. Everything looks as my father
always leaves it. Ordered chaos.
Langdon sensed
Kohler weighing his options, as if wondering how far to push Vittoria . . . how
much to tell her. Apparently he decided to leave it for the moment. Moving his
wheelchair toward the center of the room, he surveyed the mysterious cluster of
seemingly empty canisters.
Secrets, Kohler
finally said, are a luxury we can no longer afford.
Vittoria nodded
in acquiescence, looking suddenly emotional, as if being here brought with it a
torrent of memories.
Give her a
minute, Langdon thought.
As though
preparing for what she was about to reveal, Vittoria closed her eyes and
breathed. Then she breathed again. And again. And again . . .
Langdon watched
her, suddenly concerned. Is she okay? He glanced at Kohler, who appeared
unfazed, apparently having seen this ritual before. Ten seconds passed before
Vittoria opened her eyes.
Langdon could not
believe the metamorphosis. Vittoria Vetra had been transformed. Her full lips
were lax, her shoulders down, and her eyes soft and assenting. It was as though
she had realigned every muscle in her body to accept the situation. The
resentful fire and personal anguish had been quelled somehow beneath a deeper,
watery cool.
Where to begin .
. . she said, her accent unruffled.
At the
beginning, Kohler said. Tell us about your fathers experiment.
Rectifying
science with religion has been my fathers life dream, Vittoria said. He
hoped to prove that science and religion are two totally compatible fieldstwo
different approaches to finding the same truth. She paused as if unable to
believe what she was about to say. And recently . . . he conceived of a way to
do that.
Kohler said
nothing.
He devised an
experiment, one he hoped would settle one of the most bitter conflicts in the
history of science and religion.
Langdon wondered
which conflict she could mean. There were so many.
Creationism,
Vittoria declared. The battle over how the universe came to be.
Oh, Langdon
thought. The debate.
The Bible, of
course, states that God created the universe, she explained. God said, Let
there be light, and everything we see appeared out of a vast emptiness.
Unfortunately, one of the fundamental laws of physics states that matter cannot
be created out of nothing.
Langdon had read
about this stalemate. The idea that God allegedly created something from
nothing was totally contrary to accepted laws of modern physics and therefore,
scientists claimed, Genesis was scientifically absurd.
Mr. Langdon,
Vittoria said, turning, I assume you are familiar with the Big Bang Theory?
Langdon shrugged.
More or less. The Big Bang, he knew, was the scientifically accepted model
for the creation of the universe. He didnt really understand it, but according
to the theory, a single point of intensely focused energy erupted in a
cataclysmic explosion, expanding outward to form the universe. Or something
like that.
Vittoria
continued. When the Catholic Church first proposed the Big Bang Theory in
1927, the
Im sorry?
Langdon interrupted, before he could stop himself. You say the Big Bang was a
Catholic idea?
Vittoria looked
surprised by his question Of course. Proposed by a Catholic monk, Georges
Lematre in 1927.
But, I thought .
. . he hesitated. Wasnt the Big Bang proposed by Harvard astronomer Edwin
Hubble?
Kohler glowered.
Again, American scientific arrogance. Hubble published in 1929, two years
after Lematre.
Langdon scowled.
Its called the Hubble Telescope, sirIve never heard of any Lematre
Telescope!
Mr. Kohler is
right, Vittoria said, the idea belonged to Lematre. Hubble only confirmed it
by gathering the hard evidence that proved the Big Bang was scientifically
probable.
Oh, Langdon
said, wondering if the Hubble fanatics in the Harvard Astronomy Department ever
mentioned Lematre in their lectures.
When Lematre
first proposed the Big Bang Theory, Vittoria continued, scientists claimed it
was utterly ridiculous. Matter, science said, could not be created out of
nothing. So, when Hubble shocked the world by scientifically proving the Big
Bang was accurate, the church claimed victory, heralding this as proof that the
Bible was scientifically accurate. The divine truth.
Langdon nodded,
focusing intently now.
Of course
scientists did not appreciate having their discoveries used by the church to
promote religion, so they immediately mathematicized the Big Bang Theory,
removed all religious overtones, and claimed it as their own. Unfortunately for
science, however, their equations, even today, have one serious deficiency that
the church likes to point out.
Kohler grunted.
The singularity. He spoke the word as if it were the bane of his existence.
Yes, the
singularity, Vittoria said. The exact moment of creation. Time zero. She
looked at Langdon. Even today, science cannot grasp the initial moment of
creation. Our equations explain the early universe quite effectively, but as we
move back in time, approaching time zero, suddenly our mathematics
disintegrates, and everything becomes meaningless.
Correct, Kohler
said, his voice edgy, and the church holds up this deficiency as proof of
Gods miraculous involvement. Come to your point.
Vittorias
expression became distant. My point is that my father had always believed in Gods
involvement in the Big Bang. Even though science was unable to comprehend the
divine moment of creation, he believed someday it would. She motioned sadly to
a laser printed memo tacked over her fathers work area. My dad used to wave
that in my face every time I had doubts.
Langdon read the
message:
Science and
religion are not at odds.
Science is simply
too young to understand.
My dad wanted to
bring science to a higher level, Vittoria said, where science supported the
concept of God. She ran a hand through her long hair, looking melancholy. He
set out to do something no scientist had ever thought to do. Something that no
one has ever had the technology to do. She paused, as though uncertain how to
speak the next words. He designed an experiment to prove Genesis was
possible.
Prove Genesis?
Langdon wondered. Let there be light? Matter from nothing?
Kohlers dead
gaze bore across the room. I beg your pardon?
My father
created a universe . . . from nothing at all.
Kohler snapped
his head around. What!
Better said, he
recreated the Big Bang.
Kohler looked
ready to jump to his feet.
Langdon was
officially lost. Creating a universe? Recreating the Big Bang?
It was done on a
much smaller scale, of course, Vittoria said, talking faster now. The process
was remarkably simple. He accelerated two ultrathin particle beams in opposite
directions around the accelerator tube. The two beams collided head on at
enormous speeds, driving into one another and compressing all their energy into
a single pinpoint. He achieved extreme energy densities. She started rattling
off a stream of units, and the directors eyes grew wider.
Langdon tried to
keep up. So Leonardo Vetra was simulating the compressed point of energy from
which the universe supposedly sprang.
The result,
Vittoria said, was nothing short of wondrous. When it is published, it will
shake the very foundation of modern physics. She spoke slowly now, as though
savoring the immensity of her news. Without warning, inside the accelerator
tube, at this point of highly focused energy, particles of matter began
appearing out of nowhere.
Kohler made no
reaction. He simply stared.
Matter,
Vittoria repeated. Blossoming out of nothing. An incredible display of
subatomic fireworks. A miniature universe springing to life. He proved not only
that matter can be created from nothing, but that the Big Bang and Genesis can
be explained simply by accepting the presence of an enormous source of energy.
You mean God ?
Kohler demanded.
God, Buddha, The
Force, Yahweh, the singularity, the unicity pointcall it whatever you likethe
result is the same. Science and religion support the same truthpure energy is
the father of creation.
When Kohler
finally spoke, his voice was somber. Vittoria, you have me at a loss. It
sounds like youre telling me your father created matter . . . out of nothing?
Yes. Vittoria
motioned to the canisters. And there is the proof. In those canisters are
specimens of the matter he created.
Kohler coughed
and moved toward the canisters like a wary animal circling something he
instinctively sensed was wrong. Ive obviously missed something, he said. How
do you expect anyone to believe these canisters contain particles of matter
your father actually created ? They could be particles from anywhere at all.
Actually,
Vittoria said, sounding confident, they couldnt. These particles are unique.
They are a type of matter that does not exist anywhere on earth . . . hence
they had to be created.
Kohlers
expression darkened. Vittoria, what do you mean a certain type of matter?
There is only one type of matter, and it Kohler stopped short.
Vittorias expression
was triumphant. Youve lectured on it yourself, director. The universe
contains two kinds of matter. Scientific fact. Vittoria turned to Langdon.
Mr. Langdon, what does the Bible say about the Creation? What did God create?
Langdon felt
awkward, not sure what this had to do with anything. Um, God created . . .
light and dark, heaven and hell
Exactly,
Vittoria said. He created everything in opposites. Symmetry. Perfect balance.
She turned back to Kohler. Director, science claims the same thing as
religion, that the Big Bang created everything in the universe with an
opposite.
Including matter
itself, Kohler whispered, as if to himself.
Vittoria nodded.
And when my father ran his experiment, sure enough, two kinds of matter
appeared.
Langdon wondered
what this meant. Leonardo Vetra created matters opposite?
Kohler looked
angry. The substance youre referring to only exists elsewhere in the
universe. Certainly not on earth. And possibly not even in our galaxy!
Exactly,
Vittoria replied, which is proof that the particles in these canisters had to
be created.
Kohlers face
hardened. Vittoria, surely you cant be saying those canisters contain actual
specimens?
I am. She gazed
proudly at the canisters. Director, you are looking at the worlds first
specimens of antimatter.
20
Phase two, the
Hassassin thought, striding into the darkened tunnel.
The torch in his
hand was overkill. He knew that. But it was for effect. Effect was everything.
Fear, he had learned, was his ally. Fear cripples faster than any implement of
war.
There was no
mirror in the passage to admire his disguise, but he could sense from the
shadow of his billowing robe that he was perfect. Blending in was part of the
plan . . . part of the depravity of the plot. In his wildest dreams he had
never imagined playing this part.
Two weeks ago, he
would have considered the task awaiting him at the far end of this tunnel
impossible. A suicide mission. Walking naked into a lions lair. But Janus had
changed the definition of impossible.
The secrets Janus
had shared with the Hassassin in the last two weeks had been numerous . . .
this very tunnel being one of them. Ancient, and yet still perfectly passable.
As he drew closer
to his enemy, the Hassassin wondered if what awaited him inside would be as
easy as Janus had promised. Janus had assured him someone on the inside would
make the necessary arrangements. Someone on the inside. Incredible. The more he
considered it, the more he realized it was childs play.
Wahad . . .
tintain . . . thalatha . . . arbaa, he said to himself in Arabic as he neared
the end. One . . . two . . . three . . . four . . .
21
I sense youve
heard of antimatter, Mr. Langdon? Vittoria was studying him, her dark skin in
stark contrast to the white lab.
Langdon looked
up. He felt suddenly dumb. Yes. Well . . . sort of.
A faint smile
crossed her lips. You watch Star Trek.
Langdon flushed.
Well, my students enjoy . . . He frowned. Isnt antimatter what fuels the
U.S.S. Enterprise ?
She nodded. Good
science fiction has its roots in good science.
So antimatter is
real ?
A fact of
nature. Everything has an opposite. Protons have electrons. Up quarks have down
quarks. There is a cosmic symmetry at the subatomic level. Antimatter is yin to
matters yang. It balances the physical equation.
Langdon thought
of Galileos belief of duality.
Scientists have
known since 1918, Vittoria said, that two kinds of matter were created in the
Big Bang. One matter is the kind we see here on earth, making up rocks, trees,
people. The other is its inverseidentical to matter in all respects except
that the charges of its particles are reversed.
Kohler spoke as
though emerging from a fog. His voice sounded suddenly precarious. But there
are enormous technological barriers to actually storing antimatter. What about
neutralization?
My father built
a reverse polarity vacuum to pull the antimatter positrons out of the
accelerator before they could decay.
Kohler scowled.
But a vacuum would pull out the matter also. There would be no way to separate
the particles.
He applied a
magnetic field. Matter arced right, and antimatter arced left. They are polar
opposites.
At that instant,
Kohlers wall of doubt seemed to crack. He looked up at Vittoria in clear
astonishment and then without warning was overcome by a fit of coughing.
Incred . . . ible . . . he said, wiping his mouth, and yet . . . It seemed
his logic was still resisting. Yet even if the vacuum worked, these canisters
are made of matter. Antimatter cannot be stored inside canisters made out of
matter. The antimatter would instantly react with
The specimen is
not touching the canister, Vittoria said, apparently expecting the question.
The antimatter is suspended. The canisters are called antimatter traps
because they literally trap the antimatter in the center of the canister,
suspending it at a safe distance from the sides and bottom.
Suspended? But .
. . how ?
Between two intersecting
magnetic fields. Here, have a look.
Vittoria walked
across the room and retrieved a large electronic apparatus. The contraption
reminded Langdon of some sort of cartoon ray guna wide cannonlike barrel with
a sighting scope on top and a tangle of electronics dangling below. Vittoria
aligned the scope with one of the canisters, peered into the eyepiece, and
calibrated some knobs. Then she stepped away, offering Kohler a look.
Kohler looked
nonplussed. You collected visible amounts?
Five thousand
nanograms, Vittoria said. A liquid plasma containing millions of positrons.
Millions? But a
few particles is all anyone has ever detected . . . anywhere.
Xenon, Vittoria
said flatly. He accelerated the particle beam through a jet of xenon, stripping
away the electrons. He insisted on keeping the exact procedure a secret, but it
involved simultaneously injecting raw electrons into the accelerator.
Langdon felt
lost, wondering if their conversation was still in English.
Kohler paused,
the lines in his brow deepening. Suddenly he drew a short breath. He slumped
like hed been hit with a bullet. Technically that would leave . . .
Vittoria nodded.
Yes. Lots of it.
Kohler returned
his gaze to the canister before him. With a look of uncertainty, he hoisted
himself in his chair and placed his eye to the viewer, peering inside. He
stared a long time without saying anything. When he finally sat down, his
forehead was covered with sweat. The lines on his face had disappeared. His
voice was a whisper. My God . . . you really did it.
Vittoria nodded.
My father did it.
I . . . I dont
know what to say.
Vittoria turned
to Langdon. Would you like a look? She motioned to the viewing device.
Uncertain what to
expect, Langdon moved forward. From two feet away, the canister appeared empty.
Whatever was inside was infinitesimal. Langdon placed his eye to the viewer. It
took a moment for the image before him to come into focus.
Then he saw it.
The object was
not on the bottom of the container as he expected, but rather it was floating
in the centersuspended in midaira shimmering globule of mercurylike liquid.
Hovering as if by magic, the liquid tumbled in space. Metallic wavelets rippled
across the droplets surface. The suspended fluid reminded Langdon of a video
he had once seen of a water droplet in zero G. Although he knew the globule was
microscopic, he could see every changing gorge and undulation as the ball of
plasma rolled slowly in suspension.
Its . . .
floating, he said.
It had better
be, Vittoria replied. Antimatter is highly unstable. Energetically speaking,
antimatter is the mirror image of matter, so the two instantly cancel each
other out if they come in contact. Keeping antimatter isolated from matter is a
challenge, of course, because everything on earth is made of matter. The
samples have to be stored without ever touching anything at alleven air.
Langdon was
amazed. Talk about working in a vacuum.
These antimatter
traps? Kohler interrupted, looking amazed as he ran a pallid finger around
ones base. They are your fathers design?
Actually, she
said, they are mine.
Kohler looked up.
Vittorias voice
was unassuming. My father produced the first particles of antimatter but was
stymied by how to store them. I suggested these. Airtight nanocomposite shells
with opposing electromagnets at each end.
It seems your
fathers genius has rubbed off.
Not really. I
borrowed the idea from nature. Portuguese man o wars trap fish between their
tentacles using nematocystic charges. Same principle here. Each canister has
two electromagnets, one at each end. Their opposing magnetic fields intersect
in the center of the canister and hold the antimatter there, suspended in
midvacuum.
Langdon looked
again at the canister. Antimatter floating in a vacuum, not touching anything
at all. Kohler was right. It was genius.
Wheres the
power source for the magnets? Kohler asked.
Vittoria pointed.
In the pillar beneath the trap. The canisters are screwed into a docking port that
continuously recharges them so the magnets never fail.
And if the field
fails?
The obvious. The
antimatter falls out of suspension, hits the bottom of the trap, and we see an
annihilation.
Langdons ears
pricked up. Annihilation? He didnt like the sound of it.
Vittoria looked
unconcerned. Yes. If antimatter and matter make contact, both are destroyed
instantly. Physicists call the process annihilation.
Langdon nodded.
Oh.
It is natures
simplest reaction. A particle of matter and a particle of antimatter combine to
release two new particlescalled photons. A photon is effectively a tiny puff
of light.
Langdon had read
about photonslight particlesthe purest form of energy. He decided to refrain
from asking about Captain Kirks use of photon torpedoes against the Klingons.
So if the antimatter falls, we see a tiny puff of light?
Vittoria
shrugged. Depends what you call tiny. Here, let me demonstrate. She reached
for the canister and started to unscrew it from its charging podium.
Without warning,
Kohler let out a cry of terror and lunged forward, knocking her hands away.
Vittoria! Are you insane?
22
Kohler,
incredibly, was standing for a moment, teetering on two withered legs. His face
was white with fear. Vittoria! You cant remove that trap!
Langdon watched,
bewildered by the directors sudden panic.
Five hundred
nanograms! Kohler said. If you break the magnetic field
Director,
Vittoria assured, its perfectly safe. Every trap has a failsafea back up
battery in case it is removed from its recharger. The specimen remains
suspended even if I remove the canister.
Kohler looked
uncertain. Then, hesitantly, he settled back into his chair.
The batteries
activate automatically, Vittoria said, when the trap is moved from the
recharger. They work for twenty four hours. Like a reserve tank of gas. She
turned to Langdon, as if sensing his discomfort. Antimatter has some
astonishing characteristics, Mr. Langdon, which make it quite dangerous. A ten
milligram samplethe volume of a grain of sandis hypothesized to hold as much
energy as about two hundred metric tons of conventional rocket fuel.
Langdons head
was spinning again.
It is the energy
source of tomorrow. A thousand times more powerful than nuclear energy. One hundred
percent efficient. No byproducts. No radiation. No pollution. A few grams could
power a major city for a week.
Grams? Langdon
stepped uneasily back from the podium.
Dont worry,
Vittoria said. These samples are minuscule fractions of a grammillionths.
Relatively harmless. She reached for the canister again and twisted it from
its docking platform.
Kohler twitched
but did not interfere. As the trap came free, there was a sharp beep, and a
small LED display activated near the base of the trap. The red digits blinked,
counting down from twenty four hours.
24:00:00 . . .
23:59:59 . . .
23:59:58 . . .
Langdon studied
the descending counter and decided it looked unsettlingly like a time bomb.
The battery,
Vittoria explained, will run for the full twenty four hours before dying. It
can be recharged by placing the trap back on the podium. Its designed as a
safety measure, but its also convenient for transport.
Transport?
Kohler looked thunderstruck. You take this stuff out of the lab?
Of course not,
Vittoria said. But the mobility allows us to study it.
Vittoria led
Langdon and Kohler to the far end of the room. She pulled a curtain aside to
reveal a window, beyond which was a large room. The walls, floors, and ceiling
were entirely plated in steel. The room reminded Langdon of the holding tank of
an oil freighter he had once taken to Papua New Guinea to study Hanta body
graffiti.
Its an
annihilation tank, Vittoria declared.
Kohler looked up.
You actually observe annihilations?
My father was
fascinated with the physics of the Big Banglarge amounts of energy from
minuscule kernels of matter. Vittoria pulled open a steel drawer beneath the
window. She placed the trap inside the drawer and closed it. Then she pulled a
lever beside the drawer. A moment later, the trap appeared on the other side of
the glass, rolling smoothly in a wide arc across the metal floor until it came
to a stop near the center of the room.
Vittoria gave a
tight smile. Youre about to witness your first antimatter matter
annihilation. A few millionths of a gram. A relatively minuscule specimen.
Langdon looked
out at the antimatter trap sitting alone on the floor of the enormous tank.
Kohler also turned toward the window, looking uncertain.
Normally,
Vittoria explained, wed have to wait the full twenty four hours until the
batteries died, but this chamber contains magnets beneath the floor that can
override the trap, pulling the antimatter out of suspension. And when the
matter and antimatter touch . . .
Annihilation,
Kohler whispered.
One more thing,
Vittoria said. Antimatter releases pure energy. A one hundred percent
conversion of mass to photons. So dont look directly at the sample. Shield
your eyes.
Langdon was wary,
but he now sensed Vittoria was being overly dramatic. Dont look directly at
the canister? The device was more than thirty yards away, behind an ultrathick
wall of tinted Plexiglas. Moreover, the speck in the canister was invisible,
microscopic. Shield my eyes? Langdon thought. How much energy could that speck
possibly
Vittoria pressed
the button.
Instantly,
Langdon was blinded. A brilliant point of light shone in the canister and then
exploded outward in a shock wave of light that radiated in all directions, erupting
against the window before him with thunderous force. He stumbled back as the
detonation rocked the vault. The light burned bright for a moment, searing, and
then, after an instant, it rushed back inward, absorbing in on itself, and
collapsing into a tiny speck that disappeared to nothing. Langdon blinked in
pain, slowly recovering his eyesight. He squinted into the smoldering chamber.
The canister on the floor had entirely disappeared. Vaporized. Not a trace.
He stared in
wonder. G . . . God.
Vittoria nodded
sadly. Thats precisely what my father said.
23
Kohler was
staring into the annihilation chamber with a look of utter amazement at the
spectacle he had just seen. Robert Langdon was beside him, looking even more
dazed.
I want to see my
father, Vittoria demanded. I showed you the lab. Now I want to see my
father.
Kohler turned
slowly, apparently not hearing her. Why did you wait so long, Vittoria? You
and your father should have told me about this discovery immediately.
Vittoria stared
at him. How many reasons do you want? Director, we can argue about this later.
Right now, I want to see my father.
Do you know what
this technology implies?
Sure, Vittoria
shot back. Revenue for CERN. A lot of it. Now I want
Is that why you
kept it secret? Kohler demanded, clearly baiting her. Because you feared the
board and I would vote to license it out?
It should be
licensed, Vittoria fired back, feeling herself dragged into the argument.
Antimatter is important technology. But its also dangerous. My father and I
wanted time to refine the procedures and make it safe.
In other words,
you didnt trust the board of directors to place prudent science before
financial greed.
Vittoria was
surprised with the indifference in Kohlers tone. There were other issues as
well, she said. My father wanted time to present antimatter in the
appropriate light.
Meaning?
What do you think
I mean? Matter from energy? Something from nothing? Its practically proof
that Genesis is a scientific possibility.
So he didnt
want the religious implications of his discovery lost in an onslaught of
commercialism?
In a manner of
speaking.
And you?
Vittorias
concerns, ironically, were somewhat the opposite. Commercialism was critical
for the success of any new energy source. Although antimatter technology had
staggering potential as an efficient and nonpolluting energy sourceif unveiled
prematurely, antimatter ran the risk of being vilified by the politics and PR
fiascoes that had killed nuclear and solar power. Nuclear had proliferated
before it was safe, and there were accidents. Solar had proliferated before it
was efficient, and people lost money. Both technologies got bad reputations and
withered on the vine.
My interests,
Vittoria said, were a bit less lofty than uniting science and religion.
The
environment, Kohler ventured assuredly.
Limitless
energy. No strip mining. No pollution. No radiation. Antimatter technology
could save the planet.
Or destroy it,
Kohler quipped. Depending on who uses it for what. Vittoria felt a chill
emanating from Kohlers crippled form. Who else knew about this? he asked.
No one,
Vittoria said. I told you that.
Then why do you
think your father was killed?
Vittorias
muscles tightened. I have no idea. He had enemies here at CERN, you know that,
but it couldnt have had anything to do with antimatter. We swore to each other
to keep it between us for another few months, until we were ready.
And youre
certain your father kept his vow of silence?
Now Vittoria was
getting mad. My father has kept tougher vows than that!
And you told no
one?
Of course not!
Kohler exhaled.
He paused, as though choosing his next words carefully. Suppose someone did
find out. And suppose someone gained access to this lab. What do you imagine
they would be after? Did your father have notes down here? Documentation of his
processes?
Director, Ive
been patient. I need some answers now. You keep talking about a break in, but
you saw the retina scan. My father has been vigilant about secrecy and
security.
Humor me,
Kohler snapped, startling her. What would be missing?
I have no idea.
Vittoria angrily scanned the lab. All the antimatter specimens were accounted
for. Her fathers work area looked in order. Nobody came in here, she
declared. Everything up here looks fine.
Kohler looked
surprised. Up here?
Vittoria had said
it instinctively. Yes, here in the upper lab.
Youre using the
lower lab too?
For storage.
Kohler rolled
toward her, coughing again. Youre using the Haz Mat chamber for storage?
Storage of what ?
Hazardous
material, what else! Vittoria was losing her patience. Antimatter.
Kohler lifted
himself on the arms of his chair. There are other specimens? Why the hell
didnt you tell me!
I just did,
Vittoria fired back. And youve barely given me a chance!
We need to check
those specimens, Kohler said. Now.
Specimen,
Vittoria corrected. Singular. And its fine. Nobody could ever
Only one? Kohler
hesitated. Why isnt it up here?
My father wanted
it below the bedrock as a precaution. Its larger than the others.
The look of alarm
that shot between Kohler and Langdon was not lost on Vittoria. Kohler rolled
toward her again. You created a specimen larger than five hundred nanograms?
A necessity,
Vittoria defended. We had to prove the input/yield threshold could be safely
crossed. The question with new fuel sources, she knew, was always one of input
vs. yieldhow much money one had to expend to harvest the fuel. Building an oil
rig to yield a single barrel of oil was a losing endeavor. However, if that
same rig, with minimal added expense, could deliver millions of barrels, then
you were in business. Antimatter was the same way. Firing up sixteen miles of
electromagnets to create a tiny specimen of antimatter expended more energy
than the resulting antimatter contained. In order to prove antimatter efficient
and viable, one had to create specimens of a larger magnitude.
Although
Vittorias father had been hesitant to create a large specimen, Vittoria had
pushed him hard. She argued that in order for antimatter to be taken seriously,
she and her father had to prove two things. First, that cost effective amounts
could be produced. And second, that the specimens could be safely stored. In
the end she had won, and her father had acquiesced against his better judgment.
Not, however, without some firm guidelines regarding secrecy and access. The
antimatter, her father had insisted, would be stored in Haz Mata small granite
hollow, an additional seventy five feet below ground. The specimen would be
their secret. And only the two of them would have access.
Vittoria?
Kohler insisted, his voice tense. How large a specimen did you and your father
create?
Vittoria felt a
wry pleasure inside. She knew the amount would stun even the great Maximilian
Kohler. She pictured the antimatter below. An incredible sight. Suspended
inside the trap, perfectly visible to the naked eye, danced a tiny sphere of
antimatter. This was no microscopic speck. This was a droplet the size of a BB.
Vittoria took a
deep breath. A full quarter of a gram.
The blood drained
from Kohlers face. What! He broke into a fit of coughing. A quarter of a
gram? That converts to . . . almost five kilotons!
Kilotons.
Vittoria hated the word. It was one she and her father never used. A kiloton
was equal to 1,000 metric tons of TNT. Kilotons were for weaponry. Payload.
Destructive power. She and her father spoke in electron volts and
joulesconstructive energy output.
That much
antimatter could literally liquidate everything in a half mile radius! Kohler
exclaimed.
Yes, if
annihilated all at once, Vittoria shot back, which nobody would ever do!
Except someone
who didnt know better. Or if your power source failed! Kohler was already
heading for the elevator.
Which is why my
father kept it in Haz Mat under a fail safe power and a redundant security
system.
Kohler turned,
looking hopeful. You have additional security on Haz Mat?
Yes. A second
retina scan.
Kohler spoke only
two words. Downstairs. Now.
The freight
elevator dropped like a rock.
Another seventy
five feet into the earth.
Vittoria was
certain she sensed fear in both men as the elevator fell deeper. Kohlers
usually emotionless face was taut. I know, Vittoria thought, the sample is
enormous, but the precautions weve taken are
They reached the
bottom.
The elevator
opened, and Vittoria led the way down the dimly lit corridor. Up ahead the
corridor dead ended at a huge steel door. HAZ MAT. The retina scan device
beside the door was identical to the one upstairs. She approached. Carefully,
she aligned her eye with the lens.
She pulled back.
Something was wrong. The usually spotless lens was spattered . . . smeared with
something that looked like . . . blood ? Confused she turned to the two men,
but her gaze met waxen faces. Both Kohler and Langdon were white, their eyes
fixed on the floor at her feet.
Vittoria followed
their line of sight . . . down.
No! Langdon
yelled, reaching for her. But it was too late.
Vittorias vision
locked on the object on the floor. It was both utterly foreign and intimately
familiar to her.
It took only an
instant.
Then, with a
reeling horror, she knew. Staring up at her from the floor, discarded like a
piece of trash, was an eyeball. She would have recognized that shade of hazel
anywhere.
24
The security
technician held his breath as his commander leaned over his shoulder, studying
the bank of security monitors before them. A minute passed.
The commanders
silence was to be expected, the technician told himself. The commander was a
man of rigid protocol. He had not risen to command one of the worlds most
elite security forces by talking first and thinking second.
But what is he
thinking?
The object they
were pondering on the monitor was a canister of some sorta canister with
transparent sides. That much was easy. It was the rest that was difficult.
Inside the
container, as if by some special effect, a small droplet of metallic liquid
seemed to be floating in midair. The droplet appeared and disappeared in the
robotic red blinking of a digital LED descending resolutely, making the
technicians skin crawl.
Can you lighten
the contrast? the commander asked, startling the technician.
The technician
heeded the instruction, and the image lightened somewhat. The commander leaned
forward, squinting closer at something that had just come visible on the base
of the container.
The technician
followed his commanders gaze. Ever so faintly, printed next to the LED was an
acronym. Four capital letters gleaming in the intermittent spurts of light.
Stay here, the
commander said. Say nothing. Ill handle this.
25
Haz Mat. Fifty
meters below ground.
Vittoria Vetra
stumbled forward, almost falling into the retina scan. She sensed the American
rushing to help her, holding her, supporting her weight. On the floor at her
feet, her fathers eyeball stared up. She felt the air crushed from her lungs.
They cut out his eye! Her world twisted. Kohler pressed close behind, speaking.
Langdon guided her. As if in a dream, she found herself gazing into the retina
scan. The mechanism beeped.
The door slid
open.
Even with the
terror of her fathers eye boring into her soul, Vittoria sensed an additional
horror awaited inside. When she leveled her blurry gaze into the room, she
confirmed the next chapter of the nightmare. Before her, the solitary
recharging podium was empty.
The canister was
gone. They had cut out her fathers eye to steal it. The implications came too
fast for her to fully comprehend. Everything had backfired. The specimen that
was supposed to prove antimatter was a safe and viable energy source had been
stolen. But nobody knew this specimen even existed! The truth, however, was
undeniable. Someone had found out. Vittoria could not imagine who. Even Kohler,
whom they said knew everything at CERN, clearly had no idea about the project.
Her father was
dead. Murdered for his genius.
As the grief
strafed her heart, a new emotion surged into Vittorias conscious. This one was
far worse. Crushing. Stabbing at her. The emotion was guilt. Uncontrollable,
relentless guilt. Vittoria knew it had been she who convinced her father to
create the specimen. Against his better judgment. And he had been killed for
it.
A quarter of a
gram . . .
Like any
technologyfire, gunpowder, the combustion enginein the wrong hands, antimatter
could be deadly. Very deadly. Antimatter was a lethal weapon. Potent, and
unstoppable. Once removed from its recharging platform at CERN, the canister
would count down inexorably. A runaway train.
And when time ran
out . . .
A blinding light.
The roar of thunder. Spontaneous incineration. Just the flash . . . and an
empty crater. A big empty crater.
The image of her
fathers quiet genius being used as a tool of destruction was like poison in
her blood. Antimatter was the ultimate terrorist weapon. It had no metallic
parts to trip metal detectors, no chemical signature for dogs to trace, no fuse
to deactivate if the authorities located the canister. The countdown had begun
. . .
Langdon didnt
know what else to do. He took his handkerchief and lay it on the floor over
Leonardo Vetras eyeball. Vittoria was standing now in the doorway of the empty
Haz Mat chamber, her expression wrought with grief and panic. Langdon moved
toward her again, instinctively, but Kohler intervened.
Mr. Langdon?
Kohlers face was expressionless. He motioned Langdon out of earshot. Langdon
reluctantly followed, leaving Vittoria to fend for herself. Youre the
specialist, Kohler said, his whisper intense. I want to know what these
Illuminati bastards intend to do with this antimatter.
Langdon tried to
focus. Despite the madness around him, his first reaction was logical. Academic
rejection. Kohler was still making assumptions. Impossible assumptions. The
Illuminati are defunct, Mr. Kohler. I stand by that. This crime could be
anythingmaybe even another CERN employee who found out about Mr. Vetras
breakthrough and thought the project was too dangerous to continue.
Kohler looked
stunned. You think this is a crime of conscience, Mr. Langdon? Absurd. Whoever
killed Leonardo wanted one thingthe antimatter specimen. And no doubt they
have plans for it.
You mean
terrorism.
Plainly.
But the
Illuminati were not terrorists.
Tell that to
Leonardo Vetra.
Langdon felt a
pang of truth in the statement. Leonardo Vetra had indeed been branded with the
Illuminati symbol. Where had it come from? The sacred brand seemed too
difficult a hoax for someone trying to cover his tracks by casting suspicion
elsewhere. There had to be another explanation.
Again, Langdon
forced himself to consider the implausible. If the Illuminati were still
active, and if they stole the antimatter, what would be their intention? What
would be their target? The answer furnished by his brain was instantaneous.
Langdon dismissed it just as fast. True, the Illuminati had an obvious enemy,
but a wide scale terrorist attack against that enemy was inconceivable. It was
entirely out of character. Yes, the Illuminati had killed people, but individuals,
carefully conscripted targets. Mass destruction was somehow heavy handed.
Langdon paused. Then again, he thought, there would be a rather majestic
eloquence to itantimatter, the ultimate scientific achievement, being used to
vaporize
He refused to accept
the preposterous thought. There is, he said suddenly, a logical explanation
other than terrorism.
Kohler stared,
obviously waiting.
Langdon tried to
sort out the thought. The Illuminati had always wielded tremendous power
through financial means. They controlled banks. They owned gold bullion. They
were even rumored to possess the single most valuable gem on earththe
Illuminati Diamond, a flawless diamond of enormous proportions. Money,
Langdon said. The antimatter could have been stolen for financial gain.
Kohler looked
incredulous. Financial gain? Where does one sell a droplet of antimatter?
Not the
specimen, Langdon countered. The technology. Antimatter technology must be
worth a mint. Maybe someone stole the specimen to do analysis and R and D.
Industrial
espionage? But that canister has twenty four hours before the batteries die.
The researchers would blow themselves up before they learned anything at all.
They could
recharge it before it explodes. They could build a compatible recharging podium
like the ones here at CERN.
In twenty four
hours? Kohler challenged. Even if they stole the schematics, a recharger like
that would take months to engineer, not hours!
Hes right.
Vittorias voice was frail.
Both men turned.
Vittoria was moving toward them, her gait as tremulous as her words.
Hes right.
Nobody could reverse engineer a recharger in time. The interface alone would
take weeks. Flux filters, servo coils, power conditioning alloys, all
calibrated to the specific energy grade of the locale.
Langdon frowned.
The point was taken. An antimatter trap was not something one could simply plug
into a wall socket. Once removed from CERN, the canister was on a one way,
twenty four hour trip to oblivion.
Which left only
one, very disturbing, conclusion.
We need to call
Interpol, Vittoria said. Even to herself, her voice sounded distant. We need
to call the proper authorities. Immediately.
Kohler shook his
head. Absolutely not.
The words stunned
her. No? What do you mean?
You and your
father have put me in a very difficult position here.
Director, we
need help. We need to find that trap and get it back here before someone gets
hurt. We have a responsibility!
We have a
responsibility to think, Kohler said, his tone hardening. This situation
could have very, very serious repercussions for CERN.
Youre worried
about CERNs reputation ? Do you know what that canister could do to an urban
area? It has a blast radius of a half mile! Nine city blocks!
Perhaps you and
your father should have considered that before you created the specimen.
Vittoria felt
like shed been stabbed. But . . . we took every precaution.
Apparently, it
was not enough.
But nobody knew
about the antimatter. She realized, of course, it was an absurd argument. Of
course somebody knew. Someone had found out.
Vittoria had told
no one. That left only two explanations. Either her father had taken someone
into his confidence without telling her, which made no sense because it was her
father who had sworn them both to secrecy, or she and her father had been
monitored. The cell phone maybe? She knew they had spoken a few times while
Vittoria was traveling. Had they said too much? It was possible. There was also
their E mail. But they had been discreet, hadnt they? CERNs security system?
Had they been monitored somehow without their knowledge? She knew none of that
mattered anymore. What was done, was done. My father is dead.
The thought
spurred her to action. She pulled her cell phone from her shorts pocket.
Kohler
accelerated toward her, coughing violently, eyes flashing anger. Who . . . are
you calling?
CERNs
switchboard. They can connect us to Interpol.
Think! Kohler
choked, screeching to a halt in front of her. Are you really so naive? That
canister could be anywhere in the world by now. No intelligence agency on earth
could possibly mobilize to find it in time.
So we do nothing
? Vittoria felt compunction challenging a man in such frail health, but the
director was so far out of line she didnt even know him anymore.
We do what is
smart, Kohler said. We dont risk CERNs reputation by involving authorities
who cannot help anyway. Not yet. Not without thinking.
Vittoria knew
there was logic somewhere in Kohlers argument, but she also knew that logic,
by definition, was bereft of moral responsibility. Her father had lived for
moral responsibilitycareful science, accountability, faith in mans inherent
goodness. Vittoria believed in those things too, but she saw them in terms of
karma. Turning away from Kohler, she snapped open her phone.
You cant do
that, he said.
Just try and
stop me.
Kohler did not
move.
An instant later,
Vittoria realized why. This far underground, her cell phone had no dial tone.
Fuming, she
headed for the elevator.
26
The Hassassin
stood at the end of the stone tunnel. His torch still burned bright, the smoke
mixing with the smell of moss and stale air. Silence surrounded him. The iron
door blocking his way looked as old as the tunnel itself, rusted but still
holding strong. He waited in the darkness, trusting.
It was almost
time.
Janus had
promised someone on the inside would open the door. The Hassassin marveled at
the betrayal. He would have waited all night at that door to carry out his
task, but he sensed it would not be necessary. He was working for determined
men.
Minutes later,
exactly at the appointed hour, there was a loud clank of heavy keys on the
other side of the door. Metal scraped on metal as multiple locks disengaged.
One by one, three huge deadbolts ground open. The locks creaked as if they had
not been used in centuries. Finally all three were open.
Then there was
silence.
The Hassassin
waited patiently, five minutes, exactly as he had been told. Then, with
electricity in his blood, he pushed. The great door swung open.
27
Vittoria, I will
not allow it! Kohlers breath was labored and getting worse as the Haz Mat
elevator ascended.
Vittoria blocked
him out. She craved sanctuary, something familiar in this place that no longer
felt like home. She knew it was not to be. Right now, she had to swallow the
pain and act. Get to a phone.
Robert Langdon
was beside her, silent as usual. Vittoria had given up wondering who the man
was. A specialist? Could Kohler be any less specific? Mr. Langdon can help us
find your fathers killer. Langdon was being no help at all. His warmth and
kindness seemed genuine, but he was clearly hiding something. They both were.
Kohler was at her
again. As director of CERN, I have a responsibility to the future of science.
If you amplify this into an international incident and CERN suffers
Future of
science? Vittoria turned on him. Do you really plan to escape accountability
by never admitting this antimatter came from CERN? Do you plan to ignore the
peoples lives weve put in danger?
Not we, Kohler
countered. You. You and your father.
Vittoria looked
away.
And as far as
endangering lives, Kohler said, life is exactly what this is about. You know
antimatter technology has enormous implications for life on this planet. If
CERN goes bankrupt, destroyed by scandal, everybody loses. Mans future is in
the hands of places like CERN, scientists like you and your father, working to
solve tomorrows problems.
Vittoria had
heard Kohlers Science as God lecture before, and she never bought it. Science
itself caused half the problems it was trying to solve. Progress was Mother
Earths ultimate malignancy.
Scientific
advancement carries risk, Kohler argued. It always has. Space programs,
genetic research, medicinethey all make mistakes. Science needs to survive its
own blunders, at any cost. For everyone s sake.
Vittoria was
amazed at Kohlers ability to weigh moral issues with scientific detachment.
His intellect seemed to be the product of an icy divorce from his inner spirit.
You think CERN is so critical to the earths future that we should be immune
from moral responsibility?
Do not argue
morals with me. You crossed a line when you made that specimen, and you have
put this entire facility at risk. Im trying to protect not only the jobs of
the three thousand scientists who work here, but also your fathers reputation.
Think about him. A man like your father does not deserve to be remembered as
the creator of a weapon of mass destruction.
Vittoria felt his
spear hit home. I am the one who convinced my father to create that specimen.
This is my fault!
When the door
opened, Kohler was still talking. Vittoria stepped out of the elevator, pulled
out her phone, and tried again.
Still no dial
tone. Damn! She headed for the door.
Vittoria, stop.
The director sounded asthmatic now, as he accelerated after her. Slow down. We
need to talk.
Basta di
parlare!
Think of your
father, Kohler urged. What would he do?
She kept going.
Vittoria, I
havent been totally honest with you.
Vittoria felt her
legs slow.
I dont know
what I was thinking, Kohler said. I was just trying to protect you. Just tell
me what you want. We need to work together here.
Vittoria came to
a full stop halfway across the lab, but she did not turn. I want to find the
antimatter. And I want to know who killed my father. She waited.
Kohler sighed.
Vittoria, we already know who killed your father. Im sorry.
Now Vittoria
turned. You what?
I didnt know
how to tell you. Its a difficult
You know who
killed my father?
We have a very
good idea, yes. The killer left somewhat of a calling card. Thats the reason I
called Mr. Langdon. The group claiming responsibility is his specialty.
The group? A
terrorist group?
Vittoria, they
stole a quarter gram of antimatter.
Vittoria looked
at Robert Langdon standing there across the room. Everything began falling into
place. That explains some of the secrecy. She was amazed it hadnt occurred to
her earlier. Kohler had called the authorities after all. The authorities. Now it
seemed obvious. Robert Langdon was American, clean cut, conservative, obviously
very sharp. Who else could it be? Vittoria should have guessed from the start.
She felt a newfound hope as she turned to him.
Mr. Langdon, I
want to know who killed my father. And I want to know if your agency can find
the antimatter.
Langdon looked
flustered. My agency?
Youre with U.S.
Intelligence, I assume.
Actually . . .
no.
Kohler
intervened. Mr. Langdon is a professor of art history at Harvard University.
Vittoria felt
like she had been doused with ice water. An art teacher?
He is a
specialist in cult symbology. Kohler sighed. Vittoria, we believe your father
was killed by a satanic cult.
Vittoria heard
the words in her mind, but she was unable to process them. A satanic cult.
The group
claiming responsibility calls themselves the Illuminati.
Vittoria looked
at Kohler and then at Langdon, wondering if this was some kind of perverse
joke. The Illuminati? she demanded. As in the Bavarian Illuminati?
Kohler looked
stunned. Youve heard of them?
Vittoria felt the
tears of frustration welling right below the surface. Bavarian Illuminati: New
World Order. Steve Jackson computer games. Half the techies here play it on the
Internet. Her voice cracked. But I dont understand . . .
Kohler shot
Langdon a confused look.
Langdon nodded.
Popular game. Ancient brotherhood takes over the world. Semihistorical. I
didnt know it was in Europe too.
Vittoria was
bewildered. What are you talking about? The Illuminati? Its a computer game!
Vittoria,
Kohler said, the Illuminati is the group claiming responsibility for your
fathers death.
Vittoria mustered
every bit of courage she could find to fight the tears. She forced herself to
hold on and assess the situation logically. But the harder she focused, the
less she understood. Her father had been murdered. CERN had suffered a major
breach of security. There was a bomb counting down somewhere that she was
responsible for. And the director had nominated an art teacher to help them
find a mythical fraternity of Satanists.
Vittoria felt
suddenly all alone. She turned to go, but Kohler cut her off. He reached for
something in his pocket. He produced a crumpled piece of fax paper and handed
it to her.
Vittoria swayed in
horror as her eyes hit the image.
They branded
him, Kohler said. They branded his goddamn chest.
28
Secretary Sylvie
Baudeloque was now in a panic. She paced outside the directors empty office.
Where the hell is he? What do I do?
It had been a bizarre
day. Of course, any day working for Maximilian Kohler had the potential to be
strange, but Kohler had been in rare form today.
Find me Leonardo
Vetra! he had demanded when Sylvie arrived this morning.
Dutifully, Sylvie
paged, phoned, and E mailed Leonardo Vetra.
Nothing.
So Kohler had
left in a huff, apparently to go find Vetra himself. When he rolled back in a
few hours later, Kohler looked decidedly not well . . . not that he ever
actually looked well, but he looked worse than usual. He locked himself in his
office, and she could hear him on his modem, his phone, faxing, talking. Then
Kohler rolled out again. He hadnt been back since.
Sylvie had
decided to ignore the antics as yet another Kohlerian melodrama, but she began
to get concerned when Kohler failed to return at the proper time for his daily
injections; the directors physical condition required regular treatment, and
when he decided to push his luck, the results were never prettyrespiratory
shock, coughing fits, and a mad dash by the infirmary personnel. Sometimes
Sylvie thought Maximilian Kohler had a death wish.
She considered
paging him to remind him, but shed learned charity was something Kohlerss
pride despised. Last week, he had become so enraged with a visiting scientist
who had shown him undue pity that Kohler clambered to his feet and threw a
clipboard at the mans head. King Kohler could be surprisingly agile when he
was pissé.
At the moment,
however, Sylvies concern for the directors health was taking a back burner .
. . replaced by a much more pressing dilemma. The CERN switchboard had phoned
five minutes ago in a frenzy to say they had an urgent call for the director.
Hes not
available, Sylvie had said.
Then the CERN
operator told her who was calling.
Sylvie half
laughed aloud. Youre kidding, right? She listened, and her face clouded with
disbelief. And your caller ID confirms Sylvie was frowning. I see. Okay.
Can you ask what the She sighed. No. Thats fine. Tell him to hold. Ill
locate the director right away. Yes, I understand. Ill hurry.
But Sylvie had
not been able to find the director. She had called his cell line three times
and each time gotten the same message: The mobile customer you are trying to
reach is out of range. Out of range? How far could he go? So Sylvie had dialed
Kohlers beeper. Twice. No response. Most unlike him. Shed even E mailed his
mobile computer. Nothing. It was like the man had disappeared off the face of
the earth.
So what do I do?
she now wondered.
Short of
searching CERNs entire complex herself, Sylvie knew there was only one other
way to get the directors attention. He would not be pleased, but the man on
the phone was not someone the director should keep waiting. Nor did it sound
like the caller was in any mood to be told the director was unavailable.
Startled with her
own boldness, Sylvie made her decision. She walked into Kohlers office and
went to the metal box on his wall behind his desk. She opened the cover, stared
at the controls, and found the correct button.
Then she took a
deep breath and grabbed the microphone.
29
Vittoria did not
remember how they had gotten to the main elevator, but they were there.
Ascending. Kohler was behind her, his breathing labored now. Langdons
concerned gaze passed through her like a ghost. He had taken the fax from her
hand and slipped it in his jacket pocket away from her sight, but the image was
still burned into her memory.
As the elevator
climbed, Vittorias world swirled into darkness. Papa! In her mind she reached
for him. For just a moment, in the oasis of her memory, Vittoria was with him.
She was nine years old, rolling down hills of edelweiss flowers, the Swiss sky
spinning overhead.
Papa! Papa!
Leonardo Vetra
was laughing beside her, beaming. What is it, angel?
Papa! she
giggled, nuzzling close to him. Ask me whats the matter!
But you look
happy, sweetie. Why would I ask you whats the matter?
Just ask me.
He shrugged.
Whats the matter?
She immediately
started laughing. Whats the matter? Everything is the matter! Rocks! Trees!
Atoms! Even anteaters! Everything is the matter!
He laughed. Did
you make that up?
Pretty smart,
huh?
My little
Einstein.
She frowned. He
has stupid hair. I saw his picture.
Hes got a smart
head, though. I told you what he proved, right?
Her eyes widened
with dread. Dad! No! You promised !
E=MC2 ! He
tickled her playfully. E=MC2 !
No math ! I told
you! I hate it!
Im glad you
hate it. Because girls arent even allowed to do math.
Vittoria stopped
short. They arent ?
Of course not.
Everyone knows that. Girls play with dollies. Boys do math. No math for girls.
Im not even permitted to talk to little girls about math.
What! But thats
not fair!
Rules are rules.
Absolutely no math for little girls.
Vittoria looked
horrified. But dolls are boring!
Im sorry, her
father said. I could tell you about math, but if I got caught . . . He looked
nervously around the deserted hills.
Vittoria followed
his gaze. Okay, she whispered, just tell me quietly.
The motion of the
elevator startled her. Vittoria opened her eyes. He was gone.
Reality rushed
in, wrapping a frosty grip around her. She looked to Langdon. The earnest
concern in his gaze felt like the warmth of a guardian angel, especially in the
aura of Kohlers chill.
A single sentient
thought began pounding at Vittoria with unrelenting force.
Where is the
antimatter?
The horrifying
answer was only a moment away.
30
Maximilian
Kohler. Kindly call your office immediately.
Blazing sunbeams
flooded Langdons eyes as the elevator doors opened into the main atrium.
Before the echo of the announcement on the intercom overhead faded, every
electronic device on Kohlers wheelchair started beeping and buzzing
simultaneously. His pager. His phone. His E mail. Kohler glanced down at the
blinking lights in apparent bewilderment. The director had resurfaced, and he
was back in range.
Director Kohler.
Please call your office.
The sound of his
name on the PA seemed to startle Kohler.
He glanced up,
looking angered and then almost immediately concerned. Langdons eyes met his,
and Vittorias too. The three of them were motionless a moment, as if all the
tension between them had been erased and replaced by a single, unifying
foreboding.
Kohler took his
cell phone from the armrest. He dialed an extension and fought off another
coughing fit. Vittoria and Langdon waited.
This is . . .
Director Kohler, he said, wheezing. Yes? I was subterranean, out of range.
He listened, his gray eyes widening. Who? Yes, patch it through. There was a pause.
Hello? This is Maximilian Kohler. I am the director of CERN. With whom am I
speaking?
Vittoria and
Langdon watched in silence as Kohler listened.
It would be
unwise, Kohler finally said, to speak of this by phone. I will be there
immediately. He was coughing again. Meet me . . . at Leonardo da Vinci
Airport. Forty minutes. Kohlers breath seemed to be failing him now. He
descended into a fit of coughing and barely managed to choke out the words,
Locate the canister immediately . . . I am coming. Then he clicked off his
phone.
Vittoria ran to
Kohlers side, but Kohler could no longer speak. Langdon watched as Vittoria
pulled out her cell phone and paged CERNs infirmary. Langdon felt like a ship
on the periphery of a storm . . . tossed but detached.
Meet me at
Leonardo da Vinci Airport. Kohlers words echoed.
The uncertain
shadows that had fogged Langdons mind all morning, in a single instant,
solidified into a vivid image. As he stood there in the swirl of confusion, he
felt a door inside him open . . . as if some mystic threshold had just been
breached. The ambigram. The murdered priest/scientist. The antimatter. And now
. . . the target. Leonardo da Vinci Airport could only mean one thing. In a
moment of stark realization, Langdon knew he had just crossed over. He had
become a believer.
Five kilotons.
Let there be light.
Two paramedics
materialized, racing across the atrium in white smocks. They knelt by Kohler,
putting an oxygen mask on his face. Scientists in the hall stopped and stood
back.
Kohler took two
long pulls, pushed the mask aside, and still gasping for air, looked up at
Vittoria and Langdon. Rome.
Rome? Vittoria
demanded. The antimatter is in Rome? Who called?
Kohlers face was
twisted, his gray eyes watering. The Swiss . . . He choked on the words, and
the paramedics put the mask back over his face. As they prepared to take him
away, Kohler reached up and grabbed Langdons arm.
Langdon nodded.
He knew.
Go . . . Kohler
wheezed beneath his mask. Go . . . call me . . . Then the paramedics were
rolling him away.
Vittoria stood
riveted to the floor, watching him go. Then she turned to Langdon. Rome? But .
. . what was that about the Swiss ?
Langdon put a
hand on her shoulder, barely whispering the words. The Swiss Guard, he said.
The sworn sentinels of Vatican City.
31
The X 33 space
plane roared into the sky and arched south toward Rome. On board, Langdon sat
in silence. The last fifteen minutes had been a blur. Now that he had finished
briefing Vittoria on the Illuminati and their covenant against the Vatican, the
scope of this situation was starting to sink in.
What the hell am
I doing? Langdon wondered. I should have gone home when I had the chance! Deep
down, though, he knew hed never had the chance.
Langdons better
judgment had screamed at him to return to Boston. Nonetheless, academic
astonishment had somehow vetoed prudence. Everything he had ever believed about
the demise of the Illuminati was suddenly looking like a brilliant sham. Part
of him craved proof. Confirmation. There was also a question of conscience.
With Kohler ailing and Vittoria on her own, Langdon knew that if his knowledge
of the Illuminati could assist in any way, he had a moral obligation to be
here.
There was more,
though. Although Langdon was ashamed to admit it, his initial horror on hearing
about the antimatters location was not only the danger to human life in
Vatican City, but for something else as well.
Art.
The worlds
largest art collection was now sitting on a time bomb. The Vatican Museum
housed over 60,000 priceless pieces in 1,407 roomsMichelangelo, da Vinci,
Bernini, Botticelli. Langdon wondered if all of the art could possibly be
evacuated if necessary. He knew it was impossible. Many of the pieces were
sculptures weighing tons. Not to mention, the greatest treasures were
architecturalthe Sistine Chapel, St. Peters Basilica, Michelangelos famed
spiral staircase leading to the Musèo Vaticano priceless testaments to
mans creative genius. Langdon wondered how much time was left on the canister.
Thanks for
coming, Vittoria said, her voice quiet.
Langdon emerged
from his daydream and looked up. Vittoria was sitting across the aisle. Even in
the stark fluorescent light of the cabin, there was an aura of composure about
heran almost magnetic radiance of wholeness. Her breathing seemed deeper now,
as if a spark of self preservation had ignited within her . . . a craving for
justice and retribution, fueled by a daughters love.
Vittoria had not
had time to change from her shorts and sleeveless top, and her tawny legs were
now goose bumped in the cold of the plane. Instinctively Langdon removed his
jacket and offered it to her.
American
chivalry? She accepted, her eyes thanking him silently.
The plane jostled
across some turbulence, and Langdon felt a surge of danger. The windowless
cabin felt cramped again, and he tried to imagine himself in an open field. The
notion, he realized, was ironic. He had been in an open field when it had
happened. Crushing darkness. He pushed the memory from his mind. Ancient
history.
Vittoria was
watching him. Do you believe in God, Mr. Langdon?
The question
startled him. The earnestness in Vittorias voice was even more disarming than
the inquiry. Do I believe in God? He had hoped for a lighter topic of
conversation to pass the trip.
A spiritual
conundrum, Langdon thought. Thats what my friends call me. Although he studied
religion for years, Langdon was not a religious man. He respected the power of
faith, the benevolence of churches, the strength religion gave to many people .
. . and yet, for him, the intellectual suspension of disbelief that was
imperative if one were truly going to believe had always proved too big an
obstacle for his academic mind. I want to believe, he heard himself say.
Vittorias reply
carried no judgment or challenge. So why dont you?
He chuckled.
Well, its not that easy. Having faith requires leaps of faith, cerebral
acceptance of miraclesimmaculate conceptions and divine interventions. And
then there are the codes of conduct. The Bible, the Koran, Buddhist scripture .
. . they all carry similar requirementsand similar penalties. They claim that
if I dont live by a specific code I will go to hell. I cant imagine a God who
would rule that way.
I hope you dont
let your students dodge questions that shamelessly.
The comment
caught him off guard. What?
Mr. Langdon, I
did not ask if you believe what man says about God. I asked if you believed in
God. There is a difference. Holy scripture is stories . . . legends and history
of mans quest to understand his own need for meaning. I am not asking you to
pass judgment on literature. I am asking if you believe in God. When you lie
out under the stars, do you sense the divine? Do you feel in your gut that you
are staring up at the work of Gods hand?
Langdon took a
long moment to consider it.
Im prying,
Vittoria apologized.
No, I just . .
.
Certainly you
must debate issues of faith with your classes.
Endlessly.
And you play
devils advocate, I imagine. Always fueling the debate.
Langdon smiled.
You must be a teacher too.
No, but I
learned from a master. My father could argue two sides of a Möbius Strip.
Langdon laughed,
picturing the artful crafting of a Möbius Stripa twisted ring of paper,
which technically possessed only one side. Langdon had first seen the single
sided shape in the artwork of M. C. Escher. May I ask you a question, Ms.
Vetra?
Call me
Vittoria. Ms. Vetra makes me feel old.
He sighed
inwardly, suddenly sensing his own age. Vittoria, Im Robert.
You had a
question.
Yes. As a
scientist and the daughter of a Catholic priest, what do you think of
religion?
Vittoria paused,
brushing a lock of hair from her eyes. Religion is like language or dress. We
gravitate toward the practices with which we were raised. In the end, though,
we are all proclaiming the same thing. That life has meaning. That we are
grateful for the power that created us.
Langdon was
intrigued. So youre saying that whether you are a Christian or a Muslim
simply depends on where you were born?
Isnt it
obvious? Look at the diffusion of religion around the globe.
So faith is
random?
Hardly. Faith is
universal. Our specific methods for understanding it are arbitrary. Some of us
pray to Jesus, some of us go to Mecca, some of us study subatomic particles. In
the end we are all just searching for truth, that which is greater than
ourselves.
Langdon wished
his students could express themselves so clearly. Hell, he wished he could
express himself so clearly. And God? he asked. Do you believe in God?
Vittoria was
silent for a long time. Science tells me God must exist. My mind tells me I
will never understand God. And my heart tells me I am not meant to.
Hows that for
concise, he thought. So you believe God is fact, but we will never understand
Him.
Her, she said
with a smile. Your Native Americans had it right.
Langdon chuckled.
Mother Earth.
Gaea. The planet
is an organism. All of us are cells with different purposes. And yet we are
intertwined. Serving each other. Serving the whole.
Looking at her,
Langdon felt something stir within him that he had not felt in a long time.
There was a bewitching clarity in her eyes . . . a purity in her voice. He felt
drawn.
Mr. Langdon, let
me ask you another question.
Robert, he
said. Mr. Langdon makes me feel old. I am old!
If you dont
mind my asking, Robert, how did you get involved with the Illuminati?
Langdon thought
back. Actually, it was money.
Vittoria looked
disappointed. Money? Consulting, you mean?
Langdon laughed,
realizing how it must have sounded. No. Money as in currency. He reached in
his pants pocket and pulled out some money. He found a one dollar bill. I
became fascinated with the cult when I first learned that U.S. currency is
covered with Illuminati symbology.
Vittorias eyes
narrowed, apparently not knowing whether or not to take him seriously.
Langdon handed
her the bill. Look at the back. See the Great Seal on the left?
Vittoria turned
the one dollar bill over. You mean the pyramid?
The pyramid. Do
you know what pyramids have to do with U.S. history?
Vittoria
shrugged.
Exactly,
Langdon said. Absolutely nothing.
Vittoria frowned.
So why is it the central symbol of your Great Seal?
An eerie bit of
history, Langdon said. The pyramid is an occult symbol representing a
convergence upward, toward the ultimate source of Illumination. See whats
above it?
Vittoria studied
the bill. An eye inside a triangle.
Its called the
trinacria. Have you ever seen that eye in a triangle anywhere else?
Vittoria was
silent a moment. Actually, yes, but Im not sure . . .
Its emblazoned
on Masonic lodges around the world.
The symbol is
Masonic?
Actually, no.
Its Illuminati. They called it their shining delta. A call for enlightened
change. The eye signifies the Illuminatis ability to infiltrate and watch all
things. The shining triangle represents enlightenment. And the triangle is also
the Greek letter delta, which is the mathematical symbol for
Change.
Transition.
Langdon smiled.
I forgot I was talking to a scientist.
So youre saying
the U.S. Great Seal is a call for enlightened, all seeing change?
Some would call
it a New World Order.
Vittoria seemed
startled. She glanced down at the bill again. The writing under the pyramid
says Novus . . . Ordo . . .
Novus Ordo
Seculorum, Langdon said. It means New Secular Order.
Secular as in
non religious?
Nonreligious.
The phrase not only clearly states the Illuminati objective, but it also
blatantly contradicts the phrase beside it. In God We Trust.
Vittoria seemed
troubled. But how could all this symbology end up on the most powerful
currency in the world?
Most academics
believe it was through Vice President Henry Wallace. He was an upper echelon
Mason and certainly had ties to the Illuminati. Whether it was as a member or
innocently under their influence, nobody knows. But it was Wallace who sold the
design of the Great Seal to the president.
How? Why would
the president have agreed to
The president
was Franklin D. Roosevelt. Wallace simply told him Novus Ordo Seculorum meant
New Deal.
Vittoria seemed
skeptical. And Roosevelt didnt have anyone else look at the symbol before
telling the Treasury to print it?
No need. He and
Wallace were like brothers.
Brothers?
Check your
history books, Langdon said with a smile. Franklin D. Roosevelt was a well
known Mason.
32
Langdon held his
breath as the X 33 spiraled into Romes Leonardo da Vinci International
Airport. Vittoria sat across from him, eyes closed as if trying to will the
situation into control. The craft touched down and taxied to a private hangar.
Sorry for the
slow flight, the pilot apologized, emerging from the cockpit. Had to trim her
back. Noise regulations over populated areas.
Langdon checked
his watch. They had been airborne thirty seven minutes.
The pilot popped
the outer door. Anybody want to tell me whats going on?
Neither Vittoria
nor Langdon responded.
Fine, he said,
stretching. Ill be in the cockpit with the air conditioning and my music.
Just me and Garth.
The late
afternoon sun blazed outside the hangar. Langdon carried his tweed jacket over
his shoulder. Vittoria turned her face skyward and inhaled deeply, as if the
suns rays somehow transferred to her some mystical replenishing energy.
Mediterraneans,
Langdon mused, already sweating.
Little old for
cartoons, arent you? Vittoria asked, without opening her eyes.
Im sorry?
Your wristwatch.
I saw it on the plane.
Langdon flushed
slightly. He was accustomed to having to defend his timepiece. The collectors
edition Mickey Mouse watch had been a childhood gift from his parents. Despite
the contorted foolishness of Mickeys outstretched arms designating the hour,
it was the only watch Langdon had ever worn. Waterproof and glow in the dark,
it was perfect for swimming laps or walking unlit college paths at night. When
Langdons students questioned his fashion sense, he told them he wore Mickey as
a daily reminder to stay young at heart.
Its six
oclock, he said.
Vittoria nodded,
eyes still closed. I think our rides here.
Langdon heard the
distant whine, looked up, and felt a sinking feeling. Approaching from the
north was a helicopter, slicing low across the runway. Langdon had been on a
helicopter once in the Andean Palpa Valley looking at the Nazca sand drawings
and had not enjoyed it one bit. A flying shoebox. After a morning of space
plane rides, Langdon had hoped the Vatican would send a car.
Apparently not.
The chopper
slowed overhead, hovered a moment, and dropped toward the runway in front of
them. The craft was white and carried a coat of arms emblazoned on the sidetwo
skeleton keys crossing a shield and papal crown. He knew the symbol well. It
was the traditional seal of the Vaticanthe sacred symbol of the Holy See or
holy seat of government, the seat being literally the ancient throne of St.
Peter.
The Holy Chopper,
Langdon groaned, watching the craft land. Hed forgotten the Vatican owned one
of these things, used for transporting the Pope to the airport, to meetings, or
to his summer palace in Gandolfo. Langdon definitely would have preferred a
car.
The pilot jumped
from the cockpit and strode toward them across the tarmac.
Now it was
Vittoria who looked uneasy. Thats our pilot?
Langdon shared
her concern. To fly, or not to fly. That is the question.
The pilot looked
like he was festooned for a Shakespearean melodrama. His puffy tunic was
vertically striped in brilliant blue and gold. He wore matching pantaloons and
spats. On his feet were black flats that looked like slippers. On top of it
all, he wore a black felt beret.
Traditional
Swiss Guard uniforms, Langdon explained. Designed by Michelangelo himself.
As the man drew closer, Langdon winced. I admit, not one of Michelangelos
better efforts.
Despite the mans
garish attire, Langdon could tell the pilot meant business. He moved toward
them with all the rigidity and dignity of a U.S. Marine. Langdon had read many
times about the rigorous requirements for becoming one of the elite Swiss
Guard. Recruited from one of Switzerlands four Catholic cantons, applicants
had to be Swiss males between nineteen and thirty years old, at least 5 feet 6
inches, trained by the Swiss Army, and unmarried. This imperial corps was
envied by world governments as the most allegiant and deadly security force in
the world.
You are from
CERN? the guard asked, arriving before them. His voice was steely.
Yes, sir,
Langdon replied.
You made
remarkable time, he said, giving the X 33 a mystified stare. He turned to
Vittoria. Maam, do you have any other clothing?
I beg your
pardon?
He motioned to
her legs. Short pants are not permitted inside Vatican City.
Langdon glanced
down at Vittorias legs and frowned. He had forgotten. Vatican City had a
strict ban on visible legs above the kneeboth male and female. The regulation
was a way of showing respect for the sanctity of Gods city.
This is all I
have, she said. We came in a hurry.
The guard nodded,
clearly displeased. He turned next to Langdon. Are you carrying any weapons?
Weapons? Langdon
thought. Im not even carrying a change of underwear! He shook his head.
The officer
crouched at Langdons feet and began patting him down, starting at his socks.
Trusting guy, Langdon thought. The guards strong hands moved up Langdons
legs, coming uncomfortably close to his groin. Finally they moved up to his
chest and shoulders. Apparently content Langdon was clean, the guard turned to
Vittoria. He ran his eyes up her legs and torso.
Vittoria glared.
Dont even think about it.
The guard fixed
Vittoria with a gaze clearly intended to intimidate. Vittoria did not flinch.
Whats that?
the guard said, pointing to a faint square bulge in the front pocket of her
shorts.
Vittoria removed
an ultrathin cell phone. The guard took it, clicked it on, waited for a dial
tone, and then, apparently satisfied that it was indeed nothing more than a
phone, returned it to her. Vittoria slid it back into her pocket.
Turn around,
please, the guard said.
Vittoria obliged,
holding her arms out and rotating a full 360 degrees.
The guard
carefully studied her. Langdon had already decided that Vittorias form fitting
shorts and blouse were not bulging anywhere they shouldnt have been.
Apparently the guard came to the same conclusion.
Thank you. This
way please.
The Swiss Guard
chopper churned in neutral as Langdon and Vittoria approached. Vittoria boarded
first, like a seasoned pro, barely even stooping as she passed beneath the
whirling rotors. Langdon held back a moment.
No chance of a
car? he yelled, half joking to the Swiss Guard, who was climbing in the
pilots seat.
The man did not
answer.
Langdon knew that
with Romes maniacal drivers, flying was probably safer anyway. He took a deep
breath and boarded, stooping cautiously as he passed beneath the spinning
rotors.
As the guard
fired up the engines, Vittoria called out, Have you located the canister?
The guard glanced
over his shoulder, looking confused. The what?
The canister.
You called CERN about a canister?
The man shrugged.
No idea what youre talking about. Weve been very busy today. My commander
told me to pick you up. Thats all I know.
Vittoria gave
Langdon an unsettled look.
Buckle up,
please, the pilot said as the engine revved.
Langdon reached
for his seat belt and strapped himself in. The tiny fuselage seemed to shrink
around him. Then with a roar, the craft shot up and banked sharply north toward
Rome.
Rome . . . the
caput mundi, where Caesar once ruled, where St. Peter was crucified. The cradle
of modern civilization. And at its core . . . a ticking bomb.
33
Rome from the air
is a labyrinthan indecipherable maze of ancient roadways winding around
buildings, fountains, and crumbling ruins.
The Vatican
chopper stayed low in the sky as it sliced northwest through the permanent smog
layer coughed up by the congestion below. Langdon gazed down at the mopeds,
sight seeing buses, and armies of miniature Fiat sedans buzzing around rotaries
in all directions. Koyaanisqatsi, he thought, recalling the Hopi term for life
out of balance.
Vittoria sat in
silent determination in the seat beside him.
The chopper
banked hard.
His stomach
dropping, Langdon gazed farther into the distance. His eyes found the crumbling
ruins of the Roman Coliseum. The Coliseum, Langdon had always thought, was one
of historys greatest ironies. Now a dignified symbol for the rise of human
culture and civilization, the stadium had been built to host centuries of
barbaric eventshungry lions shredding prisoners, armies of slaves battling to
the death, gang rapes of exotic women captured from far off lands, as well as
public beheadings and castrations. It was ironic, Langdon thought, or perhaps
fitting, that the Coliseum had served as the architectural blueprint for
Harvards Soldier Fieldthe football stadium where the ancient traditions of
savagery were reenacted every fall . . . crazed fans screaming for bloodshed as
Harvard battled Yale.
As the chopper
headed north, Langdon spied the Roman Forumthe heart of pre Christian Rome. The
decaying columns looked like toppled gravestones in a cemetery that had somehow
avoided being swallowed by the metropolis surrounding it.
To the west the
wide basin of the Tiber River wound enormous arcs across the city. Even from
the air Langdon could tell the water was deep. The churning currents were
brown, filled with silt and foam from heavy rains.
Straight ahead,
the pilot said, climbing higher.
Langdon and
Vittoria looked out and saw it. Like a mountain parting the morning fog, the
colossal dome rose out of the haze before them: St. Peters Basilica.
Now that,
Langdon said to Vittoria, is something Michelangelo got right.
Langdon had never
seen St. Peters from the air. The marble façade blazed like fire in the
afternoon sun. Adorned with 140 statues of saints, martyrs, and angels, the
Herculean edifice stretched two football fields wide and a staggering six long.
The cavernous interior of the basilica had room for over 60,000 worshipers . .
. over one hundred times the population of Vatican City, the smallest country
in the world.
Incredibly,
though, not even a citadel of this magnitude could dwarf the piazza before it.
A sprawling expanse of granite, St. Peters Square was a staggering open space
in the congestion of Rome, like a classical Central Park. In front of the
basilica, bordering the vast oval common, 284 columns swept outward in four
concentric arcs of diminishing size . . . an architectural trompe de loiel
used to heighten the piazzas sense of grandeur.
As he stared at
the magnificent shrine before him, Langdon wondered what St. Peter would think
if he were here now. The Saint had died a gruesome death, crucified upside down
on this very spot. Now he rested in the most sacred of tombs, buried five
stories down, directly beneath the central cupola of the basilica.
Vatican City,
the pilot said, sounding anything but welcoming.
Langdon looked
out at the towering stone bastions that loomed aheadimpenetrable
fortifications surrounding the complex . . . a strangely earthly defense for a
spiritual world of secrets, power, and mystery.
Look! Vittoria
said suddenly, grabbing Langdons arm. She motioned frantically downward toward
St. Peters Square directly beneath them. Langdon put his face to the window
and looked.
Over there, she
said, pointing.
Langdon looked.
The rear of the piazza looked like a parking lot crowded with a dozen or so
trailer trucks. Huge satellite dishes pointed skyward from the roof of every
truck. The dishes were emblazoned with familiar names:
Televisor Europea
Video Italia
BBC
United Press
International
Langdon felt
suddenly confused, wondering if the news of the antimatter had already leaked
out.
Vittoria seemed
suddenly tense. Why is the press here? Whats going on?
The pilot turned
and gave her an odd look over his shoulder. Whats going on? You dont know?
No, she fired
back, her accent husky and strong.
Il Conclavo, he
said. It is to be sealed in about an hour. The whole world is watching.
Il Conclavo.
The word rang a
long moment in Langdons ears before dropping like a brick to the pit of his
stomach. Il Conclavo. The Vatican Conclave. How could he have forgotten? It had
been in the news recently.
Fifteen days ago,
the Pope, after a tremendously popular twelve year reign, had passed away.
Every paper in the world had carried the story about the Popes fatal stroke
while sleepinga sudden and unexpected death many whispered was suspicious. But
now, in keeping with the sacred tradition, fifteen days after the death of a
Pope, the Vatican was holding Il Conclavo the sacred ceremony in which the 165
cardinals of the worldthe most powerful men in Christendomgathered in Vatican
City to elect the new Pope.
Every cardinal on
the planet is here today, Langdon thought as the chopper passed over St.
Peters Basilica. The expansive inner world of Vatican City spread out beneath
him. The entire power structure of the Roman Catholic Church is sitting on a
time bomb.
34
Cardinal Mortati
gazed up at the lavish ceiling of the Sistine Chapel and tried to find a moment
of quiet reflection. The frescoed walls echoed with the voices of cardinals
from nations around the globe. The men jostled in the candlelit tabernacle,
whispering excitedly and consulting with one another in numerous languages, the
universal tongues being English, Italian, and Spanish.
The light in the
chapel was usually sublimelong rays of tinted sun slicing through the darkness
like rays from heavenbut not today. As was the custom, all of the chapels
windows had been covered in black velvet in the name of secrecy. This ensured
that no one on the inside could send signals or communicate in any way with the
outside world. The result was a profound darkness lit only by candles . . . a
shimmering radiance that seemed to purify everyone it touched, making them all
ghostly . . . like saints.
What privilege,
Mortati thought, that I am to oversee this sanctified event. Cardinals over
eighty years of age were too old to be eligible for election and did not attend
conclave, but at seventy nine years old, Mortati was the most senior cardinal
here and had been appointed to oversee the proceedings.
Following
tradition, the cardinals gathered here two hours before conclave to catch up
with friends and engage in last minute discussion. At 7 P.M . . . the late
Popes chamberlain would arrive, give opening prayer, and then leave. Then the
Swiss Guard would seal the doors and lock all the cardinals inside. It was then
that the oldest and most secretive political ritual in the world would begin.
The cardinals would not be released until they decided who among them would be
the next Pope.
Conclave. Even
the name was secretive. Con clave literally meant locked with a key. The
cardinals were permitted no contact whatsoever with the outside world. No phone
calls. No messages. No whispers through doorways. Conclave was a vacuum, not to
be influenced by anything in the outside world. This would ensure that the
cardinals kept Solum Dum prae oculis . . . only God before their eyes.
Outside the walls
of the chapel, of course, the media watched and waited, speculating as to which
of the cardinals would become the ruler of one billion Catholics worldwide.
Conclaves created an intense, politically charged atmosphere, and over the
centuries they had turned deadly: poisonings, fist fights, and even murder had
erupted within the sacred walls. Ancient history, Mortati thought. Tonights
conclave will be unified, blissful, and above all . . . brief.
Or at least that
had been his speculation.
Now, however, an
unexpected development had emerged. Mystifyingly, four cardinals were absent
from the chapel. Mortati knew that all the exits to Vatican City were guarded,
and the missing cardinals could not have gone far, but still, with less than an
hour before opening prayer, he was feeling disconcerted. After all, the four
missing men were no ordinary cardinals. They were the cardinals.
The chosen four.
As overseer of
the conclave, Mortati had already sent word through the proper channels to the
Swiss Guard alerting them to the cardinals absence. He had yet to hear back.
Other cardinals had now noticed the puzzling absence. The anxious whispers had
begun. Of all cardinals, these four should be on time! Cardinal Mortati was
starting to fear it might be a long evening after all.
He had no idea.
35
The Vaticans
helipad, for reasons of safety and noise control, is located in the northwest
tip of Vatican City, as far from St. Peters Basilica as possible.
Terra firma,
the pilot announced as they touched down. He exited and opened the sliding door
for Langdon and Vittoria.
Langdon descended
from the craft and turned to help Vittoria, but she had already dropped
effortlessly to the ground. Every muscle in her body seemed tuned to one
objectivefinding the antimatter before it left a horrific legacy.
After stretching
a reflective sun tarp across the cockpit window, the pilot ushered them to an
oversized electric golf cart waiting near the helipad. The cart whisked them
silently alongside the countrys western bordera fifty foot tall cement
bulwark thick enough to ward off attacks even by tanks. Lining the interior of
the wall, posted at fifty meter intervals, Swiss Guards stood at attention,
surveying the interior of the grounds. The cart turned sharply right onto Via
della Osservatorio. Signs pointed in all directions:
Palazzio
Governatorio
Collegio
Ethiopiana
Basilica San
Pietro
Capella Sistina
They accelerated
up the manicured road past a squat building marked Radio Vaticana. This,
Langdon realized to his amazement, was the hub of the worlds most listened to
radio programmingRadio Vaticana spreading the word of God to millions of
listeners around the globe.
Attenzione, the
pilot said, turning sharply into a rotary.
As the cart wound
round, Langdon could barely believe the sight now coming into view. Giardini
Vaticani, he thought. The heart of Vatican City. Directly ahead rose the rear
of St. Peters Basilica, a view, Langdon realized, most people never saw. To
the right loomed the Palace of the Tribunal, the lush papal residence rivaled
only by Versailles in its baroque embellishment. The severe looking
Governatorato building was now behind them, housing Vatican Citys
administration. And up ahead on the left, the massive rectangular edifice of
the Vatican Museum. Langdon knew there would be no time for a museum visit this
trip.
Where is
everyone? Vittoria asked, surveying the deserted lawns and walkways.
The guard checked
his black, military style chronographan odd anachronism beneath his puffy sleeve.
The cardinals are convened in the Sistine Chapel. Conclave begins in a little
under an hour.
Langdon nodded,
vaguely recalling that before conclave the cardinals spent two hours inside the
Sistine Chapel in quiet reflection and visitations with their fellow cardinals
from around the globe. The time was meant to renew old friendships among the
cardinals and facilitate a less heated election process. And the rest of the
residents and staff?
Banned from the
city for secrecy and security until the conclave concludes.
And when does it
conclude?
The guard
shrugged. God only knows. The words sounded oddly literal.
After parking the
cart on the wide lawn directly behind St. Peters Basilica, the guard escorted
Langdon and Vittoria up a stone escarpment to a marble plaza off the back of
the basilica. Crossing the plaza, they approached the rear wall of the basilica
and followed it through a triangular courtyard, across Via Belvedere, and into
a series of buildings closely huddled together. Langdons art history had
taught him enough Italian to pick out signs for the Vatican Printing Office,
the Tapestry Restoration Lab, Post Office Management, and the Church of St.
Ann. They crossed another small square and arrived at their destination.
The Office of the
Swiss Guard is housed adjacent to Il Corpo di Vigilanza, directly northeast of
St. Peters Basilica. The office is a squat, stone building. On either side of
the entrance, like two stone statues, stood a pair of guards.
Langdon had to
admit, these guards did not look quite so comical. Although they also wore the
blue and gold uniform, each wielded the traditional Vatican long swordan
eight foot spear with a razor sharp scytherumored to have decapitated
countless Muslims while defending the Christian crusaders in the fifteenth
century.
As Langdon and
Vittoria approached, the two guards stepped forward, crossing their long
swords, blocking the entrance. One looked up at the pilot in confusion. I
pantaloni, he said, motioning to Vittorias shorts.
The pilot waved
them off. Il comandante vuole vederli subito.
The guards
frowned. Reluctantly they stepped aside.
Inside, the air
was cool. It looked nothing like the administrative security offices Langdon
would have imagined. Ornate and impeccably furnished, the hallways contained
paintings Langdon was certain any museum worldwide would gladly have featured
in its main gallery.
The pilot pointed
down a steep set of stairs. Down, please.
Langdon and
Vittoria followed the white marble treads as they descended between a gauntlet
of nude male sculptures. Each statue wore a fig leaf that was lighter in color
than the rest of the body.
The Great
Castration, Langdon thought.
It was one of the
most horrific tragedies in Renaissance art. In 1857, Pope Pius IX decided that
the accurate representation of the male form might incite lust inside the
Vatican. So he got a chisel and mallet and hacked off the genitalia of every
single male statue inside Vatican City. He defaced works by Michelangelo,
Bramante, and Bernini. Plaster fig leaves were used to patch the damage.
Hundreds of sculptures had been emasculated. Langdon had often wondered if
there was a huge crate of stone penises someplace.
Here, the guard
announced.
They reached the
bottom of the stairs and dead ended at a heavy, steel door. The guard typed an
entry code, and the door slid open. Langdon and Vittoria entered.
Beyond the
threshold was absolute mayhem.
36
The Office of the
Swiss Guard.
Langdon stood in
the doorway, surveying the collision of centuries before them. Mixed media. The
room was a lushly adorned Renaissance library complete with inlaid bookshelves,
oriental carpets, and colorful tapestries . . . and yet the room bristled with
high tech gearbanks of computers, faxes, electronic maps of the Vatican
complex, and televisions tuned to CNN. Men in colorful pantaloons typed
feverishly on computers and listened intently in futuristic headphones.
Wait here, the
guard said.
Langdon and
Vittoria waited as the guard crossed the room to an exceptionally tall, wiry
man in a dark blue military uniform. He was talking on a cellular phone and
stood so straight he was almost bent backward. The guard said something to him,
and the man shot a glance over at Langdon and Vittoria. He nodded, then turned
his back on them and continued his phone call.
The guard
returned. Commander Olivetti will be with you in a moment.
Thank you.
The guard left
and headed back up the stairs.
Langdon studied
Commander Olivetti across the room, realizing he was actually the Commander in
Chief of the armed forces of an entire country. Vittoria and Langdon waited,
observing the action before them. Brightly dressed guards bustled about yelling
orders in Italian.
Continua
cercando! one yelled into a telephone.
Probasti il
musèo? another asked.
Langdon did not
need fluent Italian to discern that the security center was currently in
intense search mode. This was the good news. The bad news was that they
obviously had not yet found the antimatter.
You okay?
Langdon asked Vittoria.
She shrugged,
offering a tired smile.
When the
commander finally clicked off his phone and approached across the room, he
seemed to grow with each step. Langdon was tall himself and not accustomed to
looking up at many people, but Commander Olivetti demanded it. Langdon sensed
immediately that the commander was a man who had weathered tempests, his face
hale and steeled. His dark hair was cropped in a military buzz cut, and his
eyes burned with the kind of hardened determination only attainable through
years of intense training. He moved with ramrod exactness, the earpiece hidden
discreetly behind one ear making him look more like U.S. Secret Service than
Swiss Guard.
The commander
addressed them in accented English. His voice was startlingly quiet for such a
large man, barely a whisper. It bit with a tight, military efficiency. Good
afternoon, he said. I am Commander OlivettiComandante Principale of the
Swiss Guard. Im the one who called your director.
Vittoria gazed
upward. Thank you for seeing us, sir.
The commander did
not respond. He motioned for them to follow and led them through the tangle of
electronics to a door in the side wall of the chamber. Enter, he said,
holding the door for them.
Langdon and
Vittoria walked through and found themselves in a darkened control room where a
wall of video monitors was cycling lazily through a series of black and white
images of the complex. A young guard sat watching the images intently.
Fuori, Olivetti
said.
The guard packed
up and left.
Olivetti walked
over to one of the screens and pointed to it. Then he turned toward his guests.
This image is from a remote camera hidden somewhere inside Vatican City. Id
like an explanation.
Langdon and
Vittoria looked at the screen and inhaled in unison. The image was absolute. No
doubt. It was CERNs antimatter canister. Inside, a shimmering droplet of
metallic liquid hung ominously in the air, lit by the rhythmic blinking of the
LED digital clock. Eerily, the area around the canister was almost entirely
dark, as if the antimatter were in a closet or darkened room. At the top of the
monitor flashed superimposed text: Live FeedCamera #86.
Vittoria looked
at the time remaining on the flashing indicator on the canister. Under six
hours, she whispered to Langdon, her face tense.
Langdon checked
his watch. So we have until . . . He stopped, a knot tightening in his
stomach.
Midnight,
Vittoria said, with a withering look.
Midnight, Langdon
thought. A flair for the dramatic. Apparently whoever stole the canister last
night had timed it perfectly. A stark foreboding set in as he realized he was
currently sitting at ground zero.
Olivettis
whisper now sounded more like a hiss. Does this object belong to your
facility?
Vittoria nodded.
Yes, sir. It was stolen from us. It contains an extremely combustible substance
called antimatter.
Olivetti looked
unmoved. I am quite familiar with incendiaries, Ms. Vetra. I have not heard of
antimatter.
Its new
technology. We need to locate it immediately or evacuate Vatican City.
Olivetti closed
his eyes slowly and reopened them, as if refocusing on Vittoria might change
what he just heard. Evacuate? Are you aware what is going on here this
evening?
Yes, sir. And
the lives of your cardinals are in danger. We have about six hours. Have you
made any headway locating the canister?
Olivetti shook
his head. We havent started looking.
Vittoria choked.
What? But we expressly heard your guards talking about searching the
Searching, yes,
Olivetti said, but not for your canister. My men are looking for something else
that does not concern you.
Vittorias voice
cracked. You havent even begun looking for this canister?
Olivettis pupils
seemed to recede into his head. He had the passionless look of an insect. Ms.
Vetra, is it? Let me explain something to you. The director of your facility
refused to share any details about this object with me over the phone except to
say that I needed to find it immediately. We are exceptionally busy, and I do
not have the luxury of dedicating manpower to a situation until I get some
facts.
There is only
one relevant fact at this moment, sir, Vittoria said, that being that in six
hours that device is going to vaporize this entire complex.
Olivetti stood
motionless. Ms. Vetra, there is something you need to know. His tone hinted
at patronizing. Despite the archaic appearance of Vatican City, every single
entrance, both public and private, is equipped with the most advanced sensing
equipment known to man. If someone tried to enter with any sort of incendiary
device it would be detected instantly. We have radioactive isotope scanners,
olfactory filters designed by the American DEA to detect the faintest chemical
signatures of combustibles and toxins. We also use the most advanced metal
detectors and X ray scanners available.
Very
impressive, Vittoria said, matching Olivettis cool. Unfortunately,
antimatter is nonradioactive, its chemical signature is that of pure hydrogen,
and the canister is plastic. None of those devices would have detected it.
But the device
has an energy source, Olivetti said, motioning to the blinking LED. Even the
smallest trace of nickel cadmium would register as
The batteries
are also plastic.
Olivettis
patience was clearly starting to wane. Plastic batteries?
Polymer gel
electrolyte with Teflon.
Olivetti leaned
toward her, as if to accentuate his height advantage. Signorina, the Vatican
is the target of dozens of bomb threats a month. I personally train every Swiss
Guard in modern explosive technology. I am well aware that there is no
substance on earth powerful enough to do what you are describing unless you are
talking about a nuclear warhead with a fuel core the size of a baseball.
Vittoria framed
him with a fervent stare. Nature has many mysteries yet to unveil.
Olivetti leaned
closer. Might I ask exactly who you are? What is your position at CERN?
I am a senior
member of the research staff and appointed liaison to the Vatican for this
crisis.
Excuse me for
being rude, but if this is indeed a crisis, why am I dealing with you and not
your director? And what disrespect do you intend by coming into Vatican City in
short pants?
Langdon groaned.
He couldnt believe that under the circumstances the man was being a stickler
for dress code. Then again, he realized, if stone penises could induce lustful
thoughts in Vatican residents, Vittoria Vetra in shorts could certainly be a
threat to national security.
Commander
Olivetti, Langdon intervened, trying to diffuse what looked like a second bomb
about to explode. My name is Robert Langdon. Im a professor of religious
studies in the U.S. and unaffiliated with CERN. I have seen an antimatter
demonstration and will vouch for Ms. Vetras claim that it is exceptionally
dangerous. We have reason to believe it was placed inside your complex by an
antireligious cult hoping to disrupt your conclave.
Olivetti turned,
peering down at Langdon. I have a woman in shorts telling me that a droplet of
liquid is going to blow up Vatican City, and I have an American professor
telling me we are being targeted by some antireligious cult. What exactly is it
you expect me to do?
Find the
canister, Vittoria said. Right away.
Impossible. That
device could be anywhere. Vatican City is enormous.
Your cameras
dont have GPS locators on them?
They are not
generally stolen. This missing camera will take days to locate.
We dont have
days, Vittoria said adamantly. We have six hours.
Six hours until
what, Ms. Vetra? Olivettis voice grew louder suddenly. He pointed to the
image on the screen. Until these numbers count down? Until Vatican City
disappears? Believe me, I do not take kindly to people tampering with my
security system. Nor do I like mechanical contraptions appearing mysteriously
inside my walls. I am concerned. It is my job to be concerned. But what you
have told me here is unacceptable.
Langdon spoke
before he could stop himself. Have you heard of the Illuminati?
The commanders
icy exterior cracked. His eyes went white, like a shark about to attack. I am
warning you. I do not have time for this.
So you have
heard of the Illuminati?
Olivettis eyes
stabbed like bayonets. I am a sworn defendant of the Catholic Church. Of
course I have heard of the Illuminati. They have been dead for decades.
Langdon reached
in his pocket and pulled out the fax image of Leonardo Vetras branded body. He
handed it to Olivetti.
I am an
Illuminati scholar, Langdon said as Olivetti studied the picture. I am having
a difficult time accepting that the Illuminati are still active, and yet the
appearance of this brand combined with the fact that the Illuminati have a well
known covenant against Vatican City has changed my mind.
A computer
generated hoax. Olivetti handed the fax back to Langdon.
Langdon stared,
incredulous. Hoax? Look at the symmetry! You of all people should realize the
authenticity of
Authenticity is
precisely what you lack. Perhaps Ms. Vetra has not informed you, but CERN
scientists have been criticizing Vatican policies for decades. They regularly
petition us for retraction of Creationist theory, formal apologies for Galileo
and Copernicus, repeal of our criticism against dangerous or immoral research.
What scenario seems more likely to youthat a four hundred year old satanic
cult has resurfaced with an advanced weapon of mass destruction, or that some
prankster at CERN is trying to disrupt a sacred Vatican event with a well
executed fraud?
That photo,
Vittoria said, her voice like boiling lava, is of my father. Murdered. You
think this is my idea of a joke ?
I dont know,
Ms. Vetra. But I do know until I get some answers that make sense, there is no
way I will raise any sort of alarm. Vigilance and discretion are my duty . . .
such that spiritual matters can take place here with clarity of mind. Today of
all days.
Langdon said, At
least postpone the event.
Postpone?
Olivettis jaw dropped. Such arrogance! A conclave is not some American
baseball game you call on account of rain. This is a sacred event with a strict
code and process. Never mind that one billion Catholics in the world are
waiting for a leader. Never mind that the world media is outside. The protocols
for this event are holynot subject to modification. Since 1179, conclaves have
survived earthquakes, famines, and even the plague. Believe me, it is not about
to be canceled on account of a murdered scientist and a droplet of God knows
what.
Take me to the
person in charge, Vittoria demanded.
Olivetti glared.
Youve got him.
No, she said.
Someone in the clergy.
The veins on
Olivettis brow began to show. The clergy has gone. With the exception of the
Swiss Guard, the only ones present in Vatican City at this time are the College
of Cardinals. And they are inside the Sistine Chapel.
How about the
chamberlain ? Langdon stated flatly.
Who?
The late Popes
chamberlain. Langdon repeated the word self assuredly, praying his memory
served him. He recalled reading once about the curious arrangement of Vatican
authority following the death of a Pope. If Langdon was correct, during the
interim between Popes, complete autonomous power shifted temporarily to the
late Popes personal assistanthis chamberlaina secretarial underling who
oversaw conclave until the cardinals chose the new Holy Father. I believe the
chamberlain is the man in charge at the moment.
Il camerlegno?
Olivetti scowled. The camerlegno is only a priest here. He is not even
canonized. He is the late Popes hand servant.
But he is here.
And you answer to him.
Olivetti crossed
his arms. Mr. Langdon, it is true that Vatican rule dictates the camerlegno
assume chief executive office during conclave, but it is only because his lack
of eligibility for the papacy ensures an unbiased election. It is as if your
president died, and one of his aides temporarily sat in the oval office. The
camerlegno is young, and his understanding of security, or anything else for
that matter, is extremely limited. For all intents and purposes, I am in charge
here.
Take us to him,
Vittoria said.
Impossible.
Conclave begins in forty minutes. The camerlegno is in the Office of the Pope
preparing. I have no intention of disturbing him with matters of security.
Vittoria opened
her mouth to respond but was interrupted by a knocking at the door. Olivetti
opened it.
A guard in full
regalia stood outside, pointing to his watch. Éé lora,
comandante.
Olivetti checked
his own watch and nodded. He turned back to Langdon and Vittoria like a judge
pondering their fate. Follow me. He led them out of the monitoring room
across the security center to a small clear cubicle against the rear wall. My
office. Olivetti ushered them inside. The room was unspeciala cluttered desk,
file cabinets, folding chairs, a water cooler. I will be back in ten minutes.
I suggest you use the time to decide how you would like to proceed.
Vittoria wheeled.
You cant just leave! That canister is
I do not have
time for this, Olivetti seethed. Perhaps I should detain you until after the
conclave when I do have time.
Signore, the
guard urged, pointing to his watch again. Spazzare di capella.
Olivetti nodded
and started to leave.
Spazzare di
capella? Vittoria demanded. Youre leaving to sweep the chapel?
Olivetti turned,
his eyes boring through her. We sweep for electronic bugs, Miss Vetraa matter
of discretion. He motioned to her legs. Not something I would expect you to
understand.
With that he
slammed the door, rattling the heavy glass. In one fluid motion he produced a
key, inserted it, and twisted. A heavy deadbolt slid into place.
Idiòta!
Vittoria yelled. You cant keep us in here!
Through the
glass, Langdon could see Olivetti say something to the guard. The sentinel
nodded. As Olivetti strode out of the room, the guard spun and faced them on
the other side of the glass, arms crossed, a large sidearm visible on his hip.
Perfect, Langdon
thought. Just bloody perfect.
37
Vittoria glared
at the Swiss Guard standing outside Olivettis locked door. The sentinel glared
back, his colorful costume belying his decidedly ominous air.
Che fiasco,
Vittoria thought. Held hostage by an armed man in pajamas.
Langdon had
fallen silent, and Vittoria hoped he was using that Harvard brain of his to
think them out of this. She sensed, however, from the look on his face, that he
was more in shock than in thought. She regretted getting him so involved.
Vittorias first
instinct was to pull out her cell phone and call Kohler, but she knew it was
foolish. First, the guard would probably walk in and take her phone. Second, if
Kohlers episode ran its usual course, he was probably still incapacitated. Not
that it mattered . . . Olivetti seemed unlikely to take anybodys word on
anything at the moment.
Remember! she
told herself. Remember the solution to this test!
Remembrance was a
Buddhist philosophers trick. Rather than asking her mind to search for a
solution to a potentially impossible challenge, Vittoria asked her mind simply
to remember it. The presupposition that one once knew the answer created the
mindset that the answer must exist . . . thus eliminating the crippling
conception of hopelessness. Vittoria often used the process to solve scientific
quandaries . . . those that most people thought had no solution.
At the moment,
however, her remembrance trick was drawing a major blank. So she measured her
options . . . her needs. She needed to warn someone. Someone at the Vatican
needed to take her seriously. But who? The camerlegno? How? She was in a glass
box with one exit.
Tools, she told
herself. There are always tools. Reevaluate your environment.
Instinctively she
lowered her shoulders, relaxed her eyes, and took three deep breaths into her
lungs. She sensed her heart rate slow and her muscles soften. The chaotic panic
in her mind dissolved. Okay, she thought, let your mind be free. What makes
this situation positive? What are my assets?
The analytical
mind of Vittoria Vetra, once calmed, was a powerful force. Within seconds she
realized their incarceration was actually their key to escape.
Im making a
phone call, she said suddenly.
Langdon looked
up. I was about to suggest you call Kohler, but
Not Kohler.
Someone else.
Who?
The camerlegno.
Langdon looked
totally lost. Youre calling the chamberlain? How?
Olivetti said
the camerlegno was in the Popes office.
Okay. You know
the Popes private number?
No. But Im not
calling on my phone. She nodded to a high tech phone system on Olivettis
desk. It was riddled with speed dial buttons. The head of security must have a
direct line to the Popes office.
He also has a
weight lifter with a gun planted six feet away.
And were locked
in.
I was actually
aware of that.
I mean the guard
is locked out. This is Olivettis private office. I doubt anyone else has a
key.
Langdon looked
out at the guard. This is pretty thin glass, and thats a pretty big gun.
Whats he going
to do, shoot me for using the phone?
Who the hell
knows! This is a pretty strange place, and the way things are going
Either that,
Vittoria said, or we can spend the next five hours and forty eight minutes in
Vatican Prison. At least well have a front row seat when the antimatter goes
off.
Langdon paled.
But the guard will get Olivetti the second you pick up that phone. Besides,
there are twenty buttons on there. And I dont see any identification. You
going to try them all and hope to get lucky?
Nope, she said,
striding to the phone. Just one. Vittoria picked up the phone and pressed the
top button. Number one. I bet you one of those Illuminati U.S. dollars you
have in your pocket that this is the Popes office. What else would take
primary importance for a Swiss Guard commander?
Langdon did not
have time to respond. The guard outside the door started rapping on the glass
with the butt of his gun. He motioned for her to set down the phone.
Vittoria winked
at him. The guard seemed to inflate with rage.
Langdon moved
away from the door and turned back to Vittoria. You damn well better be right,
cause this guy does not look amused!
Damn! she said,
listening to the receiver. A recording.
Recording?
Langdon demanded. The Pope has an answering machine?
It wasnt the
Popes office, Vittoria said, hanging up. It was the damn weekly menu for the
Vatican commissary.
Langdon offered a
weak smile to the guard outside who was now glaring angrily though the glass
while he hailed Olivetti on his walkie talkie.
38
The Vatican
switchboard is located in the Ufficio di Communicazione behind the Vatican post
office. It is a relatively small room containing an eight line Corelco 141
switchboard. The office handles over 2,000 calls a day, most routed
automatically to the recording information system.
Tonight, the sole
communications operator on duty sat quietly sipping a cup of caffeinated tea.
He felt proud to be one of only a handful of employees still allowed inside
Vatican City tonight. Of course the honor was tainted somewhat by the presence
of the Swiss Guards hovering outside his door. An escort to the bathroom, the
operator thought. Ah, the indignities we endure in the name of Holy Conclave.
Fortunately, the
calls this evening had been light. Or maybe it was not so fortunate, he
thought. World interest in Vatican events seemed to have dwindled in the last
few years. The number of press calls had thinned, and even the crazies werent
calling as often. The press office had hoped tonights event would have more of
a festive buzz about it. Sadly, though, despite St. Peters Square being filled
with press trucks, the vans looked to be mostly standard Italian and Euro
press. Only a handful of global cover all networks were there . . . no doubt
having sent their giornalisti secundari.
The operator
gripped his mug and wondered how long tonight would last. Midnight or so, he
guessed. Nowadays, most insiders already knew who was favored to become Pope well
before conclave convened, so the process was more of a three or four hour
ritual than an actual election. Of course, last minute dissension in the ranks
could prolong the ceremony through dawn . . . or beyond. The conclave of 1831
had lasted fifty four days. Not tonight, he told himself; rumor was this
conclave would be a smoke watch.
The operators
thoughts evaporated with the buzz of an inside line on his switchboard. He
looked at the blinking red light and scratched his head. Thats odd, he thought.
The zero line. Who on the inside would be calling operator information tonight?
Who is even inside?
Città del
Vaticano, prego? he said, picking up the phone.
The voice on the
line spoke in rapid Italian. The operator vaguely recognized the accent as that
common to Swiss Guardsfluent Italian tainted by the Franco Swiss influence.
This caller, however, was most definitely not Swiss Guard.
On hearing the
womans voice, the operator stood suddenly, almost spilling his tea. He shot a
look back down at the line. He had not been mistaken. An internal extension.
The call was from the inside. There must be some mistake! he thought. A woman
inside Vatican City? Tonight?
The woman was
speaking fast and furiously. The operator had spent enough years on the phones to
know when he was dealing with a pazzo. This woman did not sound crazy. She was
urgent but rational. Calm and efficient. He listened to her request,
bewildered.
Il camerlegno?
the operator said, still trying to figure out where the hell the call was coming
from. I cannot possibly connect . . . yes, I am aware he is in the Popes
office but . . . who are you again? . . . and you want to warn him of . . . He
listened, more and more unnerved. Everyone is in danger? How? And where are you
calling from? Perhaps I should contact the Swiss . . . The operator stopped
short. You say youre where? Where?
He listened in
shock, then made a decision. Hold, please, he said, putting the woman on hold
before she could respond. Then he called Commander Olivettis direct line.
There is no way that woman is really
The line picked
up instantly.
Per lamore di
Dio! a familiar womans voice shouted at him. Place the damn call!
The door of the
Swiss Guards security center hissed open. The guards parted as Commander
Olivetti entered the room like a rocket. Turning the corner to his office,
Olivetti confirmed what his guard on the walkie talkie had just told him;
Vittoria Vetra was standing at his desk talking on the commanders private
telephone.
Che coglioni che ha
questa! he thought. The balls on this one!
Livid, he strode
to the door and rammed the key into the lock. He pulled open the door and
demanded, What are you doing?
Vittoria ignored
him. Yes, she was saying into the phone. And I must warn
Olivetti ripped
the receiver from her hand, and raised it to his ear. Who the hell is this?
For the tiniest
of an instant, Olivettis inelastic posture slumped. Yes, camerlegno . . . he
said. Correct, signore . . . but questions of security demand . . . of course
not . . . I am holding her here for . . . certainly, but . . . He listened. Yes,
sir, he said finally. I will bring them up immediately.
39
The Apostolic
Palace is a conglomeration of buildings located near the Sistine Chapel in the
northeast corner of Vatican City. With a commanding view of St. Peters Square,
the palace houses both the Papal Apartments and the Office of the Pope.
Vittoria and
Langdon followed in silence as Commander Olivetti led them down a long rococo
corridor, the muscles in his neck pulsing with rage. After climbing three sets
of stairs, they entered a wide, dimly lit hallway.
Langdon could not
believe the artwork on the wallsmint condition busts, tapestries,
friezesworks worth hundreds of thousands of dollars. Two thirds of the way
down the hall they passed an alabaster fountain. Olivetti turned left into an
alcove and strode to one of the largest doors Langdon had ever seen.
Ufficio di
Papa, the commander declared, giving Vittoria an acrimonious scowl. Vittoria
didnt flinch. She reached over Olivetti and knocked loudly on the door.
Office of the
Pope, Langdon thought, having difficulty fathoming that he was standing outside
one of the most sacred rooms in all of world religion.
Avanti! someone
called from within.
When the door
opened, Langdon had to shield his eyes. The sunlight was blinding. Slowly, the
image before him came into focus.
The Office of the
Pope seemed more of a ballroom than an office. Red marble floors sprawled out
in all directions to walls adorned with vivid frescoes. A colossal chandelier
hung overhead, beyond which a bank of arched windows offered a stunning
panorama of the sun drenched St. Peters Square.
My God, Langdon
thought. This is a room with a view.
At the far end of
the hall, at a carved desk, a man sat writing furiously. Avanti, he called
out again, setting down his pen and waving them over.
Olivetti led the
way, his gait military. Signore, he said apologetically. No ho potuto
The man cut him
off. He stood and studied his two visitors.
The camerlegno
was nothing like the images of frail, beatific old men Langdon usually imagined
roaming the Vatican. He wore no rosary beads or pendants. No heavy robes. He
was dressed instead in a simple black cassock that seemed to amplify the
solidity of his substantial frame. He looked to be in his late thirties, indeed
a child by Vatican standards. He had a surprisingly handsome face, a swirl of
coarse brown hair, and almost radiant green eyes that shone as if they were
somehow fueled by the mysteries of the universe. As the man drew nearer,
though, Langdon saw in his eyes a profound exhaustionlike a soul who had been
through the toughest fifteen days of his life.
I am Carlo
Ventresca, he said, his English perfect. The late Popes camerlegno. His
voice was unpretentious and kind, with only the slightest hint of Italian
inflection.
Vittoria Vetra,
she said, stepping forward and offering her hand. Thank you for seeing us.
Olivetti twitched
as the camerlegno shook Vittorias hand.
This is Robert
Langdon, Vittoria said. A religious historian from Harvard University.
Padre, Langdon
said, in his best Italian accent. He bowed his head as he extended his hand.
No, no, the
camerlegno insisted, lifting Langdon back up. His Holinesss office does not
make me holy. I am merely a priesta chamberlain serving in a time of need.
Langdon stood
upright.
Please, the
camerlegno said, everyone sit. He arranged some chairs around his desk.
Langdon and Vittoria sat. Olivetti apparently preferred to stand.
The camerlegno
seated himself at the desk, folded his hands, sighed, and eyed his visitors.
Signore,
Olivetti said. The womans attire is my fault. I
Her attire is
not what concerns me, the camerlegno replied, sounding too exhausted to be
bothered. When the Vatican operator calls me a half hour before I begin
conclave to tell me a woman is calling from your private office to warn me of
some sort of major security threat of which I have not been informed, that
concerns me.
Olivetti stood
rigid, his back arched like a soldier under intense inspection.
Langdon felt
hypnotized by the camerlegnos presence. Young and wearied as he was, the
priest had the air of some mythical heroradiating charisma and authority.
Signore,
Olivetti said, his tone apologetic but still unyielding. You should not
concern yourself with matters of security. You have other responsibilities.
I am well aware
of my other responsibilities. I am also aware that as direttore intermediario,
I have a responsibility for the safety and well being of everyone at this
conclave. What is going on here?
I have the
situation under control.
Apparently not.
Father, Langdon
interrupted, taking out the crumpled fax and handing it to the camerlegno,
please.
Commander
Olivetti stepped forward, trying to intervene. Father, please do not trouble
your thoughts with
The camerlegno
took the fax, ignoring Olivetti for a long moment. He looked at the image of
the murdered Leonardo Vetra and drew a startled breath. What is this?
That is my
father, Vittoria said, her voice wavering. He was a priest and a man of
science. He was murdered last night.
The camerlegnos
face softened instantly. He looked up at her. My dear child. Im so sorry. He
crossed himself and looked again at the fax, his eyes seeming to pool with
waves of abhorrence. Who would . . . and this burn on his . . . The
camerlegno paused, squinting closer at the image.
It says
Illuminati, Langdon said. No doubt you are familiar with the name.
An odd look came
across the camerlegnos face. I have heard the name, yes, but . . .
The Illuminati
murdered Leonardo Vetra so they could steal a new technology he was
Signore,
Olivetti interjected. This is absurd. The Illuminati? This is clearly some
sort of elaborate hoax.
The camerlegno
seemed to ponder Olivettis words. Then he turned and contemplated Langdon so
fully that Langdon felt the air leave his lungs. Mr. Langdon, I have spent my
life in the Catholic Church. I am familiar with the Illuminati lore . . . and
the legend of the brandings. And yet I must warn you, I am a man of the present
tense. Christianity has enough real enemies without resurrecting ghosts.
The symbol is
authentic, Langdon said, a little too defensively he thought. He reached over
and rotated the fax for the camerlegno.
The camerlegno
fell silent when he saw the symmetry.
Even modern
computers, Langdon added, have been unable to forge a symmetrical ambigram of
this word.
The camerlegno
folded his hands and said nothing for a long time. The Illuminati are dead,
he finally said. Long ago. That is historical fact.
Langdon nodded.
Yesterday, I would have agreed with you.
Yesterday?
Before todays
chain of events. I believe the Illuminati have resurfaced to make good on an
ancient pact.
Forgive me. My
history is rusty. What ancient pact is this?
Langdon took a
deep breath. The destruction of Vatican City.
Destroy Vatican
City? The camerlegno looked less frightened than confused. But that would be
impossible.
Vittoria shook
her head. Im afraid we have some more bad news.
40
Is this true ?
the camerlegno demanded, looking amazed as he turned from Vittoria to Olivetti.
Signore,
Olivetti assured, Ill admit there is some sort of device here. It is visible
on one of our security monitors, but as for Ms. Vetras claims as to the power
of this substance, I cannot possibly
Wait a minute,
the camerlegno said. You can see this thing?
Yes, signore. On
wireless camera #86.
Then why havent
you recovered it? The camerlegnos voice echoed anger now.
Very difficult,
signore. Olivetti stood straight as he explained the situation.
The camerlegno
listened, and Vittoria sensed his growing concern. Are you certain it is
inside Vatican City? the camerlegno asked. Maybe someone took the camera out
and is transmitting from somewhere else.
Impossible,
Olivetti said. Our external walls are shielded electronically to protect our
internal communications. This signal can only be coming from the inside or we
would not be receiving it.
And I assume,
he said, that you are now looking for this missing camera with all available
resources?
Olivetti shook
his head. No, signore. Locating that camera could take hundreds of man hours.
We have a number of other security concerns at the moment, and with all due
respect to Ms. Vetra, this droplet she talks about is very small. It could not
possibly be as explosive as she claims.
Vittorias
patience evaporated. That droplet is enough to level Vatican City! Did you
even listen to a word I told you?
Maam, Olivetti
said, his voice like steel, my experience with explosives is extensive.
Your experience
is obsolete, she fired back, equally tough. Despite my attire, which I
realize you find troublesome, I am a senior level physicist at the worlds most
advanced subatomic research facility. I personally designed the antimatter trap
that is keeping that sample from annihilating right now. And I am warning you
that unless you find that canister in the next six hours, your guards will have
nothing to protect for the next century but a big hole in the ground.
Olivetti wheeled
to the camerlegno, his insect eyes flashing rage. Signore, I cannot in good
conscience allow this to go any further. Your time is being wasted by
pranksters. The Illuminati? A droplet that will destroy us all?
Basta, the
camerlegno declared. He spoke the word quietly and yet it seemed to echo across
the chamber. Then there was silence. He continued in a whisper. Dangerous or
not, Illuminati or no Illuminati, whatever this thing is, it most certainly
should not be inside Vatican City . . . no less on the eve of the conclave. I
want it found and removed. Organize a search immediately.
Olivetti
persisted. Signore, even if we used all the guards to search the complex, it
could take days to find this camera. Also, after speaking to Ms. Vetra, I had
one of my guards consult our most advanced ballistics guide for any mention of
this substance called antimatter. I found no mention of it anywhere. Nothing.
Pompous ass,
Vittoria thought. A ballistics guide? Did you try an encyclopedia? Under A!
Olivetti was
still talking. Signore, if you are suggesting we make a naked eye search of
the entirety of Vatican City then I must object.
Commander. The
camerlegnos voice simmered with rage. May I remind you that when you address
me, you are addressing this office. I realize you do not take my position
seriouslynonetheless, by law, I am in charge. If I am not mistaken, the
cardinals are now safely within the Sistine Chapel, and your security concerns
are at a minimum until the conclave breaks. I do not understand why you are
hesitant to look for this device. If I did not know better it would appear that
you are causing this conclave intentional danger.
Olivetti looked
scornful. How dare you! I have served your Pope for twelve years! And the Pope
before that for fourteen years! Since 1438 the Swiss Guard have
The walkie talkie
on Olivettis belt squawked loudly, cutting him off. Comandante?
Olivetti snatched
it up and pressed the transmitter. Sto ocupato! Cosa voi!
Scusi, the
Swiss Guard on the radio said. Communications here. I thought you would want
to be informed that we have received a bomb threat.
Olivetti could
not have looked less interested. So handle it! Run the usual trace, and write
it up.
We did, sir, but
the caller . . . The guard paused. I would not trouble you, commander, except
that he mentioned the substance you just asked me to research. Antimatter.
Everyone in the
room exchanged stunned looks.
He mentioned
what ? Olivetti stammered.
Antimatter, sir.
While we were trying to run a trace, I did some additional research on his
claim. The information on antimatter is . . . well, frankly, its quite
troubling.
I thought you
said the ballistics guide showed no mention of it.
I found it on
line.
Alleluia,
Vittoria thought.
The substance
appears to be quite explosive, the guard said. Its hard to imagine this
information is accurate but it says here that pound for pound antimatter
carries about a hundred times more payload than a nuclear warhead.
Olivetti slumped.
It was like watching a mountain crumble. Vittorias feeling of triumph was
erased by the look of horror on the camerlegnos face.
Did you trace
the call? Olivetti stammered.
No luck.
Cellular with heavy encryption. The SAT lines are interfused, so triangulation
is out. The IF signature suggests hes somewhere in Rome, but theres really no
way to trace him.
Did he make
demands? Olivetti said, his voice quiet.
No, sir. Just
warned us that there is antimatter hidden inside the complex. He seemed
surprised I didnt know. Asked me if Id seen it yet. Youd asked me about
antimatter, so I decided to advise you.
You did the
right thing, Olivetti said. Ill be down in a minute. Alert me immediately if
he calls back.
There was a
moment of silence on the walkie talkie. The caller is still on the line, sir.
Olivetti looked
like hed just been electrocuted. The line is open?
Yes, sir. Weve
been trying to trace him for ten minutes, getting nothing but splayed
ferreting. He must know we cant touch him because he refuses to hang up until
he speaks to the camerlegno.
Patch him
through, the camerlegno commanded. Now!
Olivetti wheeled.
Father, no. A trained Swiss Guard negotiator is much better suited to handle
this.
Now!
Olivetti gave the
order.
A moment later,
the phone on Camerlegno Ventrescas desk began to ring. The camerlegno rammed
his finger down on the speaker phone button. Who in the name of God do you
think you are?
41
The voice
emanating from the camerlegnos speaker phone was metallic and cold, laced with
arrogance. Everyone in the room listened.
Langdon tried to
place the accent. Middle Eastern, perhaps?
I am a messenger
of an ancient brotherhood, the voice announced in an alien cadence. A
brotherhood you have wronged for centuries. I am a messenger of the
Illuminati.
Langdon felt his
muscles tighten, the last shreds of doubt withering away. For an instant he
felt the familiar collision of thrill, privilege, and dead fear that he had
experienced when he first saw the ambigram this morning.
What do you
want? the camerlegno demanded.
I represent men
of science. Men who like yourselves are searching for the answers. Answers to
mans destiny, his purpose, his creator.
Whoever you
are, the camerlegno said, I
Silenzio. You
will do better to listen. For two millennia your church has dominated the quest
for truth. You have crushed your opposition with lies and prophesies of doom.
You have manipulated the truth to serve your needs, murdering those whose
discoveries did not serve your politics. Are you surprised you are the target
of enlightened men from around the globe?
Enlightened men
do not resort to blackmail to further their causes.
Blackmail? The
caller laughed. This is not blackmail. We have no demands. The abolition of
the Vatican is nonnegotiable. We have waited four hundred years for this day.
At midnight, your city will be destroyed. There is nothing you can do.
Olivetti stormed
toward the speaker phone. Access to this city is impossible! You could not
possibly have planted explosives in here!
You speak with
the ignorant devotion of a Swiss Guard. Perhaps even an officer? Surely you are
aware that for centuries the Illuminati have infiltrated elitist organizations
across the globe. Do you really believe the Vatican is immune?
Jesus, Langdon
thought, theyve got someone on the inside. It was no secret that infiltration
was the Illuminati trademark of power. They had infiltrated the Masons, major
banking networks, government bodies. In fact, Churchill had once told reporters
that if English spies had infiltrated the Nazis to the degree the Illuminati
had infiltrated English Parliament, the war would have been over in one month.
A transparent
bluff, Olivetti snapped. Your influence cannot possibly extend so far.
Why? Because
your Swiss Guards are vigilant? Because they watch every corner of your private
world? How about the Swiss Guards themselves? Are they not men? Do you truly
believe they stake their lives on a fable about a man who walks on water? Ask
yourself how else the canister could have entered your city. Or how four of
your most precious assets could have disappeared this afternoon.
Our assets?
Olivetti scowled. What do you mean?
One, two, three,
four. You havent missed them by now?
What the hell
are you talk Olivetti stopped short, his eyes rocketing wide as though hed
just been punched in the gut.
Light dawns,
the caller said. Shall I read their names?
Whats going
on? the camerlegno said, looking bewildered.
The caller
laughed. Your officer has not yet informed you? How sinful. No surprise. Such
pride. I imagine the disgrace of telling you the truth . . . that four
cardinals he had sworn to protect seem to have disappeared . . .
Olivetti erupted.
Where did you get this information!
Camerlegno, the
caller gloated, ask your commander if all your cardinals are present in the
Sistine Chapel.
The camerlegno
turned to Olivetti, his green eyes demanding an explanation.
Signore,
Olivetti whispered in the camerlegnos ear, it is true that four of our
cardinals have not yet reported to the Sistine Chapel, but there is no need for
alarm. Every one of them checked into the residence hall this morning, so we
know they are safely inside Vatican City. You yourself had tea with them only
hours ago. They are simply late for the fellowship preceding conclave. We are
searching, but Im sure they just lost track of time and are still out enjoying
the grounds.
Enjoying the
grounds? The calm departed from the camerlegnos voice. They were due in the
chapel over an hour ago!
Langdon shot
Vittoria a look of amazement. Missing cardinals? So thats what they were
looking for downstairs?
Our inventory,
the caller said, you will find quite convincing. There is Cardinal
Lamassé from Paris, Cardinal Guidera from Barcelona, Cardinal Ebner from
Frankfurt . . .
Olivetti seemed
to shrink smaller and smaller after each name was read.
The caller
paused, as though taking special pleasure in the final name. And from Italy .
. . Cardinal Baggia.
The camerlegno
loosened like a tall ship that had just run sheets first into a dead calm. His
frock billowed, and he collapsed in his chair. I preferiti, he whispered.
The four favorites . . . including Baggia . . . the most likely successor as
Supreme Pontiff . . . how is it possible?
Langdon had read
enough about modern papal elections to understand the look of desperation on
the camerlegnos face. Although technically any cardinal under eighty years old
could become Pope, only a very few had the respect necessary to command a two
thirds majority in the ferociously partisan balloting procedure. They were
known as the preferiti. And they were all gone.
Sweat dripped
from the camerlegnos brow. What do you intend with these men?
What do you
think I intend? I am a descendant of the Hassassin.
Langdon felt a
shiver. He knew the name well. The church had made some deadly enemies through
the yearsthe Hassassin, the Knights Templar, armies that had been either
hunted by the Vatican or betrayed by them.
Let the
cardinals go, the camerlegno said. Isnt threatening to destroy the City of
God enough?
Forget your four
cardinals. They are lost to you. Be assured their deaths will be remembered
though . . . by millions. Every martyrs dream. I will make them media
luminaries. One by one. By midnight the Illuminati will have everyones
attention. Why change the world if the world is not watching? Public killings
have an intoxicating horror about them, dont they? You proved that long ago .
. . the inquisition, the torture of the Knights Templar, the Crusades. He
paused. And of course, la purga.
The camerlegno
was silent.
Do you not
recall la purga ? the caller asked. Of course not, you are a child. Priests
are poor historians, anyway. Perhaps because their history shames them?
La purga,
Langdon heard himself say. Sixteen sixty eight. The church branded four
Illuminati scientists with the symbol of the cross. To purge their sins.
Who is
speaking? the voice demanded, sounding more intrigued than concerned. Who
else is there?
Langdon felt
shaky. My name is not important, he said, trying to keep his voice from
wavering. Speaking to a living Illuminatus was disorienting for him . . . like
speaking to George Washington. I am an academic who has studied the history of
your brotherhood.
Superb, the
voice replied. I am pleased there are still those alive who remember the
crimes against us.
Most of us think
you are dead.
A misconception
the brotherhood has worked hard to promote. What else do you know of la purga
?
Langdon
hesitated. What else do I know? That this whole situation is insanity, thats
what I know! After the brandings, the scientists were murdered, and their
bodies were dropped in public locations around Rome as a warning to other
scientists not to join the Illuminati.
Yes. So we shall
do the same. Quid pro quo. Consider it symbolic retribution for our slain
brothers. Your four cardinals will die, one every hour starting at eight. By
midnight the whole world will be enthralled.
Langdon moved
toward the phone. You actually intend to brand and kill these four men?
History repeats
itself, does it not? Of course, we will be more elegant and bold than the
church was. They killed privately, dropping bodies when no one was looking. It
seems so cowardly.
What are you
saying? Langdon asked. That you are going to brand and kill these men in
public ?
Very good.
Although it depends what you consider public. I realize not many people go to
church anymore.
Langdon did a
double take. Youre going to kill them in churches ?
A gesture of
kindness. Enabling God to command their souls to heaven more expeditiously. It
seems only right. Of course the press will enjoy it too, I imagine.
Youre
bluffing, Olivetti said, the cool back in his voice. You cannot kill a man in
a church and expect to get away with it.
Bluffing? We
move among your Swiss Guard like ghosts, remove four of your cardinals from
within your walls, plant a deadly explosive at the heart of your most sacred
shrine, and you think this is a bluff? As the killings occur and the victims
are found, the media will swarm. By midnight the world will know the Illuminati
cause.
And if we stake
guards in every church? Olivetti said.
The caller
laughed. I fear the prolific nature of your religion will make that a trying
task. Have you not counted lately? There are over four hundred Catholic
churches in Rome. Cathedrals, chapels, tabernacles, abbeys, monasteries,
convents, parochial schools . . .
Olivettis face
remained hard.
In ninety
minutes it begins, the caller said with a note of finality. One an hour. A
mathematical progression of death. Now I must go.
Wait! Langdon
demanded. Tell me about the brands you intend to use on these men.
The killer
sounded amused. I suspect you know what the brands will be already. Or perhaps
you are a skeptic? You will see them soon enough. Proof the ancient legends are
true.
Langdon felt
light headed. He knew exactly what the man was claiming. Langdon pictured the
brand on Leonardo Vetras chest. Illuminati folklore spoke of five brands in
all. Four brands are left, Langdon thought, and four missing cardinals.
I am sworn, the
camerlegno said, to bring a new Pope tonight. Sworn by God.
Camerlegno, the
caller said, the world does not need a new Pope. After midnight he will have
nothing to rule over but a pile of rubble. The Catholic Church is finished.
Your run on earth is done.
Silence hung.
The camerlegno
looked sincerely sad. You are misguided. A church is more than mortar and
stone. You cannot simply erase two thousand years of faith . . . any faith. You
cannot crush faith simply by removing its earthly manifestations. The Catholic
Church will continue with or without Vatican City.
A noble lie. But
a lie all the same. We both know the truth. Tell me, why is Vatican City a
walled citadel?
Men of God live
in a dangerous world, the camerlegno said.
How young are
you? The Vatican is a fortress because the Catholic Church holds half of its
equity inside its wallsrare paintings, sculpture, devalued jewels, priceless
books . . . then there is the gold bullion and the real estate deeds inside the
Vatican Bank vaults. Inside estimates put the raw value of Vatican City at 48.5
billion dollars. Quite a nest egg youre sitting on. Tomorrow it will be ash.
Liquidated assets as it were. You will be bankrupt. Not even men of cloth can
work for nothing.
The accuracy of
the statement seemed to be reflected in Olivettis and the camerlegnos shell
shocked looks. Langdon wasnt sure what was more amazing, that the Catholic
Church had that kind of money, or that the Illuminati somehow knew about it.
The camerlegno
sighed heavily. Faith, not money, is the backbone of this church.
More lies, the
caller said. Last year you spent 183 million dollars trying to support your
struggling dioceses worldwide. Church attendance is at an all time lowdown
forty six percent in the last decade. Donations are half what they were only
seven years ago. Fewer and fewer men are entering the seminary. Although you
will not admit it, your church is dying. Consider this a chance to go out with
a bang.
Olivetti stepped
forward. He seemed less combative now, as if he now sensed the reality facing
him. He looked like a man searching for an out. Any out. And what if some of
that bullion went to fund your cause?
Do not insult us
both.
We have money.
As do we. More
than you can fathom.
Langdon flashed
on the alleged Illuminati fortunes, the ancient wealth of the Bavarian stone
masons, the Rothschilds, the Bilderbergers, the legendary Illuminati Diamond.
I preferiti,
the camerlegno said, changing the subject. His voice was pleading. Spare them.
They are old. They
They are virgin
sacrifices. The caller laughed. Tell me, do you think they are really
virgins? Will the little lambs squeal when they die? Sacrifici vergini nell
altare di scienza.
The camerlegno
was silent for a long time. They are men of faith, he finally said. They do
not fear death.
The caller
sneered. Leonardo Vetra was a man of faith, and yet I saw fear in his eyes
last night. A fear I removed.
Vittoria, who had
been silent, was suddenly airborne, her body taut with hatred. Asino! He was
my father!
A cackle echoed
from the speaker. Your father? What is this? Vetra has a daughter? You should
know your father whimpered like a child at the end. Pitiful really. A pathetic
man.
Vittoria reeled
as if knocked backward by the words. Langdon reached for her, but she regained
her balance and fixed her dark eyes on the phone. I swear on my life, before
this night is over, I will find you. Her voice sharpened like a laser. And
when I do . . .
The caller
laughed coarsely. A woman of spirit. I am aroused. Perhaps before this night
is over, I will find you. And when I do . . .
The words hung
like a blade. Then he was gone.
42
Cardinal Mortati
was sweating now in his black robe. Not only was the Sistine Chapel starting to
feel like a sauna, but conclave was scheduled to begin in twenty minutes, and
there was still no word on the four missing cardinals. In their absence, the
initial whispers of confusion among the other cardinals had turned to outspoken
anxiety.
Mortati could not
imagine where the truant men could be. With the camerlegno perhaps? He knew the
camerlegno had held the traditional private tea for the four preferiti earlier
that afternoon, but that had been hours ago. Were they ill? Something they ate?
Mortati doubted it. Even on the verge of death the preferiti would be here. It
was once in a lifetime, usually never, that a cardinal had the chance to be
elected Supreme Pontiff, and by Vatican Law the cardinal had to be inside the
Sistine Chapel when the vote took place. Otherwise, he was ineligible.
Although there
were four preferiti, few cardinals had any doubt who the next Pope would be.
The past fifteen days had seen a blizzard of faxes and phone calls discussing
potential candidates. As was the custom, four names had been chosen as preferiti,
each of them fulfilling the unspoken requisites for becoming Pope:
Multilingual in
Italian, Spanish, and English.
No skeletons in
his closet.
Between sixty
five and eighty years old.
As usual, one of
the preferiti had risen above the others as the man the college proposed to
elect. Tonight that man was Cardinal Aldo Baggia from Milan. Baggias untainted
record of service, combined with unparalleled language skills and the ability
to communicate the essence of spirituality, had made him the clear favorite.
So where the
devil is he? Mortati wondered.
Mortati was
particularly unnerved by the missing cardinals because the task of supervising
this conclave had fallen to him. A week ago, the College of Cardinals had
unanimously chosen Mortati for the office known as The Great Elector the
conclaves internal master of ceremonies. Even though the camerlegno was the
churchs ranking official, the camerlegno was only a priest and had little familiarity
with the complex election process, so one cardinal was selected to oversee the
ceremony from within the Sistine Chapel.
Cardinals often
joked that being appointed The Great Elector was the cruelest honor in
Christendom. The appointment made one ineligible as a candidate during the
election, and it also required one spend many days prior to conclave poring
over the pages of the Universi Dominici Gregis reviewing the subtleties of
conclaves arcane rituals to ensure the election was properly administered.
Mortati held no
grudge, though. He knew he was the logical choice. Not only was he the senior
cardinal, but he had also been a confidant of the late Pope, a fact that
elevated his esteem. Although Mortati was technically still within the legal
age window for election, he was getting a bit old to be a serious candidate. At
seventy nine years old he had crossed the unspoken threshold beyond which the
college no longer trusted ones health to withstand the rigorous schedule of
the papacy. A Pope usually worked fourteen hour days, seven days a week, and
died of exhaustion in an average of 6.3 years. The inside joke was that
accepting the papacy was a cardinals fastest route to heaven.
Mortati, many
believed, could have been Pope in his younger days had he not been so broad
minded. When it came to pursuing the papacy, there was a Holy
TrinityConservative. Conservative. Conservative.
Mortati had
always found it pleasantly ironic that the late Pope, God rest his soul, had
revealed himself as surprisingly liberal once he had taken office. Perhaps
sensing the modern world progressing away from the church, the Pope had made
overtures, softening the churchs position on the sciences, even donating money
to selective scientific causes. Sadly, it had been political suicide.
Conservative Catholics declared the Pope senile, while scientific purists
accused him of trying to spread the churchs influence where it did not belong.
So where are
they?
Mortati turned.
One of the
cardinals was tapping him nervously on the shoulder. You know where they are,
dont you?
Mortati tried not
to show too much concern. Perhaps still with the camerlegno.
At this hour?
That would be highly unorthodox! The cardinal frowned mistrustingly. Perhaps
the camerlegno lost track of time?
Mortati sincerely
doubted it, but he said nothing. He was well aware that most cardinals did not
much care for the camerlegno, feeling he was too young to serve the Pope so
closely. Mortati suspected much of the cardinals dislike was jealousy, and Mortati
actually admired the young man, secretly applauding the late Popes selection
for chamberlain. Mortati saw only conviction when he looked in the camerlegnos
eyes, and unlike many of the cardinals, the camerlegno put church and faith
before petty politics. He was truly a man of God.
Throughout his
tenure, the camerlegnos steadfast devotion had become legendary. Many
attributed it to the miraculous event in his childhood . . . an event that
would have left a permanent impression on any mans heart. The miracle and
wonder of it, Mortati thought, often wishing his own childhood had presented an
event that fostered that kind of doubtless faith.
Unfortunately for
the church, Mortati knew, the camerlegno would never become Pope in his elder
years. Attaining the papacy required a certain amount of political ambition,
something the young camerlegno apparently lacked; he had refused his Popes
offers for higher clerical stations many times, saying he preferred to serve
the church as a simple man.
What next? The
cardinal tapped Mortati, waiting.
Mortati looked
up. Im sorry?
Theyre late!
What shall we do?
What can we do?
Mortati replied. We wait. And have faith.
Looking entirely
unsatisfied with Mortatis response, the cardinal shrunk back into the shadows.
Mortati stood a
moment, dabbing his temples and trying to clear his mind. Indeed, what shall we
do? He gazed past the altar up to Michelangelos renowned fresco, The Last
Judgment. The painting did nothing to soothe his anxiety. It was a horrifying,
fifty foot tall depiction of Jesus Christ separating mankind into the righteous
and sinners, casting the sinners into hell. There was flayed flesh, burning
bodies, and even one of Michelangelos rivals sitting in hell wearing asss
ears. Guy de Maupassant had once written that the painting looked like
something painted for a carnival wrestling booth by an ignorant coal heaver.
Cardinal Mortati
had to agree.
43
Langdon stood
motionless at the Popes bulletproof window and gazed down at the bustle of
media trailers in St. Peters Square. The eerie phone conversation had left him
feeling turgid . . . distended somehow. Not himself.
The Illuminati,
like a serpent from the forgotten depths of history, had risen and wrapped
themselves around an ancient foe. No demands. No negotiation. Just retribution.
Demonically simple. Squeezing. A revenge 400 years in the making. It seemed
that after centuries of persecution, science had bitten back.
The camerlegno
stood at his desk, staring blankly at the phone. Olivetti was the first to
break the silence. Carlo, he said, using the camerlegnos first name and
sounding more like a weary friend than an officer. For twenty six years, I
have sworn my life to the protection of this office. It seems tonight I am
dishonored.
The camerlegno
shook his head. You and I serve God in different capacities, but service
always brings honor.
These events . .
. I cant imagine how . . . this situation . . . Olivetti looked overwhelmed.
You realize we
have only one possible course of action. I have a responsibility for the safety
of the College of Cardinals.
I fear that
responsibility was mine, signore.
Then your men
will oversee the immediate evacuation.
Signore?
Other options
can be exercised latera search for this device, a manhunt for the missing
cardinals and their captors. But first the cardinals must be taken to safety.
The sanctity of human life weighs above all. Those men are the foundation of
this church.
You suggest we
cancel conclave right now?
Do I have a
choice?
What about your
charge to bring a new Pope?
The young
chamberlain sighed and turned to the window, his eyes drifting out onto the
sprawl of Rome below. His Holiness once told me that a Pope is a man torn
between two worlds . . . the real world and the divine. He warned that any
church that ignored reality would not survive to enjoy the divine. His voice
sounded suddenly wise for its years. The real world is upon us tonight. We
would be vain to ignore it. Pride and precedent cannot overshadow reason.
Olivetti nodded,
looking impressed. I have underestimated you, signore.
The camerlegno
did not seem to hear. His gaze was distant on the window.
I will speak
openly, signore. The real world is my world. I immerse myself in its ugliness
every day such that others are unencumbered to seek something more pure. Let me
advise you on the present situation. It is what I am trained for. Your
instincts, though worthy . . . could be disastrous.
The camerlegno
turned.
Olivetti sighed.
The evacuation of the College of Cardinals from the Sistine Chapel is the
worst possible thing you could do right now.
The camerlegno
did not look indignant, only at a loss. What do you suggest?
Say nothing to
the cardinals. Seal conclave. It will buy us time to try other options.
The camerlegno
looked troubled. Are you suggesting I lock the entire College of Cardinals on
top of a time bomb?
Yes, signore.
For now. Later, if need be, we can arrange evacuation.
The camerlegno
shook his head. Postponing the ceremony before it starts is grounds alone for
an inquiry, but after the doors are sealed nothing intervenes. Conclave
procedure obligates
Real world,
signore. Youre in it tonight. Listen closely. Olivetti spoke now with the
efficient rattle of a field officer. Marching one hundred sixty five cardinals
unprepared and unprotected into Rome would be reckless. It would cause
confusion and panic in some very old men, and frankly, one fatal stroke this
month is enough.
One fatal stroke.
The commanders words recalled the headlines Langdon had read over dinner with
some students in the Harvard Commons:
Pope suffers
stroke.
Dies in sleep.
In addition,
Olivetti said, the Sistine Chapel is a fortress. Although we dont advertise
the fact, the structure is heavily reinforced and can repel any attack short of
missiles. As preparation we searched every inch of the chapel this afternoon,
scanning for bugs and other surveillance equipment. The chapel is clean, a safe
haven, and I am confident the antimatter is not inside. There is no safer place
those men can be right now. We can always discuss emergency evacuation later if
it comes to that.
Langdon was
impressed. Olivettis cold, smart logic reminded him of Kohler.
Commander,
Vittoria said, her voice tense, there are other concerns. Nobody has ever
created this much antimatter. The blast radius, I can only estimate. Some of
surrounding Rome may be in danger. If the canister is in one of your central
buildings or underground, the effect outside these walls may be minimal, but if
the canister is near the perimeter . . . in this building for example . . .
She glanced warily out the window at the crowd in St. Peters Square.
I am well aware
of my responsibilities to the outside world, Olivetti replied, and it makes
this situation no more grave. The protection of this sanctuary has been my sole
charge for over two decades. I have no intention of allowing this weapon to
detonate.
Camerlegno
Ventresca looked up. You think you can find it?
Let me discuss
our options with some of my surveillance specialists. There is a possibility,
if we kill power to Vatican City, that we can eliminate the background RF and
create a clean enough environment to get a reading on that canisters magnetic
field.
Vittoria looked
surprised, and then impressed. You want to black out Vatican City?
Possibly. I
dont yet know if its possible, but it is one option I want to explore.
The cardinals
would certainly wonder what happened, Vittoria remarked.
Olivetti shook
his head. Conclaves are held by candlelight. The cardinals would never know.
After conclave is sealed, I could pull all except a few of my perimeter guards
and begin a search. A hundred men could cover a lot of ground in five hours.
Four hours,
Vittoria corrected. I need to fly the canister back to CERN. Detonation is
unavoidable without recharging the batteries.
Theres no way
to recharge here?
Vittoria shook
her head. The interface is complex. Id have brought it if I could.
Four hours
then, Olivetti said, frowning. Still time enough. Panic serves no one.
Signore, you have ten minutes. Go to the chapel, seal conclave. Give my men
some time to do their job. As we get closer to the critical hour, we will make
the critical decisions.
Langdon wondered
how close to the critical hour Olivetti would let things get.
The camerlegno
looked troubled. But the college will ask about the preferiti . . . especially
about Baggia . . . where they are.
Then you will
have to think of something, signore. Tell them you served the four cardinals
something at tea that disagreed with them.
The camerlegno
looked riled. Stand on the altar of the Sistine Chapel and lie to the College
of Cardinals?
For their own
safety. Una bugia veniale. A white lie. Your job will be to keep the peace.
Olivetti headed for the door. Now if you will excuse me, I need to get
started.
Comandante, the
camerlegno urged, we cannot simply turn our backs on missing cardinals.
Olivetti stopped
in the doorway. Baggia and the others are currently outside our sphere of
influence. We must let them go . . . for the good of the whole. The military
calls it triage.
Dont you mean
abandonment ?
His voice
hardened. If there were any way, signore . . . any way in heaven to locate
those four cardinals, I would lay down my life to do it. And yet . . . He
pointed across the room at the window where the early evening sun glinted off
an endless sea of Roman rooftops. Searching a city of five million is not
within my power. I will not waste precious time to appease my conscience in a
futile exercise. Im sorry.
Vittoria spoke
suddenly. But if we caught the killer, couldnt you make him talk?
Olivetti frowned
at her. Soldiers cannot afford to be saints, Ms. Vetra. Believe me, I
empathize with your personal incentive to catch this man.
Its not only
personal, she said. The killer knows where the antimatter is . . . and the
missing cardinals. If we could somehow find him . . .
Play into their
hands? Olivetti said. Believe me, removing all protection from Vatican City
in order to stake out hundreds of churches is what the Illuminati hope we will
do . . . wasting precious time and manpower when we should be searching . . .
or worse yet, leaving the Vatican Bank totally unprotected. Not to mention the
remaining cardinals.
The point hit
home.
How about the
Roman Police? the camerlegno asked. We could alert citywide enforcement of
the crisis. Enlist their help in finding the cardinals captor.
Another
mistake, Olivetti said. You know how the Roman Carbonieri feel about us. Wed
get a half hearted effort of a few men in exchange for their selling our crisis
to the global media. Exactly what our enemies want. Well have to deal with the
media soon enough as it is.
I will make your
cardinals media luminaries, Langdon thought, recalling the killers words. The
first cardinals body appears at eight oclock. Then one every hour. The press
will love it.
The camerlegno
was talking again, a trace of anger in his voice. Commander, we cannot in good
conscience do nothing about the missing cardinals!
Olivetti looked
the camerlegno dead in the eye. The prayer of St. Francis, signore. Do you
recall it?
The young priest
spoke the single line with pain in his voice. God, grant me strength to accept
those things I cannot change.
Trust me, Olivetti
said. This is one of those things. Then he was gone.
44
The central
office of the British Broadcast Corporation (BBC) is in London just west of
Piccadilly Circus. The switchboard phone rang, and a junior content editor
picked up.
BBC, she said,
stubbing out her Dunhill cigarette.
The voice on the
line was raspy, with a Mid East accent. I have a breaking story your network
might be interested in.
The editor took
out a pen and a standard Lead Sheet. Regarding?
The papal
election.
She frowned
wearily. The BBC had run a preliminary story yesterday to mediocre response.
The public, it seemed, had little interest in Vatican City. Whats the angle?
Do you have a TV
reporter in Rome covering the election?
I believe so.
I need to speak
to him directly.
Im sorry, but I
cannot give you that number without some idea
There is a
threat to the conclave. That is all I can tell you.
The editor took
notes. Your name?
My name is
immaterial.
The editor was
not surprised. And you have proof of this claim?
I do.
I would be happy
to take the information, but it is not our policy to give out our reporters
numbers unless
I understand. I
will call another network. Thank you for your time. Good b
Just a moment,
she said. Can you hold?
The editor put
the caller on hold and stretched her neck. The art of screening out potential
crank calls was by no means a perfect science, but this caller had just passed
the BBCs two tacit tests for authenticity of a phone source. He had refused to
give his name, and he was eager to get off the phone. Hacks and glory hounds
usually whined and pleaded.
Fortunately for
her, reporters lived in eternal fear of missing the big story, so they seldom
chastised her for passing along the occasional delusional psychotic. Wasting
five minutes of a reporters time was forgivable. Missing a headline was not.
Yawning, she
looked at her computer and typed in the keywords Vatican City. When she saw
the name of the field reporter covering the papal election, she chuckled to
herself. He was a new guy the BBC had just brought up from some trashy London
tabloid to handle some of the BBCs more mundane coverage. Editorial had
obviously started him at the bottom rung.
He was probably
bored out of his mind, waiting all night to record his live ten second video
spot. He would most likely be grateful for a break in the monotony.
The BBC content
editor copied down the reporters satellite extension in Vatican City. Then,
lighting another cigarette, she gave the anonymous caller the reporters
number.
45
It wont work,
Vittoria said, pacing the Popes office. She looked up at the camerlegno. Even
if a Swiss Guard team can filter electronic interference, they will have to be
practically on top of the canister before they detect any signal. And thats if
the canister is even accessible . . . unenclosed by other barriers. What if
its buried in a metal box somewhere on your grounds? Or up in a metal
ventilating duct. Theres no way theyll trace it. And what if the Swiss Guards
have been infiltrated? Whos to say the search will be clean?
The camerlegno
looked drained. What are you proposing, Ms. Vetra?
Vittoria felt
flustered. Isnt it obvious? I am proposing, sir, that you take other
precautions immediately. We can hope against all hope that the commanders
search is successful. At the same time, look out the window. Do you see those
people? Those buildings across the piazza? Those media vans? The tourists? They
are quite possibly within range of the blast. You need to act now.
The camerlegno
nodded vacantly.
Vittoria felt
frustrated. Olivetti had convinced everyone there was plenty of time. But
Vittoria knew if news of the Vatican predicament leaked out, the entire area
could fill with onlookers in a matter of minutes. She had seen it once outside
the Swiss Parliament building. During a hostage situation involving a bomb,
thousands had congregated outside the building to witness the outcome. Despite
police warnings that they were in danger, the crowd packed in closer and
closer. Nothing captured human interest like human tragedy.
Signore,
Vittoria urged, the man who killed my father is out there somewhere. Every
cell in this body wants to run from here and hunt him down. But I am standing
in your office . . . because I have a responsibility to you. To you and others.
Lives are in danger, signore. Do you hear me?
The camerlegno
did not answer.
Vittoria could
hear her own heart racing. Why couldnt the Swiss Guard trace that damn caller?
The Illuminati assassin is the key! He knows where the antimatter is . . .
hell, he knows where the cardinals are! Catch the killer, and everything is
solved.
Vittoria sensed
she was starting to come unhinged, an alien distress she recalled only faintly
from childhood, the orphanage years, frustration with no tools to handle it.
You have tools, she told herself, you always have tools. But it was no use. Her
thoughts intruded, strangling her. She was a researcher and problem solver. But
this was a problem with no solution. What data do you require? What do you
want? She told herself to breathe deeply, but for the first time in her life,
she could not. She was suffocating.
Langdons head
ached, and he felt like he was skirting the edges of rationality. He watched
Vittoria and the camerlegno, but his vision was blurred by hideous images:
explosions, press swarming, cameras rolling, four branded humans.
Shaitan . . .
Lucifer . . . Bringer of light . . . Satan . . .
He shook the
fiendish images from his mind. Calculated terrorism, he reminded himself,
grasping at reality. Planned chaos. He thought back to a Radcliffe seminar he
had once audited while researching praetorian symbolism. He had never seen
terrorists the same way since.
Terrorism, the
professor had lectured, has a singular goal. What is it?
Killing innocent
people? a student ventured.
Incorrect. Death
is only a byproduct of terrorism.
A show of
strength?
No. A weaker
persuasion does not exist.
To cause
terror?
Concisely put.
Quite simply, the goal of terrorism is to create terror and fear. Fear
undermines faith in the establishment. It weakens the enemy from within . . .
causing unrest in the masses. Write this down. Terrorism is not an expression
of rage. Terrorism is a political weapon. Remove a governments façade
of infallibility, and you remove its peoples faith.
Loss of faith . .
.
Is that what this
was all about? Langdon wondered how Christians of the world would react to
cardinals being laid out like mutilated dogs. If the faith of a canonized
priest did not protect him from the evils of Satan, what hope was there for the
rest of us? Langdons head was pounding louder now . . . tiny voices playing
tug of war.
Faith does not
protect you. Medicine and airbags . . . those are things that protect you. God
does not protect you. Intelligence protects you. Enlightenment. Put your faith
in something with tangible results. How long has it been since someone walked
on water? Modern miracles belong to science . . . computers, vaccines, space
stations . . . even the divine miracle of creation. Matter from nothing . . .
in a lab. Who needs God? No! Science is God.
The killers
voice resonated in Langdons mind. Midnight . . . mathematical progression of
death . . . sacrifici vergini nell altare di scienza.
Then suddenly,
like a crowd dispersed by a single gunshot, the voices were gone.
Robert Langdon
bolted to his feet. His chair fell backward and crashed on the marble floor.
Vittoria and the
camerlegno jumped.
I missed it,
Langdon whispered, spellbound. It was right in front of me . . .
Missed what?
Vittoria demanded.
Langdon turned to
the priest. Father, for three years I have petitioned this office for access
to the Vatican Archives. I have been denied seven times.
Mr. Langdon, I
am sorry, but this hardly seems the moment to raise such complaints.
I need access
immediately. The four missing cardinals. I may be able to figure out where
theyre going to be killed.
Vittoria stared,
looking certain she had misunderstood.
The camerlegno
looked troubled, as if he were the brunt of a cruel joke. You expect me to
believe this information is in our archives ?
I cant promise
I can locate it in time, but if you let me in . . .
Mr. Langdon, I
am due in the Sistine Chapel in four minutes. The archives are across Vatican
City.
Youre serious
arent you? Vittoria interrupted, staring deep into Langdons eyes, seeming to
sense his earnestness.
Hardly a joking
time, Langdon said.
Father,
Vittoria said, turning to the camerlegno, if theres a chance . . . any at all
of finding where these killings are going to happen, we could stake out the
locations and
But the
archives? the camerlegno insisted. How could they possibly contain any clue?
Explaining it, Langdon
said, will take longer than youve got. But if Im right, we can use the
information to catch the Hassassin.
The camerlegno
looked as though he wanted to believe but somehow could not. Christianitys
most sacred codices are in that archive. Treasures I myself am not privileged
enough to see.
I am aware of
that.
Access is
permitted only by written decree of the curator and the Board of Vatican
Librarians.
Or, Langdon
declared, by papal mandate. It says so in every rejection letter your curator
ever sent me.
The camerlegno
nodded.
Not to be rude,
Langdon urged, but if Im not mistaken a papal mandate comes from this office.
As far as I can tell, tonight you hold the trust of his station. Considering
the circumstances . . .
The camerlegno
pulled a pocket watch from his cassock and looked at it. Mr. Langdon, I am
prepared to give my life tonight, quite literally, to save this church.
Langdon sensed
nothing but truth in the mans eyes.
This document,
the camerlegno said, do you truly believe it is here? And that it can help us
locate these four churches?
I would not have
made countless solicitations for access if I were not convinced. Italy is a bit
far to come on a lark when you make a teachers salary. The document you have
is an ancient
Please, the
camerlegno interrupted. Forgive me. My mind cannot process any more details at
the moment. Do you know where the secret archives are located?
Langdon felt a
rush of excitement. Just behind the Santa Ana Gate.
Impressive. Most
scholars believe it is through the secret door behind St. Peters Throne.
No. That would
be the Archivio della Reverenda di Fabbrica di S. Pietro. A common
misconception.
A librarian
docent accompanies every entrant at all times. Tonight, the docents are gone.
What you are requesting is carte blanche access. Not even our cardinals enter
alone.
I will treat
your treasures with the utmost respect and care. Your librarians will find not
a trace that I was there.
Overhead the
bells of St. Peters began to toll. The camerlegno checked his pocket watch. I
must go. He paused a taut moment and looked up at Langdon. I will have a
Swiss Guard meet you at the archives. I am giving you my trust, Mr. Langdon. Go
now.
Langdon was
speechless.
The young priest
now seemed to possess an eerie poise. Reaching over, he squeezed Langdons
shoulder with surprising strength. I want you to find what you are looking
for. And find it quickly.
46
The Secret
Vatican Archives are located at the far end of the Borgia Courtyard directly up
a hill from the Gate of Santa Ana. They contain over 20,000 volumes and are
rumored to hold such treasures as Leonardo da Vincis missing diaries and even
unpublished books of the Holy Bible.
Langdon strode
powerfully up the deserted Via della Fondamenta toward the archives, his mind
barely able to accept that he was about to be granted access. Vittoria was at
his side, keeping pace effortlessly. Her almond scented hair tossed lightly in
the breeze, and Langdon breathed it in. He felt his thoughts straying and
reeled himself back.
Vittoria said,
You going to tell me what were looking for?
A little book
written by a guy named Galileo.
She sounded
surprised. You dont mess around. Whats in it?
It is supposed
to contain something called il segno.
The sign?
Sign, clue,
signal . . . depends on your translation.
Sign to what ?
Langdon picked up
the pace. A secret location. Galileos Illuminati needed to protect themselves
from the Vatican, so they founded an ultrasecret Illuminati meeting place here
in Rome. They called it The Church of Illumination.
Pretty bold
calling a satanic lair a church.
Langdon shook his
head. Galileos Illuminati were not the least bit satanic. They were
scientists who revered enlightenment. Their meeting place was simply where they
could safely congregate and discuss topics forbidden by the Vatican. Although
we know the secret lair existed, to this day nobody has ever located it.
Sounds like the
Illuminati know how to keep a secret.
Absolutely. In
fact, they never revealed the location of their hideaway to anyone outside the
brotherhood. This secrecy protected them, but it also posed a problem when it
came to recruiting new members.
They couldnt
grow if they couldnt advertise, Vittoria said, her legs and mind keeping
perfect pace.
Exactly. Word of
Galileos brotherhood started to spread in the 1630s, and scientists from
around the world made secret pilgrimages to Rome hoping to join the Illuminati
. . . eager for a chance to look through Galileos telescope and hear the
masters ideas. Unfortunately, though, because of the Illuminatis secrecy,
scientists arriving in Rome never knew where to go for the meetings or to whom
they could safely speak. The Illuminati wanted new blood, but they could not
afford to risk their secrecy by making their whereabouts known.
Vittoria frowned.
Sounds like a situazione senza soluzione.
Exactly. A catch
22, as we would say.
So what did they
do?
They were
scientists. They examined the problem and found a solution. A brilliant one,
actually. The Illuminati created a kind of ingenious map directing scientists
to their sanctuary.
Vittoria looked
suddenly skeptical and slowed. A map? Sounds careless. If a copy fell into the
wrong hands . . .
It couldnt,
Langdon said. No copies existed anywhere. It was not the kind of map that fit
on paper. It was enormous. A blazed trail of sorts across the city.
Vittoria slowed
even further. Arrows painted on sidewalks?
In a sense, yes,
but much more subtle. The map consisted of a series of carefully concealed
symbolic markers placed in public locations around the city. One marker led to
the next . . . and the next . . . a trail . . . eventually leading to the
Illuminati lair.
Vittoria eyed him
askance. Sounds like a treasure hunt.
Langdon chuckled.
In a manner of speaking, it is. The Illuminati called their string of markers
The Path of Illumination, and anyone who wanted to join the brotherhood had
to follow it all the way to the end. A kind of test.
But if the
Vatican wanted to find the Illuminati, Vittoria argued, couldnt they simply
follow the markers?
No. The path was
hidden. A puzzle, constructed in such a way that only certain people would have
the ability to track the markers and figure out where the Illuminati church was
hidden. The Illuminati intended it as a kind of initiation, functioning not
only as a security measure but also as a screening process to ensure that only
the brightest scientists arrived at their door.
I dont buy it.
In the 1600s the clergy were some of the most educated men in the world. If
these markers were in public locations, certainly there existed members of the
Vatican who could have figured it out.
Sure, Langdon
said, if they had known about the markers. But they didnt. And they never
noticed them because the Illuminati designed them in such a way that clerics
would never suspect what they were. They used a method known in symbology as
dissimulation.
Camouflage.
Langdon was
impressed. You know the term.
Dissimulacione,
she said. Natures best defense. Try spotting a trumpet fish floating
vertically in seagrass.
Okay, Langdon
said. The Illuminati used the same concept. They created markers that faded
into the backdrop of ancient Rome. They couldnt use ambigrams or scientific
symbology because it would be far too conspicuous, so they called on an
Illuminati artistthe same anonymous prodigy who had created their
ambigrammatic symbol Illuminatiand they commissioned him to carve four
sculptures.
Illuminati
sculptures ?
Yes, sculptures
with two strict guidelines. First, the sculptures had to look like the rest of
the artwork in Rome . . . artwork that the Vatican would never suspect belonged
to the Illuminati.
Religious art.
Langdon nodded,
feeling a tinge of excitement, talking faster now. And the second guideline
was that the four sculptures had to have very specific themes. Each piece
needed to be a subtle tribute to one of the four elements of science.
Four elements?
Vittoria said. There are over a hundred.
Not in the
1600s, Langdon reminded her. Early alchemists believed the entire universe
was made up of only four substances: Earth, Air, Fire, and Water.
The early cross,
Langdon knew, was the most common symbol of the four elementsfour arms
representing Earth, Air, Fire, and Water. Beyond that, though, there existed
literally dozens of symbolic occurrences of Earth, Air, Fire, and Water
throughout historythe Pythagorean cycles of life, the Chinese Hong Fan, the
Jungian male and female rudiments, the quadrants of the Zodiac, even the
Muslims revered the four ancient elements . . . although in Islam they were
known as squares, clouds, lightning, and waves. For Langdon, though, it was a
more modern usage that always gave him chillsthe Masons four mystic grades of
Absolute Initiation: Earth, Air, Fire, and Water.
Vittoria seemed
mystified. So this Illuminati artist created four pieces of art that looked religious,
but were actually tributes to Earth, Air, Fire, and Water?
Exactly,
Langdon said, quickly turning up Via Sentinel toward the archives. The pieces
blended into the sea of religious artwork all over Rome. By donating the
artwork anonymously to specific churches and then using their political
influence, the brotherhood facilitated placement of these four pieces in
carefully chosen churches in Rome. Each piece of course was a marker . . .
subtly pointing to the next church . . . where the next marker awaited. It
functioned as a trail of clues disguised as religious art. If an Illuminati
candidate could find the first church and the marker for Earth, he could follow
it to Air . . . and then to Fire . . . and then to Water . . . and finally to
the Church of Illumination.
Vittoria was
looking less and less clear. And this has something to do with catching the
Illuminati assassin?
Langdon smiled as
he played his ace. Oh, yes. The Illuminati called these four churches by a
very special name. The Altars of Science.
Vittoria frowned.
Im sorry, that means noth She stopped short. Laltare di scienza? she
exclaimed. The Illuminati assassin. He warned that the cardinals would be
virgin sacrifices on the altars of science!
Langdon gave her
a smile. Four cardinals. Four churches. The four altars of science.
She looked
stunned. Youre saying the four churches where the cardinals will be
sacrificed are the same four churches that mark the ancient Path of
Illumination?
I believe so,
yes.
But why would
the killer have given us that clue?
Why not?
Langdon replied. Very few historians know about these sculptures. Even fewer
believe they exist. And their locations have remained secret for four hundred
years. No doubt the Illuminati trusted the secret for another five hours.
Besides, the Illuminati dont need their Path of Illumination anymore. Their
secret lair is probably long gone anyway. They live in the modern world. They
meet in bank boardrooms, eating clubs, private golf courses. Tonight they want
to make their secrets public. This is their moment. Their grand unveiling.
Langdon feared
the Illuminati unveiling would have a special symmetry to it that he had not
yet mentioned. The four brands. The killer had sworn each cardinal would be
branded with a different symbol. Proof the ancient legends are true, the killer
had said. The legend of the four ambigrammatic brands was as old as the
Illuminati itself: earth, air, fire, waterfour words crafted in perfect
symmetry. Just like the word Illuminati. Each cardinal was to be branded with
one of the ancient elements of science. The rumor that the four brands were in
English rather than Italian remained a point of debate among historians.
English seemed a random deviation from their natural tongue . . . and the
Illuminati did nothing randomly.
Langdon turned up
the brick pathway before the archive building. Ghastly images thrashed in his
mind. The overall Illuminati plot was starting to reveal its patient grandeur.
The brotherhood had vowed to stay silent as long as it took, amassing enough
influence and power that they could resurface without fear, make their stand,
fight their cause in broad daylight. The Illuminati were no longer about
hiding. They were about flaunting their power, confirming the conspiratorial
myths as fact. Tonight was a global publicity stunt.
Vittoria said,
Here comes our escort. Langdon looked up to see a Swiss Guard hurrying across
an adjacent lawn toward the front door.
When the guard
saw them, he stopped in his tracks. He stared at them, as though he thought he
was hallucinating. Without a word he turned away and pulled out his walkie
talkie. Apparently incredulous at what he was being asked to do, the guard
spoke urgently to the person on the other end. The angry bark coming back was
indecipherable to Langdon, but its message was clear. The guard slumped, put
away the walkie talkie, and turned to them with a look of discontent.
Not a word was
spoken as the guard guided them into the building. They passed through four
steel doors, two passkey entries, down a long stairwell, and into a foyer with
two combination keypads. Passing through a high tech series of electronic
gates, they arrived at the end of a long hallway outside a set of wide oak
double doors. The guard stopped, looked them over again and, mumbling under his
breath, walked to a metal box on the wall. He unlocked it, reached inside, and
pressed a code. The doors before them buzzed, and the deadbolt fell open.
The guard turned,
speaking to them for the first time. The archives are beyond that door. I have
been instructed to escort you this far and return for briefing on another
matter.
Youre leaving?
Vittoria demanded.
Swiss Guards are
not cleared for access to the Secret Archives. You are here only because my
commander received a direct order from the camerlegno.
But how do we
get out ?
Monodirectional
security. You will have no difficulties. That being the entirety of the
conversation, the guard spun on his heel and marched off down the hall.
Vittoria made some
comment, but Langdon did not hear. His mind was fixed on the double doors
before him, wondering what mysteries lay beyond.
47
Although he knew
time was short, Camerlegno Carlo Ventresca walked slowly. He needed the time
alone to gather his thoughts before facing opening prayer. So much was
happening. As he moved in dim solitude down the Northern Wing, the challenge of
the past fifteen days weighed heavy in his bones.
He had followed
his holy duties to the letter.
As was Vatican
tradition, following the Popes death the camerlegno had personally confirmed
expiration by placing his fingers on the Popes carotid artery, listening for
breath, and then calling the Popes name three times. By law there was no
autopsy. Then he had sealed the Popes bedroom, destroyed the papal fishermans
ring, shattered the die used to make lead seals, and arranged for the funeral.
That done, he began preparations for the conclave.
Conclave, he
thought. The final hurdle. It was one of the oldest traditions in Christendom.
Nowadays, because the outcome of conclave was usually known before it began,
the process was criticized as obsoletemore of a burlesque than an election.
The camerlegno knew, however, this was only a lack of understanding. Conclave
was not an election. It was an ancient, mystic transference of power. The
tradition was timeless . . . the secrecy, the folded slips of paper, the
burning of the ballots, the mixing of ancient chemicals, the smoke signals.
As the camerlegno
approached through the Loggias of Gregory XIII, he wondered if Cardinal Mortati
was in a panic yet. Certainly Mortati had noticed the preferiti were missing.
Without them, the voting would go on all night. Mortatis appointment as the
Great Elector, the camerlegno assured himself, was a good one. The man was a
freethinker and could speak his mind. The conclave would need a leader tonight
more than ever.
As the camerlegno
arrived at the top of the Royal Staircase, he felt as though he were standing
on the precipice of his life. Even from up here he could hear the rumble of
activity in the Sistine Chapel belowthe uneasy chatter of 165 cardinals.
One hundred sixty
one cardinals, he corrected.
For an instant the
camerlegno was falling, plummeting toward hell, people screaming, flames
engulfing him, stones and blood raining from the sky.
And then silence.
When the child
awoke, he was in heaven. Everything around him was white. The light was
blinding and pure. Although some would say a ten year old could not possibly
understand heaven, the young Carlo Ventresca understood heaven very well. He
was in heaven right now. Where else would he be? Even in his short decade on
earth Carlo had felt the majesty of Godthe thundering pipe organs, the
towering domes, the voices raised in song, the stained glass, shimmering bronze
and gold. Carlos mother, Maria, brought him to Mass every day. The church was
Carlos home.
Why do we come
to Mass every single day? Carlo asked, not that he minded at all.
Because I
promised God I would, she replied. And a promise to God is the most important
promise of all. Never break a promise to God.
Carlo promised
her he would never break a promise to God. He loved his mother more than anything
in the world. She was his holy angel. Sometimes he called her Maria benedetta
the Blessed Maryalthough she did not like that at all. He knelt with her as
she prayed, smelling the sweet scent of her flesh and listening to the murmur
of her voice as she counted the rosary. Hail Mary, Mother of God . . . pray for
us sinners . . . now and at the hour of our death.
Where is my
father? Carlo asked, already knowing his father had died before he was born.
God is your
father, now, she would always reply. You are a child of the church.
Carlo loved that.
Whenever you
feel frightened, she said, remember that God is your father now. He will
watch over you and protect you forever. God has big plans for you, Carlo. The
boy knew she was right. He could already feel God in his blood.
Blood . . .
Blood raining
from the sky!
Silence. Then
heaven.
His heaven, Carlo
learned as the blinding lights were turned off, was actually the Intensive Care
Unit in Santa Clara Hospital outside of Palermo. Carlo had been the sole
survivor of a terrorist bombing that had collapsed a chapel where he and his
mother had been attending Mass while on vacation. Thirty seven people had died,
including Carlos mother. The papers called Carlos survival The Miracle of St.
Francis. Carlo had, for some unknown reason, only moments before the blast,
left his mothers side and ventured into a protected alcove to ponder a
tapestry depicting the story of St. Francis.
God called me
there, he decided. He wanted to save me.
Carlo was
delirious with pain. He could still see his mother, kneeling at the pew,
blowing him a kiss, and then with a concussive roar, her sweet smelling flesh
was torn apart. He could still taste mans evil. Blood showered down. His
mothers blood! The blessed Maria!
God will watch
over you and protect you forever, his mother had told him.
But where was God
now!
Then, like a
worldly manifestation of his mothers truth, a clergyman had come to the
hospital. He was not any clergyman. He was a bishop. He prayed over Carlo. The
Miracle of St. Francis. When Carlo recovered, the bishop arranged for him to
live in a small monastery attached to the cathedral over which the bishop
presided. Carlo lived and tutored with the monks. He even became an altar boy
for his new protector. The bishop suggested Carlo enter public school, but
Carlo refused. He could not have been more happy with his new home. He now
truly lived in the house of God.
Every night Carlo
prayed for his mother.
God saved me for
a reason, he thought. What is the reason?
When Carlo turned
sixteen, he was obliged by Italian law to serve two years of reserve military
training. The bishop told Carlo that if he entered seminary he would be exempt
from this duty. Carlo told the priest that he planned to enter seminary but
that first he needed to understand evil.
The bishop did
not understand.
Carlo told him
that if he was going to spend his life in the church fighting evil, first he
had to understand it. He could not think of any better place to understand evil
than in the army. The army used guns and bombs. A bomb killed my Blessed
mother!
The bishop tried
to dissuade him, but Carlos mind was made up.
Be careful, my
son, the bishop had said. And remember the church awaits you when you
return.
Carlos two years
of military service had been dreadful. Carlos youth had been one of silence
and reflection. But in the army there was no quiet for reflection. Endless
noise. Huge machines everywhere. Not a moment of peace. Although the soldiers
went to Mass once a week at the barracks, Carlo did not sense Gods presence in
any of his fellow soldiers. Their minds were too filled with chaos to see God.
Carlo hated his
new life and wanted to go home. But he was determined to stick it out. He had
yet to understand evil. He refused to fire a gun, so the military taught him
how to fly a medical helicopter. Carlo hated the noise and the smell, but at
least it let him fly up in the sky and be closer to his mother in heaven. When
he was informed his pilots training included learning how to parachute, Carlo
was terrified. Still, he had no choice.
God will protect
me, he told himself.
Carlos first
parachute jump was the most exhilarating physical experience of his life. It
was like flying with God. Carlo could not get enough . . . the silence . . .
the floating . . . seeing his mothers face in the billowing white clouds as he
soared to earth. God has plans for you, Carlo. When he returned from the
military, Carlo entered the seminary.
That had been
twenty three years ago.
Now, as
Camerlegno Carlo Ventresca descended the Royal Staircase, he tried to
comprehend the chain of events that had delivered him to this extraordinary
crossroads.
Abandon all fear,
he told himself, and give this night over to God.
He could see the
great bronze door of the Sistine Chapel now, dutifully protected by four Swiss
Guards. The guards unbolted the door and pulled it open. Inside, every head
turned. The camerlegno gazed out at the black robes and red sashes before him.
He understood what Gods plans for him were. The fate of the church had been
placed in his hands.
The camerlegno
crossed himself and stepped over the threshold.
48
BBC journalist
Gunther Glick sat sweating in the BBC network van parked on the eastern edge of
St. Peters Square and cursed his assignment editor. Although Glicks first
monthly review had come back filled with superlativesresourceful, sharp,
dependablehere he was in Vatican City on Pope Watch. He reminded himself
that reporting for the BBC carried a hell of a lot more credibility than
fabricating fodder for the British Tattler, but still, this was not his idea of
reporting.
Glicks
assignment was simple. Insultingly simple. He was to sit here waiting for a
bunch of old farts to elect their next chief old fart, then he was to step
outside and record a fifteen second live spot with the Vatican as a backdrop.
Brilliant.
Glick couldnt
believe the BBC still sent reporters into the field to cover this schlock. You
dont see the American networks here tonight. Hell no! That was because the big
boys did it right. They watched CNN, synopsized it, and then filmed their
live report in front of a blue screen, superimposing stock video for a
realistic backdrop. MSNBC even used in studio wind and rain machines to give
that on the scene authenticity. Viewers didnt want truth anymore; they wanted
entertainment.
Glick gazed out
through the windshield and felt more and more depressed by the minute. The
imperial mountain of Vatican City rose before him as a dismal reminder of what
men could accomplish when they put their minds to it.
What have I
accomplished in my life? he wondered aloud. Nothing.
So give up, a
womans voice said from behind him.
Glick jumped. He
had almost forgotten he was not alone. He turned to the back seat, where his
camerawoman, Chinita Macri, sat silently polishing her glasses. She was always
polishing her glasses. Chinita was black, although she preferred African
American, a little heavy, and smart as hell. She wouldnt let you forget it
either. She was an odd bird, but Glick liked her. And Glick could sure as hell
use the company.
Whats the
problem, Gunth? Chinita asked.
What are we
doing here?
She kept
polishing. Witnessing an exciting event.
Old men locked
in the dark is exciting?
You do know
youre going to hell, dont you?
Already there.
Talk to me. She
sounded like his mother.
I just feel like
I want to leave my mark.
You wrote for
the British Tattler.
Yeah, but
nothing with any resonance.
Oh, come on, I
heard you did a groundbreaking article on the queens secret sex life with
aliens.
Thanks.
Hey, things are
looking up. Tonight you make your first fifteen seconds of TV history.
Glick groaned. He
could hear the news anchor already. Thanks Gunther, great report. Then the
anchor would roll his eyes and move on to the weather. I should have tried for
an anchor spot.
Macri laughed.
With no experience? And that beard? Forget it.
Glick ran his
hands through the reddish gob of hair on his chin. I think it makes me look
clever.
The vans cell
phone rang, mercifully interrupting yet another one of Glicks failures. Maybe
thats editorial, he said, suddenly hopeful. You think they want a live
update?
On this story?
Macri laughed. You keep dreaming.
Glick answered
the phone in his best anchorman voice. Gunther Glick, BBC, Live in Vatican
City.
The man on the
line had a thick Arabic accent. Listen carefully, he said. I am about to
change your life.
49
Langdon and
Vittoria stood alone now outside the double doors that led to the inner sanctum
of the Secret Archives. The decor in the colonnade was an incongruous mix of
wall to wall carpets over marble floors and wireless security cameras gazing
down from beside carved cherubs in the ceiling. Langdon dubbed it Sterile
Renaissance. Beside the arched ingress hung a small bronze plaque.
ARCHIVIO VATICANO
Curatore: Padre
Jaqui Tomaso
Father Jaqui
Tomaso. Langdon recognized the curators name from the rejection letters at
home in his desk.
Dear Mr. Langdon,
It is with regret that I am writing to deny . . .
Regret. Bullshit.
Since Jaqui Tomasos reign had begun, Langdon had never met a single non
Catholic American scholar who had been given access to the Secret Vatican
Archives. Il gaurdiano, historians called him. Jaqui Tomaso was the toughest
librarian on earth.
As Langdon pushed
the doors open and stepped through the vaulted portal into the inner sanctum,
he half expected to see Father Jaqui in full military fatigues and helmet standing
guard with a bazooka. The space, however, was deserted.
Silence. Soft
lighting.
Archivio
Vaticano. One of his life dreams.
As Langdons eyes
took in the sacred chamber, his first reaction was one of embarrassment. He
realized what a callow romantic he was. The images he had held for so many
years of this room could not have been more inaccurate. He had imagined dusty
bookshelves piled high with tattered volumes, priests cataloging by the light
of candles and stained glass windows, monks poring over scrolls . . .
Not even close.
At first glance
the room appeared to be a darkened airline hangar in which someone had built a
dozen free standing racquetball courts. Langdon knew of course what the glass
walled enclosures were. He was not surprised to see them; humidity and heat
eroded ancient vellums and parchments, and proper preservation required
hermitic vaults like theseairtight cubicles that kept out humidity and natural
acids in the air. Langdon had been inside hermetic vaults many times, but it
was always an unsettling experience . . . something about entering an airtight
container where the oxygen was regulated by a reference librarian.
The vaults were
dark, ghostly even, faintly outlined by tiny dome lights at the end of each
stack. In the blackness of each cell, Langdon sensed the phantom giants, row
upon row of towering stacks, laden with history. This was one hell of a collection.
Vittoria also
seemed dazzled. She stood beside him staring mutely at the giant transparent
cubes.
Time was short,
and Langdon wasted none of it scanning the dimly lit room for a book cataloga
bound encyclopedia that cataloged the librarys collection. All he saw was the
glow of a handful of computer terminals dotting the room. Looks like theyve
got a Biblion. Their index is computerized.
Vittoria looked
hopeful. That should speed things up.
Langdon wished he
shared her enthusiasm, but he sensed this was bad news. He walked to a terminal
and began typing. His fears were instantly confirmed. The old fashioned method
would have been better.
Why?
He stepped back
from the monitor. Because real books dont have password protection. I dont
suppose physicists are natural born hackers?
Vittoria shook
her head. I can open oysters, thats about it.
Langdon took a
deep breath and turned to face the eerie collection of diaphanous vaults. He
walked to the nearest one and squinted into the dim interior. Inside the glass
were amorphous shapes Langdon recognized as the usual bookshelves, parchment
bins, and examination tables. He looked up at the indicator tabs glowing at the
end of each stack. As in all libraries, the tabs indicated the contents of that
row. He read the headings as he moved down the transparent barrier.
Pietro Il Erimito
. . . Le Crociate . . . Urbano II . . . Levant . . .
Theyre
labeled, he said, still walking. But its not alpha author. He wasnt
surprised. Ancient archives were almost never cataloged alphabetically because
so many of the authors were unknown. Titles didnt work either because many
historical documents were untitled letters or parchment fragments. Most
cataloging was done chronologically. Disconcertingly, however, this arrangement
did not appear to be chronological.
Langdon felt
precious time already slipping away. Looks like the Vatican has its own
system.
What a
surprise.
He examined the
labels again. The documents spanned centuries, but all the keywords, he realized,
were interrelated. I think its a thematic classification.
Thematic?
Vittoria said, sounding like a disapproving scientist. Sounds inefficient.
Actually . . .
Langdon thought, considering it more closely. This may be the shrewdest
cataloging Ive ever seen. He had always urged his students to understand the
overall tones and motifs of an artistic period rather than getting lost in the
minutia of dates and specific works. The Vatican Archives, it seemed, were
cataloged on a similar philosophy. Broad strokes . . .
Everything in
this vault, Langdon said, feeling more confident now, centuries of material,
has to do with the Crusades. Thats this vaults theme. It was all here, he
realized. Historical accounts, letters, artwork, socio political data, modern
analyses. All in one place . . . encouraging a deeper understanding of a topic.
Brilliant.
Vittoria frowned.
But data can relate to multiple themes simultaneously.
Which is why
they cross reference with proxy markers. Langdon pointed through the glass to
the colorful plastic tabs inserted among the documents. Those indicate
secondary documents located elsewhere with their primary themes.
Sure, she said,
apparently letting it go. She put her hands on her hips and surveyed the
enormous space. Then she looked at Langdon. So, Professor, whats the name of
this Galileo thing were looking for?
Langdon couldnt
help but smile. He still couldnt fathom that he was standing in this room.
Its in here, he thought. Somewhere in the dark, its waiting.
Follow me,
Langdon said. He started briskly down the first aisle, examining the indicator
tabs of each vault. Remember how I told you about the Path of Illumination?
How the Illuminati recruited new members using an elaborate test?
The treasure
hunt, Vittoria said, following closely.
The challenge
the Illuminati had was that after they placed the markers, they needed some way
to tell the scientific community the path existed.
Logical,
Vittoria said. Otherwise nobody would know to look for it.
Yes, and even if
they knew the path existed, scientists would have no way of knowing where the
path began. Rome is huge.
Okay.
Langdon proceeded
down the next aisle, scanning the tabs as he talked. About fifteen years ago,
some historians at the Sorbonne and I uncovered a series of Illuminati letters
filled with references to the segno.
The sign. The
announcement about the path and where it began.
Yes. And since
then, plenty of Illuminati academics, myself included, have uncovered other
references to the segno. It is accepted theory now that the clue exists and
that Galileo mass distributed it to the scientific community without the
Vatican ever knowing.
How?
Were not sure,
but most likely printed publications. He published many books and newsletters
over the years.
That the Vatican
no doubt saw. Sounds dangerous.
True.
Nonetheless the segno was distributed.
But nobody has
ever actually found it?
No. Oddly
though, wherever allusions to the segno appearMasonic diaries, ancient
scientific journals, Illuminati lettersit is often referred to by a number.
666?
Langdon smiled.
Actually its 503.
Meaning?
None of us could
ever figure it out. I became fascinated with 503, trying everything to find
meaning in the numbernumerology, map references, latitudes. Langdon reached
the end of the aisle, turned the corner, and hurried to scan the next row of
tabs as he spoke. For many years the only clue seemed to be that 503 began
with the number five . . . one of the sacred Illuminati digits. He paused.
Something tells
me you recently figured it out, and thats why were here.
Correct,
Langdon said, allowing himself a rare moment of pride in his work. Are you
familiar with a book by Galileo called Diàlogo ?
Of course.
Famous among scientists as the ultimate scientific sellout.
Sellout wasnt
quite the word Langdon would have used, but he knew what Vittoria meant. In the
early 1630s, Galileo had wanted to publish a book endorsing the Copernican
heliocentric model of the solar system, but the Vatican would not permit the
books release unless Galileo included equally persuasive evidence for the
churchs geo centric modela model Galileo knew to be dead wrong. Galileo had
no choice but to acquiesce to the churchs demands and publish a book giving
equal time to both the accurate and inaccurate models.
As you probably
know, Langdon said, despite Galileos compromise, Diàlogo was still
seen as heretical, and the Vatican placed him under house arrest.
No good deed
goes unpunished.
Langdon smiled.
So true. And yet Galileo was persistent. While under house arrest, he secretly
wrote a lesser known manuscript that scholars often confuse with
Diàlogo. That book is called Discorsi.
Vittoria nodded.
Ive heard of it. Discourses on the Tides.
Langdon stopped
short, amazed she had heard of the obscure publication about planetary motion
and its effect on the tides.
Hey, she said,
youre talking to an Italian marine physicist whose father worshiped Galileo.
Langdon laughed.
Discorsi however was not what they were looking for. Langdon explained that
Discorsi had not been Galileos only work while under house arrest. Historians
believed he had also written an obscure booklet called Diagramma.
Diagramma della
Verità, Langdon said. Diagram of Truth.
Never heard of
it.
Im not
surprised. Diagramma was Galileos most secretive worksupposedly some sort of
treatise on scientific facts he held to be true but was not allowed to share.
Like some of Galileos previous manuscripts, Diagramma was smuggled out of Rome
by a friend and quietly published in Holland. The booklet became wildly popular
in the European scientific underground. Then the Vatican caught wind of it and
went on a book burning campaign.
Vittoria now
looked intrigued. And you think Diagramma contained the clue? The segno. The
information about the Path of Illumination.
Diagramma is how
Galileo got the word out. That Im sure of. Langdon entered the third row of
vaults and continued surveying the indicator tabs. Archivists have been
looking for a copy of Diagramma for years. But between the Vatican burnings and
the booklets low permanence rating, the booklet has disappeared off the face
of the earth.
Permanence
rating?
Durability.
Archivists rate documents one through ten for their structural integrity.
Diagramma was printed on sedge papyrus. Its like tissue paper. Life span of no
more than a century.
Why not
something stronger?
Galileos
behest. To protect his followers. This way any scientists caught with a copy
could simply drop it in water and the booklet would dissolve. It was great for
destruction of evidence, but terrible for archivists. It is believed that only
one copy of Diagramma survived beyond the eighteenth century.
One? Vittoria
looked momentarily starstruck as she glanced around the room. And its here ?
Confiscated from
the Netherlands by the Vatican shortly after Galileos death. Ive been
petitioning to see it for years now. Ever since I realized what was in it.
As if reading
Langdons mind, Vittoria moved across the aisle and began scanning the adjacent
bay of vaults, doubling their pace.
Thanks, he
said. Look for reference tabs that have anything to do with Galileo, science,
scientists. Youll know it when you see it.
Okay, but you
still havent told me how you figured out Diagramma contained the clue. It had
something to do with the number you kept seeing in Illuminati letters? 503?
Langdon smiled.
Yes. It took some time, but I finally figured out that 503 is a simple code.
It clearly points to Diagramma.
For an instant
Langdon relived his moment of unexpected revelation: August 16. Two years ago.
He was standing lakeside at the wedding of the son of a colleague. Bagpipes
droned on the water as the wedding party made their unique entrance . . .
across the lake on a barge. The craft was festooned with flowers and wreaths.
It carried a Roman numeral painted proudly on the hullDCII.
Puzzled by the
marking Langdon asked the father of the bride, Whats with 602?
602?
Langdon pointed
to the barge. DCII is the Roman numeral for 602.
The man laughed.
Thats not a Roman numeral. Thats the name of the barge.
The DCII?
The man nodded.
The Dick and Connie II.
Langdon felt
sheepish. Dick and Connie were the wedding couple. The barge obviously had been
named in their honor. What happened to the DCI ?
The man groaned.
It sank yesterday during the rehearsal luncheon.
Langdon laughed.
Sorry to hear that. He looked back out at the barge. The DCII, he thought.
Like a miniature QEII. A second later, it had hit him.
Now Langdon
turned to Vittoria. 503, he said, as I mentioned, is a code. Its an
Illuminati trick for concealing what was actually intended as a Roman numeral.
The number 503 in Roman numerals is
DIII.
Langdon glanced
up. That was fast. Please dont tell me youre an Illuminata.
She laughed. I
use Roman numerals to codify pelagic strata.
Of course,
Langdon thought. Dont we all.
Vittoria looked
over. So what is the meaning of DIII?
DI and DII and
DIII are very old abbreviations. They were used by ancient scientists to
distinguish between the three Galilean documents most commonly confused.
Vittoria drew a
quick breath. Diàlogo . . . Discorsi . . . Diagramma.
D one. D two. D
three. All scientific. All controversial. 503 is DIII. Diagramma. The third of
his books.
Vittoria looked
troubled. But one thing still doesnt make sense. If this segno, this clue,
this advertisement about the Path of Illumination was really in Galileos
Diagramma, why didnt the Vatican see it when they repossessed all the copies?
They may have
seen it and not noticed. Remember the Illuminati markers? Hiding things in
plain view? Dissimulation? The segno apparently was hidden the same wayin
plain view. Invisible to those who were not looking for it. And also invisible
to those who didnt understand it.
Meaning?
Meaning Galileo
hid it well. According to historic record, the segno was revealed in a mode the
Illuminati called lingua pura.
The pure
language?
Yes.
Mathematics?
Thats my guess.
Seems pretty obvious. Galileo was a scientist after all, and he was writing for
scientists. Math would be a logical language in which to lay out the clue. The
booklet is called Diagramma, so mathematical diagrams may also be part of the
code.
Vittoria sounded
only slightly more hopeful. I suppose Galileo could have created some sort of
mathematical code that went unnoticed by the clergy.
You dont sound
sold, Langdon said, moving down the row.
Im not. Mainly
because you arent. If you were so sure about DIII, why didnt you publish?
Then someone who did have access to the Vatican Archives could have come in
here and checked out Diagramma a long time ago.
I didnt want to
publish, Langdon said. I had worked hard to find the information and He
stopped himself, embarrassed.
You wanted the
glory.
Langdon felt
himself flush. In a manner of speaking. Its just that
Dont look so
embarrassed. Youre talking to a scientist. Publish or perish. At CERN we call
it substantiate or suffocate.
It wasnt only
wanting to be the first. I was also concerned that if the wrong people found
out about the information in Diagramma, it might disappear.
The wrong people
being the Vatican?
Not that they
are wrong, per se, but the church has always downplayed the Illuminati threat.
In the early 1900s the Vatican went so far as to say the Illuminati were a
figment of overactive imaginations. The clergy felt, and perhaps rightly so,
that the last thing Christians needed to know was that there was a very
powerful anti Christian movement infiltrating their banks, politics, and
universities. Present tense, Robert, he reminded himself. There IS a powerful
anti Christian force infiltrating their banks, politics, and universities.
So you think the
Vatican would have buried any evidence corroborating the Illuminati threat?
Quite possibly.
Any threat, real or imagined, weakens faith in the churchs power.
One more
question. Vittoria stopped short and looked at him like he was an alien. Are
you serious ?
Langdon stopped.
What do you mean?
I mean is this
really your plan to save the day?
Langdon wasnt
sure whether he saw amused pity or sheer terror in her eyes. You mean finding
Diagramma?
No, I mean
finding Diagramma, locating a four hundred year old segno, deciphering some
mathematical code, and following an ancient trail of art that only the most
brilliant scientists in history have ever been able to follow . . . all in the
next four hours.
Langdon shrugged.
Im open to other suggestions.
50
Robert Langdon
stood outside Archive Vault 9 and read the labels on the stacks.
Brahe . . .
Clavius . . . Copernicus . . . Kepler . . . Newton . . .
As he read the
names again, he felt a sudden uneasiness. Here are the scientists . . . but
where is Galileo?
He turned to
Vittoria, who was checking the contents of a nearby vault. I found the right
theme, but Galileos missing.
No he isnt,
she said, frowning as she motioned to the next vault. Hes over here. But I
hope you brought your reading glasses, because this entire vault is his.
Langdon ran over.
Vittoria was right. Every indictor tab in Vault 10 carried the same keyword.
Il Proceso
Galileano
Langdon let out a
low whistle, now realizing why Galileo had his own vault. The Galileo Affair,
he marveled, peering through the glass at the dark outlines of the stacks. The
longest and most expensive legal proceeding in Vatican history. Fourteen years
and six hundred million lire. Its all here.
Have a few legal
documents.
I guess lawyers
havent evolved much over the centuries.
Neither have
sharks.
Langdon strode to
a large yellow button on the side of the vault. He pressed it, and a bank of
overhead lights hummed on inside. The lights were deep red, turning the cube
into a glowing crimson cell . . . a maze of towering shelves.
My God,
Vittoria said, looking spooked. Are we tanning or working?
Parchment and
vellum fades, so vault lighting is always done with dark lights.
You could go mad
in here.
Or worse, Langdon
thought, moving toward the vaults sole entrance. A quick word of warning.
Oxygen is an oxidant, so hermetic vaults contain very little of it. Its a
partial vacuum inside. Your breathing will feel strained.
Hey, if old
cardinals can survive it.
True, Langdon
thought. May we be as lucky.
The vault
entrance was a single electronic revolving door. Langdon noted the common
arrangement of four access buttons on the doors inner shaft, one accessible
from each compartment. When a button was pressed, the motorized door would kick
into gear and make the conventional half rotation before grinding to a halta
standard procedure to preserve the integrity of the inner atmosphere.
After Im in,
Langdon said, just press the button and follow me through. Theres only eight
percent humidity inside, so be prepared to feel some dry mouth.
Langdon stepped
into the rotating compartment and pressed the button. The door buzzed loudly
and began to rotate. As he followed its motion, Langdon prepared his body for
the physical shock that always accompanied the first few seconds in a hermetic
vault. Entering a sealed archive was like going from sea level to 20,000 feet
in an instant. Nausea and light headedness were not uncommon. Double vision,
double over, he reminded himself, quoting the archivists mantra. Langdon felt
his ears pop. There was a hiss of air, and the door spun to a stop.
He was in.
Langdons first
realization was that the air inside was thinner than he had anticipated. The
Vatican, it seemed, took their archives a bit more seriously than most. Langdon
fought the gag reflex and relaxed his chest while his pulmonary capillaries
dilated. The tightness passed quickly. Enter the Dolphin, he mused, gratified
his fifty laps a day were good for something. Breathing more normally now, he
looked around the vault. Despite the transparent outer walls, he felt a
familiar anxiety. Im in a box, he thought. A blood red box.
The door buzzed
behind him, and Langdon turned to watch Vittoria enter. When she arrived
inside, her eyes immediately began watering, and she started breathing heavily.
Give it a
minute, Langdon said. If you get light headed, bend over.
I . . . feel . .
. Vittoria choked, like Im . . . scuba diving . . . with the wrong . . .
mixture.
Langdon waited
for her to acclimatize. He knew she would be fine. Vittoria Vetra was obviously
in terrific shape, nothing like the doddering ancient Radcliffe alumnae Langdon
had once squired through Widener Librarys hermetic vault. The tour had ended with
Langdon giving mouth to mouth to an old woman whod almost aspirated her false
teeth.
Feeling better?
he asked.
Vittoria nodded.
I rode your damn
space plane, so I thought I owed you.
This brought a
smile. Touché.
Langdon reached
into the box beside the door and extracted some white cotton gloves.
Formal affair?
Vittoria asked.
Finger acid. We
cant handle the documents without them. Youll need a pair.
Vittoria donned
some gloves. How long do we have?
Langdon checked
his Mickey Mouse watch. Its just past seven.
We have to find
this thing within the hour.
Actually,
Langdon said, we dont have that kind of time. He pointed overhead to a
filtered duct. Normally the curator would turn on a reoxygenation system when
someone is inside the vault. Not today. Twenty minutes, well both be sucking
wind.
Vittoria blanched
noticeably in the reddish glow.
Langdon smiled
and smoothed his gloves. Substantiate or suffocate, Ms. Vetra. Mickeys
ticking.
51
BBC reporter
Gunther Glick stared at the cell phone in his hand for ten seconds before he
finally hung up.
Chinita Macri
studied him from the back of the van. What happened? Who was that?
Glick turned,
feeling like a child who had just received a Christmas gift he feared was not
really for him. I just got a tip. Somethings going on inside the Vatican.
Its called
conclave, Chinita said. Helluva tip.
No, something
else. Something big. He wondered if the story the caller had just told him
could possibly be true. Glick felt ashamed when he realized he was praying it
was. What if I told you four cardinals have been kidnapped and are going to be
murdered at different churches tonight.
Id say youre
being hazed by someone at the office with a sick sense of humor.
What if I told
you we were going to be given the exact location of the first murder?
Id want to know
who the hell you just talked to.
He didnt say.
Perhaps because
hes full of shit?
Glick had come to
expect Macris cynicism, but what she was forgetting was that liars and
lunatics had been Glicks business for almost a decade at the British Tattler.
This caller had been neither. This man had been coldly sane. Logical. I will
call you just before eight, the man had said, and tell you where the first
killing will occur. The images you record will make you famous. When Glick had
demanded why the caller was giving him this information, the answer had been as
icy as the mans Mideastern accent. The media is the right arm of anarchy.
He told me
something else too, Glick said.
What? That Elvis
Presley was just elected Pope?
Dial into the
BBC database, will you? Glicks adrenaline was pumping now. I want to see
what other stories weve run on these guys.
What guys?
Indulge me.
Macri sighed and
pulled up the connection to the BBC database. Thisll take a minute.
Glicks mind was
swimming. The caller was very intent to know if I had a cameraman.
Videographer.
And if we could
transmit live.
One point five
three seven megahertz. What is this about? The database beeped. Okay, were
in. Who is it youre looking for?
Glick gave her
the keyword.
Macri turned and
stared. I sure as hell hope youre kidding.
52
The internal
organization of Archival Vault 10 was not as intuitive as Langdon had hoped,
and the Diagramma manuscript did not appear to be located with other similar
Galilean publications. Without access to the computerized Biblion and a
reference locator, Langdon and Vittoria were stuck.
Youre sure
Diagramma is in here? Vittoria asked.
Positive. Its a
confirmed listing in both the Uficcio della Propaganda delle Fede
Fine. As long as
youre sure. She headed left, while he went right.
Langdon began his
manual search. He needed every bit of self restraint not to stop and read every
treasure he passed. The collection was staggering. The Assayer . . . The Starry
Messenger . . . The Sunspot Letters . . . Letter to the Grand Duchess Christina
. . . Apologia pro Galileo . . . On and on.
It was Vittoria
who finally struck gold near the back of the vault. Her throaty voice called
out, Diagramma della Verità!
Langdon dashed
through the crimson haze to join her. Where?
Vittoria pointed,
and Langdon immediately realized why they had not found it earlier. The
manuscript was in a folio bin, not on the shelves. Folio bins were a common
means of storing unbound pages. The label on the front of the container left no
doubt about the contents.
Diagramma Della
Verità
Galileo Galilei,
1639
Langdon dropped
to his knees, his heart pounding. Diagramma. He gave her a grin. Nice work.
Help me pull out this bin.
Vittoria knelt
beside him, and they heaved. The metal tray on which the bin was sitting rolled
toward them on castors, revealing the top of the container.
No lock?
Vittoria said, sounding surprised at the simple latch.
Never. Documents
sometimes need to be evacuated quickly. Floods and fires.
So open it.
Langdon didnt
need any encouragement. With his academic lifes dream right in front of him
and the thinning air in the chamber, he was in no mood to dawdle. He unsnapped
the latch and lifted the lid. Inside, flat on the floor of the bin, lay a
black, duck cloth pouch. The cloths breathability was critical to the
preservation of its contents. Reaching in with both hands and keeping the pouch
horizontal, Langdon lifted it out of the bin.
I expected a treasure
chest, Vittoria said. Looks more like a pillowcase.
Follow me, he
said. Holding the bag before him like a sacred offering, Langdon walked to the
center of the vault where he found the customary glass topped archival exam
table. Although the central location was intended to minimize in vault travel
of documents, researchers appreciated the privacy the surrounding stacks
afforded. Career making discoveries were uncovered in the top vaults of the
world, and most academics did not like rivals peering through the glass as they
worked.
Langdon lay the
pouch on the table and unbuttoned the opening. Vittoria stood by. Rummaging
through a tray of archivist tools, Langdon found the felt pad pincers
archivists called finger cymbals oversized tweezers with flattened disks on
each arm. As his excitement mounted, Langdon feared at any moment he might
awake back in Cambridge with a pile of test papers to grade. Inhaling deeply,
he opened the bag. Fingers trembling in their cotton gloves, he reached in with
his tongs.
Relax, Vittoria
said. Its paper, not plutonium.
Langdon slid the
tongs around the stack of documents inside and was careful to apply even
pressure. Then, rather than pulling out the documents, he held them in place
while he slid off the bagan archivists procedure for minimizing torque on the
artifact. Not until the bag was removed and Langdon had turned on the exam
darklight beneath the table did he begin breathing again.
Vittoria looked
like a specter now, lit from below by the lamp beneath the glass. Small
sheets, she said, her voice reverent.
Langdon nodded.
The stack of folios before them looked like loose pages from a small paperback
novel. Langdon could see that the top sheet was an ornate pen and ink cover
sheet with the title, the date, and Galileos name in his own hand.
In that instant,
Langdon forgot the cramped quarters, forgot his exhaustion, forgot the
horrifying situation that had brought him here. He simply stared in wonder.
Close encounters with history always left Langdon numbed with reverence . . .
like seeing the brushstrokes on the Mona Lisa.
The muted, yellow
papyrus left no doubt in Langdons mind as to its age and authenticity, but
excluding the inevitable fading, the document was in superb condition. Slight
bleaching of the pigment. Minor sundering and cohesion of the papyrus. But all
in all . . . in damn fine condition. He studied the ornate hand etching of the
cover, his vision blurring in the lack of humidity. Vittoria was silent.
Hand me a
spatula, please. Langdon motioned beside Vittoria to a tray filled with
stainless steel archival tools. She handed it to him. Langdon took the tool in
his hand. It was a good one. He ran his fingers across the face to remove any
static charge and then, ever so carefully, slid the blade beneath the cover.
Then, lifting the spatula, he turned over the cover sheet.
The first page
was written in longhand, the tiny, stylized calligraphy almost impossible to
read. Langdon immediately noticed that there were no diagrams or numbers on the
page. It was an essay.
Heliocentricity,
Vittoria said, translating the heading on folio one. She scanned the text.
Looks like Galileo renouncing the geocentric model once and for all. Ancient
Italian, though, so no promises on the translation.
Forget it,
Langdon said. Were looking for math. The pure language. He used the spatula
tool to flip the next page. Another essay. No math or diagrams. Langdons hands
began to sweat inside his gloves.
Movement of the
Planets, Vittoria said, translating the title.
Langdon frowned.
On any other day, he would have been fascinated to read it; incredibly NASAs
current model of planetary orbits, observed through high powered telescopes,
was supposedly almost identical to Galileos original predictions.
No math,
Vittoria said. Hes talking about retrograde motions and elliptical orbits or
something.
Elliptical
orbits. Langdon recalled that much of Galileos legal trouble had begun when he
described planetary motion as elliptical. The Vatican exalted the perfection of
the circle and insisted heavenly motion must be only circular. Galileos
Illuminati, however, saw perfection in the ellipse as well, revering the
mathematical duality of its twin foci. The Illuminatis ellipse was prominent
even today in modern Masonic tracing boards and footing inlays.
Next, Vittoria
said.
Langdon flipped.
Lunar phases and
tidal motion, she said. No numbers. No diagrams.
Langdon flipped
again. Nothing. He kept flipping through a dozen or so pages. Nothing. Nothing.
Nothing.
I thought this
guy was a mathematician, Vittoria said. This is all text.
Langdon felt the
air in his lungs beginning to thin. His hopes were thinning too. The pile was
waning.
Nothing here,
Vittoria said. No math. A few dates, a few standard figures, but nothing that
looks like it could be a clue.
Langdon flipped
over the last folio and sighed. It, too, was an essay.
Short book,
Vittoria said, frowning.
Langdon nodded.
Merda, as we say
in Rome.
Shit is right,
Langdon thought. His reflection in the glass seemed mocking, like the image
staring back at him this morning from his bay window. An aging ghost. Theres
got to be something, he said, the hoarse desperation in his voice surprising
him. The segno is here somewhere. I know it!
Maybe you were
wrong about DIII?
Langdon turned
and stared at her.
Okay, she
agreed, DIII makes perfect sense. But maybe the clue isnt mathematical?
Lingua pura.
What else would it be?
Art?
Except there are
no diagrams or pictures in the book.
All I know is
that lingua pura refers to something other than Italian. Math just seems
logical.
I agree.
Langdon refused
to accept defeat so quickly. The numbers must be written longhand. The math
must be in words rather than equations.
Itll take some
time to read all the pages.
Times something
we dont have. Well have to split the work. Langdon flipped the stack back
over to the beginning. I know enough Italian to spot numbers. Using his
spatula, he cut the stack like a deck of cards and lay the first half dozen
pages in front of Vittoria. Its in here somewhere. Im sure.
Vittoria reached
down and flipped her first page by hand.
Spatula!
Langdon said, grabbing her an extra tool from the tray. Use the spatula.
Im wearing
gloves, she grumbled. How much damage could I cause?
Just use it.
Vittoria picked
up the spatula. You feeling what Im feeling?
Tense?
No. Short of
breath.
Langdon was
definitely starting to feel it too. The air was thinning faster than he had
imagined. He knew they had to hurry. Archival conundrums were nothing new for
him, but usually he had more than a few minutes to work them out. Without
another word, Langdon bowed his head and began translating the first page in
his stack.
Show yourself,
damn it! Show yourself!
53
Somewhere beneath
Rome the dark figure prowled down a stone ramp into the underground tunnel. The
ancient passageway was lit only by torches, making the air hot and thick. Up
ahead the frightened voices of grown men called out in vain, echoing in the cramped
spaces.
As he rounded the
corner he saw them, exactly as he had left themfour old men, terrified, sealed
behind rusted iron bars in a stone cubicle.
Qui êtes
vous? one of the men demanded in French. What do you want with us?
Hilfe! another
said in German. Let us go!
Are you aware
who we are? one asked in English, his accent Spanish.
Silence, the
raspy voice commanded. There was a finality about the word.
The fourth
prisoner, an Italian, quiet and thoughtful, looked into the inky void of his captors
eyes and swore he saw hell itself. God help us, he thought.
The killer
checked his watch and then returned his gaze to the prisoners. Now then, he
said. Who will be first?
54
Inside Archive
Vault 10 Robert Langdon recited Italian numbers as he scanned the calligraphy
before him. Mille . . . centi . . . uno, duo, tre . . . cincuanta. I need a
numerical reference! Anything, damnit!
When he reached
the end of his current folio, he lifted the spatula to flip the page. As he
aligned the blade with the next page, he fumbled, having difficulty holding the
tool steady. Minutes later, he looked down and realized he had abandoned his
spatula and was turning pages by hand. Oops, he thought, feeling vaguely
criminal. The lack of oxygen was affecting his inhibitions. Looks like Ill
burn in archivists hell.
About damn
time, Vittoria choked when she saw Langdon turning pages by hand. She dropped
her spatula and followed suit.
Any luck?
Vittoria shook
her head. Nothing that looks purely mathematical. Im skimming . . . but none
of this reads like a clue.
Langdon continued
translating his folios with increasing difficulty. His Italian skills were
rocky at best, and the tiny penmanship and archaic language was making it slow
going. Vittoria reached the end of her stack before Langdon and looked
disheartened as she flipped the pages back over. She hunkered down for another
more intense inspection.
When Langdon
finished his final page, he cursed under his breath and looked over at
Vittoria. She was scowling, squinting at something on one of her folios. What
is it? he asked.
Vittoria did not
look up. Did you have any footnotes on your pages?
Not that I
noticed. Why?
This page has a
footnote. Its obscured in a crease.
Langdon tried to
see what she was looking at, but all he could make out was the page number in
the upper right hand corner of the sheet. Folio 5. It took a moment for the
coincidence to register, and even when it did the connection seemed vague.
Folio Five. Five, Pythagoras, pentagrams, Illuminati. Langdon wondered if the
Illuminati would have chosen page five on which to hide their clue. Through the
reddish fog surrounding them, Langdon sensed a tiny ray of hope. Is the
footnote mathematical?
Vittoria shook
her head. Text. One line. Very small printing. Almost illegible.
His hopes faded.
Its supposed to be math. Lingua pura.
Yeah, I know.
She hesitated. I think youll want to hear this, though. Langdon sensed
excitement in her voice.
Go ahead.
Squinting at the
folio, Vittoria read the line. The path of light is laid, the sacred test.
The words were
nothing like what Langdon had imagined. Im sorry?
Vittoria repeated
the line. The path of light is laid, the sacred test.
Path of light?
Langdon felt his posture straightening.
Thats what it
says. Path of light.
As the words sank
in, Langdon felt his delirium pierced by an instant of clarity. The path of
light is laid, the sacred test. He had no idea how it helped them, but the line
was as direct a reference to the Path of Illumination as he could imagine. Path
of light. Sacred test. His head felt like an engine revving on bad fuel. Are
you sure of the translation?
Vittoria
hesitated. Actually . . . She glanced over at him with a strange look. Its
not technically a translation. The line is written in English.
For an instant,
Langdon thought the acoustics in the chamber had affected his hearing.
English?
Vittoria pushed
the document over to him, and Langdon read the minuscule printing at the bottom
of the page. The path of light is laid, the sacred test. English? What is
English doing in an Italian book?
Vittoria
shrugged. She too was looking tipsy. Maybe English is what they meant by the
lingua pura ? Its considered the international language of science. Its all
we speak at CERN.
But this was in
the 1600s, Langdon argued. Nobody spoke English in Italy, not even He
stopped short, realizing what he was about to say. Not even . . . the clergy.
Langdons academic mind hummed in high gear. In the 1600s, he said, talking
faster now, English was one language the Vatican had not yet embraced. They
dealt in Italian, Latin, German, even Spanish and French, but English was
totally foreign inside the Vatican. They considered English a polluted, free
thinkers language for profane men like Chaucer and Shakespeare. Langdon
flashed suddenly on the Illuminati brands of Earth, Air, Fire, Water. The
legend that the brands were in English now made a bizarre kind of sense.
So youre saying
maybe Galileo considered English la lingua pura because it was the one language
the Vatican did not control?
Yes. Or maybe by
putting the clue in English, Galileo was subtly restricting the readership away
from the Vatican.
But its not
even a clue, Vittoria argued. The path of light is laid, the sacred test?
What the hell does that mean?
Shes right,
Langdon thought. The line didnt help in any way. But as he spoke the phrase
again in his mind, a strange fact hit him. Now thats odd, he thought. What are
the chances of that?
We need to get
out of here, Vittoria said, sounding hoarse.
Langdon wasnt
listening. The path of light is laid, the sacred test. Its a damn line of
iambic pentameter, he said suddenly, counting the syllables again. Five
couplets of alternating stressed and unstressed syllables.
Vittoria looked
lost. Iambic who?
For an instant
Langdon was back at Phillips Exeter Academy sitting in a Saturday morning
English class. Hell on earth. The school baseball star, Peter Greer, was having
trouble remembering the number of couplets necessary for a line of
Shakespearean iambic pentameter. Their professor, an animated schoolmaster
named Bissell, leapt onto the table and bellowed, Penta meter, Greer! Think of
home plate! A penta gon! Five sides! Penta! Penta! Penta! Jeeeesh!
Five couplets,
Langdon thought. Each couplet, by definition, having two syllables. He could
not believe in his entire career he had never made the connection. Iambic
pentameter was a symmetrical meter based on the sacred Illuminati numbers of 5
and 2!
Youre reaching!
Langdon told himself, trying to push it from his mind. A meaningless
coincidence! But the thought stuck. Five . . . for Pythagoras and the
pentagram. Two . . . for the duality of all things.
A moment later,
another realization sent a numbing sensation down his legs. Iambic pentameter,
on account of its simplicity, was often called pure verse or pure meter. La
lingua pura? Could this have been the pure language the Illuminati had been
referring to? The path of light is laid, the sacred test . . .
Uh oh, Vittoria
said.
Langdon wheeled
to see her rotating the folio upside down. He felt a knot in his gut. Not
again. Theres no way that line is an ambigram!
No, its not an
ambigram . . . but its . . . She kept turning the document, 90 degrees at
every turn.
Its what?
Vittoria looked
up. Its not the only line.
Theres
another?
Theres a
different line on every margin. Top, bottom, left, and right. I think its a
poem.
Four lines?
Langdon bristled with excitement. Galileo was a poet? Let me see!
Vittoria did not
relinquish the page. She kept turning the page in quarter turns. I didnt see
the lines before because theyre on the edges. She cocked her head over the
last line. Huh. You know what? Galileo didnt even write this.
What!
The poem is
signed John Milton.
John Milton ?
The influential English poet who wrote Paradise Lost was a contemporary of
Galileos and a savant who conspiracy buffs put at the top of their list of
Illuminati suspects. Miltons alleged affiliation with Galileos Illuminati was
one legend Langdon suspected was true. Not only had Milton made a well
documented 1638 pilgrimage to Rome to commune with enlightened men, but he
had held meetings with Galileo during the scientists house arrest, meetings
portrayed in many Renaissance paintings, including Annibale Gattis famous
Galileo and Milton, which hung even now in the IMSS Museum in Florence.
Milton knew
Galileo, didnt he? Vittoria said, finally pushing the folio over to Langdon.
Maybe he wrote the poem as a favor?
Langdon clenched
his teeth as he took the sheathed document. Leaving it flat on the table, he
read the line at the top. Then he rotated the page 90 degrees, reading the line
in the right margin. Another twist, and he read the bottom. Another twist, the
left. A final twist completed the circle. There were four lines in all. The
first line Vittoria had found was actually the third line of the poem. Utterly
agape, he read the four lines again, clockwise in sequence: top, right, bottom,
left. When he was done, he exhaled. There was no doubt in his mind. You found
it, Ms. Vetra.
She smiled
tightly. Good, now can we get the hell out of here?
I have to copy
these lines down. I need to find a pencil and paper.
Vittoria shook
her head. Forget it, professor. No time to play scribe. Mickeys ticking. She
took the page from him and headed for the door.
Langdon stood up.
You cant take that outside! Its a
But Vittoria was
already gone.
55
Langdon and
Vittoria exploded onto the courtyard outside the Secret Archives. The fresh air
felt like a drug as it flowed into Langdons lungs. The purple spots in his
vision quickly faded. The guilt, however, did not. He had just been accomplice
to stealing a priceless relic from the worlds most private vault. The camerlegno
had said, I am giving you my trust.
Hurry, Vittoria
said, still holding the folio in her hand and striding at a half jog across Via
Borgia in the direction of Olivettis office.
If any water
gets on that papyrus
Calm down. When
we decipher this thing, we can return their sacred Folio 5.
Langdon
accelerated to keep up. Beyond feeling like a criminal, he was still dazed over
the documents spellbinding implications. John Milton was an Illuminatus. He
composed the poem for Galileo to publish in Folio 5 . . . far from the eyes of
the Vatican.
As they left the
courtyard, Vittoria held out the folio for Langdon. You think you can decipher
this thing? Or did we just kill all those brain cells for kicks?
Langdon took the
document carefully in his hands. Without hesitation he slipped it into one of
the breast pockets of his tweed jacket, out of the sunlight and dangers of
moisture. I deciphered it already.
Vittoria stopped
short. You what ?
Langdon kept
moving.
Vittoria hustled
to catch up. You read it once! I thought it was supposed to be hard!
Langdon knew she
was right, and yet he had deciphered the segno in a single reading. A perfect
stanza of iambic pentameter, and the first altar of science had revealed itself
in pristine clarity. Admittedly, the ease with which he had accomplished the
task left him with a nagging disquietude. He was a child of the Puritan work
ethic. He could still hear his father speaking the old New England aphorism: If
it wasnt painfully difficult, you did it wrong. Langdon hoped the saying was
false. I deciphered it, he said, moving faster now. I know where the first
killing is going to happen. We need to warn Olivetti.
Vittoria closed
in on him. How could you already know? Let me see that thing again. With the sleight
of a boxer, she slipped a lissome hand into his pocket and pulled out the folio
again.
Careful!
Langdon said. You cant
Vittoria ignored
him. Folio in hand, she floated beside him, holding the document up to the
evening light, examining the margins. As she began reading aloud, Langdon moved
to retrieve the folio but instead found himself bewitched by Vittorias
accented alto speaking the syllables in perfect rhythm with her gait.
For a moment,
hearing the verse aloud, Langdon felt transported in time . . . as though he
were one of Galileos contemporaries, listening to the poem for the first time
. . . knowing it was a test, a map, a clue unveiling the four altars of science
. . . the four markers that blazed a secret path across Rome. The verse flowed
from Vittorias lips like a song.
From Santis
earthly tomb with demons hole,
Cross Rome the
mystic elements unfold.
The path of light
is laid, the sacred test,
Let angels guide
you on your lofty quest.
Vittoria read it
twice and then fell silent, as if letting the ancient words resonate on their
own.
From Santis
earthly tomb, Langdon repeated in his mind. The poem was crystal clear about
that. The Path of Illumination began at Santis tomb. From there, across Rome,
the markers blazed the trail.
From Santis
earthly tomb with demons hole,
Cross Rome the
mystic elements unfold.
Mystic elements.
Also clear. Earth, Air, Fire, Water. Elements of science, the four Illuminati
markers disguised as religious sculpture.
The first
marker, Vittoria said, sounds like its at Santis tomb.
Langdon smiled.
I told you it wasnt that tough.
So who is
Santi? she asked, sounding suddenly excited. And wheres his tomb?
Langdon chuckled
to himself. He was amazed how few people knew Santi, the last name of one of
the most famous Renaissance artists ever to live. His first name was world
renowned . . . the child prodigy who at the age of twenty five was already
doing commissions for Pope Julius II, and when he died at only thirty eight,
left behind the greatest collection of frescoes the world had ever seen. Santi
was a behemoth in the art world, and being known solely by ones first name was
a level of fame achieved only by an elite few . . . people like Napoleon,
Galileo, and Jesus . . . and, of course, the demigods Langdon now heard blaring
from Harvard dormitoriesSting, Madonna, Jewel, and the artist formerly known
as Prince, who had changed his name to the symbol
causing Langdon
to dub him The Tau Cross With Intersecting Hermaphroditic Ankh.
Santi, Langdon
said, is the last name of the great Renaissance master, Raphael.
Vittoria looked
surprised. Raphael? As in the Raphael?
The one and
only. Langdon pushed on toward the Office of the Swiss Guard.
So the path
starts at Raphaels tomb?
It actually
makes perfect sense, Langdon said as they rushed on. The Illuminati often
considered great artists and sculptors honorary brothers in enlightenment. The
Illuminati could have chosen Raphaels tomb as a kind of tribute. Langdon also
knew that Raphael, like many other religious artists, was a suspected closet
atheist.
Vittoria slipped
the folio carefully back in Langdons pocket. So where is he buried?
Langdon took a
deep breath. Believe it or not, Raphaels buried in the Pantheon.
Vittoria looked
skeptical. The Pantheon?
The Raphael at
the Pantheon. Langdon had to admit, the Pantheon was not what he had expected
for the placement of the first marker. He would have guessed the first altar of
science to be at some quiet, out of the way church, something subtle. Even in the
1600s, the Pantheon, with its tremendous, holed dome, was one of the best known
sites in Rome.
Is the Pantheon
even a church ? Vittoria asked.
Oldest Catholic
church in Rome.
Vittoria shook
her head. But do you really think the first cardinal could be killed at the
Pantheon? Thats got to be one of the busiest tourist spots in Rome.
Langdon shrugged.
The Illuminati said they wanted the whole world watching. Killing a cardinal
at the Pantheon would certainly open some eyes.
But how does
this guy expect to kill someone at the Pantheon and get away unnoticed? It
would be impossible.
As impossible as
kidnapping four cardinals from Vatican City? The poem is precise.
And youre
certain Raphael is buried inside the Pantheon?
Ive seen his
tomb many times.
Vittoria nodded,
still looking troubled. What time is it?
Langdon checked.
Seven thirty.
Is the Pantheon
far?
A mile maybe.
Weve got time.
The poem said
Santis earthly tomb. Does that mean anything to you?
Langdon hastened
diagonally across the Courtyard of the Sentinel. Earthly? Actually, theres
probably no more earthly place in Rome than the Pantheon. It got its name from
the original religion practiced therePantheismthe worship of all gods,
specifically the pagan gods of Mother Earth.
As a student of
architecture, Langdon had been amazed to learn that the dimensions of the
Pantheons main chamber were a tribute to Gaeathe goddess of the Earth. The
proportions were so exact that a giant spherical globe could fit perfectly
inside the building with less than a millimeter to spare.
Okay, Vittoria
said, sounding more convinced. And demons hole? From Santis earthly tomb
with demons hole?
Langdon was not
quite as sure about this. Demons hole must mean the oculus, he said, making
a logical guess. The famous circular opening in the Pantheons roof.
But its a
church, Vittoria said, moving effortlessly beside him. Why would they call
the opening a demons hole?
Langdon had
actually been wondering that himself. He had never heard the term demons
hole, but he did recall a famous sixth century critique of the Pantheon whose
words seemed oddly appropriate now. The Venerable Bede had once written that
the hole in the Pantheons roof had been bored by demons trying to escape the
building when it was consecrated by Boniface IV.
And why,
Vittoria added as they entered a smaller courtyard, why would the Illuminati
use the name Santi if he was really known as Raphael ?
You ask a lot of
questions.
My dad used to
say that.
Two possible
reasons. One, the word Raphael has too many syllables. It would have destroyed
the poems iambic pentameter.
Sounds like a
stretch.
Langdon agreed.
Okay, then maybe using santi was to make the clue more obscure, so only very
enlightened men would recognize the reference to Raphael.
Vittoria didnt
appear to buy this either. Im sure Raphaels last name was very well known
when he was alive.
Surprisingly
not. Single name recognition was a status symbol. Raphael shunned his last name
much like pop stars do today. Take Madonna, for example. She never uses her
surname, Ciccone.
Vittoria looked
amused. You know Madonnas last name?
Langdon regretted
the example. It was amazing the kind of garbage a mind picked up living with
10,000 adolescents.
As he and
Vittoria passed the final gate toward the Office of the Swiss Guard, their
progress was halted without warning.
Para! a voice
bellowed behind them.
Langdon and
Vittoria wheeled to find themselves looking into the barrel of a rifle.
Attento!
Vittoria exclaimed, jumping back. Watch it with
Non sportarti!
the guard snapped, cocking the weapon.
Soldato! a
voice commanded from across the courtyard. Olivetti was emerging from the
security center. Let them go!
The guard looked
bewildered. Ma, signore, è una donna
Inside! he
yelled at the guard.
Signore, non
posso
Now! You have
new orders. Captain Rocher will be briefing the corps in two minutes. We will
be organizing a search.
Looking
bewildered, the guard hurried into the security center. Olivetti marched toward
Langdon, rigid and steaming. Our most secret archives? Ill want an
explanation.
We have good
news, Langdon said.
Olivettis eyes
narrowed. It better be damn good.
56
The four unmarked
Alpha Romeo 155 T Sparks roared down Via dei Coronari like fighter jets off a
runway. The vehicles carried twelve plainclothed Swiss Guards armed with
Cherchi Pardini semiautomatics, local radius nerve gas canisters, and long
range stun guns. The three sharpshooters carried laser sighted rifles.
Sitting in the
passenger seat of the lead car, Olivetti turned backward toward Langdon and
Vittoria. His eyes were filled with rage. You assured me a sound explanation,
and this is what I get?
Langdon felt
cramped in the small car. I understand your
No, you dont
understand! Olivetti never raised his voice, but his intensity tripled. I
have just removed a dozen of my best men from Vatican City on the eve of
conclave. And I have done this to stake out the Pantheon based on the testimony
of some American I have never met who has just interpreted a four hundred year
old poem. I have also just left the search for this antimatter weapon in the
hands of secondary officers.
Langdon resisted
the urge to pull Folio 5 from his pocket and wave it in Olivettis face. All I
know is that the information we found refers to Raphaels tomb, and Raphaels
tomb is inside the Pantheon.
The officer
behind the wheel nodded. Hes right, commander. My wife and I
Drive, Olivetti
snapped. He turned back to Langdon. How could a killer accomplish an
assassination in such a crowded place and escape unseen?
I dont know,
Langdon said. But the Illuminati are obviously highly resourceful. Theyve
broken into both CERN and Vatican City. Its only by luck that we know where
the first kill zone is. The Pantheon is your one chance to catch this guy.
More
contradictions, Olivetti said. One chance? I thought you said there was some
sort of pathway. A series of markers. If the Pantheon is the right spot, we can
follow the pathway to the other markers. We will have four chances to catch
this guy.
I had hoped so,
Langdon said. And we would have . . . a century ago.
Langdons
realization that the Pantheon was the first altar of science had been a
bittersweet moment. History had a way of playing cruel tricks on those who
chased it. It was a long shot that the Path of Illumination would be intact
after all of these years, with all of its statues in place, but part of Langdon
had fantasized about following the path all the way to the end and coming face
to face with the sacred Illuminati lair. Alas, he realized, it was not to be.
The Vatican had all the statues in the Pantheon removed and destroyed in the
late 1800s.
Vittoria looked
shocked. Why?
The statues were
pagan Olympian Gods. Unfortunately, that means the first marker is gone . . .
and with it
Any hope,
Vittoria said, of finding the Path of Illumination and additional markers?
Langdon shook his
head. We have one shot. The Pantheon. After that, the path disappears.
Olivetti stared
at them both a long moment and then turned and faced front. Pull over, he
barked to the driver.
The driver
swerved the car toward the curb and put on the brakes. Three other Alpha Romeos
skidded in behind them. The Swiss Guard convoy screeched to a halt.
What are you
doing! Vittoria demanded.
My job,
Olivetti said, turning in his seat, his voice like stone. Mr. Langdon, when
you told me you would explain the situation en route, I assumed I would be
approaching the Pantheon with a clear idea of why my men are here. That is not
the case. Because I am abandoning critical duties by being here, and because I
have found very little that makes sense in this theory of yours about virgin
sacrifices and ancient poetry, I cannot in good conscience continue. I am
recalling this mission immediately. He pulled out his walkie talkie and
clicked it on.
Vittoria reached
across the seat and grabbed his arm. You cant!
Olivetti slammed
down the walkie talkie and fixed her with a red hot stare. Have you been to
the Pantheon, Ms. Vetra?
No, but I
Let me tell you
something about it. The Pantheon is a single room. A circular cell made of stone
and cement. It has one entrance. No windows. One narrow entrance. That entrance
is flanked at all times by no less than four armed Roman policemen who protect
this shrine from art defacers, anti Christian terrorists, and gypsy tourist
scams.
Your point? she
said coolly.
My point?
Olivettis knuckles gripped the seat. My point is that what you have just told
me is going to happen is utterly impossible! Can you give me one plausible
scenario of how someone could kill a cardinal inside the Pantheon? How does one
even get a hostage past the guards into the Pantheon in the first place? Much
less actually kill him and get away? Olivetti leaned over the seat, his coffee
breath now in Langdons face. How, Mr. Langdon? One plausible scenario.
Langdon felt the
tiny car shrink around him. I have no idea! Im not an assassin! I dont know
how he will do it! I only know
One scenario?
Vittoria quipped, her voice unruffled. How about this? The killer flies over
in a helicopter and drops a screaming, branded cardinal down through the hole
in the roof. The cardinal hits the marble floor and dies.
Everyone in the
car turned and stared at Vittoria. Langdon didnt know what to think. Youve
got one sick imagination, lady, but you are quick.
Olivetti frowned.
Possible, I admit . . . but hardly
Or the killer
drugs the cardinal, Vittoria said, brings him to the Pantheon in a wheelchair
like some old tourist. He wheels him inside, quietly slits his throat, and then
walks out.
This seemed to
wake up Olivetti a bit.
Not bad! Langdon
thought.
Or, she said,
the killer could
I heard you,
Olivetti said. Enough. He took a deep breath and blew it out. Someone rapped
sharply on the window, and everyone jumped. It was a soldier from one of the
other cars. Olivetti rolled down the window.
Everything all
right, commander? The soldier was dressed in street clothes. He pulled back
the sleeve of his denim shirt to reveal a black chronograph military watch.
Seven forty, commander. Well need time to get in position.
Olivetti nodded
vaguely but said nothing for many moments. He ran a finger back and forth
across the dash, making a line in the dust. He studied Langdon in the side view
mirror, and Langdon felt himself being measured and weighed. Finally Olivetti
turned back to the guard. There was reluctance in his voice. Ill want
separate approaches. Cars to Piazza della Rotunda, Via delgi Orfani, Piazza
SantIgnacio, and SantEustachio. No closer than two blocks. Once youre
parked, gear up and await my orders. Three minutes.
Very good, sir.
The soldier returned to his car.
Langdon gave
Vittoria an impressed nod. She smiled back, and for an instant Langdon felt an
unexpected connection . . . a thread of magnetism between them.
The commander
turned in his seat and locked eyes with Langdon. Mr. Langdon, this had better
not blow up in our faces.
Langdon smiled
uneasily. How could it?
57
The director of
CERN, Maximilian Kohler, opened his eyes to the cool rush of cromolyn and
leukotriene in his body, dilating his bronchial tubes and pulmonary
capillaries. He was breathing normally again. He found himself lying in a
private room in the CERN infirmary, his wheelchair beside the bed.
He took stock,
examining the paper robe they had put him in. His clothing was folded on the
chair beside the bed. Outside he could hear a nurse making the rounds. He lay
there a long minute listening. Then, as quietly as possible, he pulled himself
to the edge of the bed and retrieved his clothing. Struggling with his dead
legs, he dressed himself. Then he dragged his body onto his wheelchair.
Muffling a cough,
he wheeled himself to the door. He moved manually, careful not to engage the
motor. When he arrived at the door he peered out. The hall was empty.
Silently,
Maximilian Kohler slipped out of the infirmary.
58
Seven forty six
and thirty . . . mark. Even speaking into his walkie talkie, Olivettis voice
never seemed to rise above a whisper.
Langdon felt
himself sweating now in his Harris tweed in the backseat of the Alpha Romeo,
which was idling in Piazza de la Concorde, three blocks from the Pantheon.
Vittoria sat beside him, looking engrossed by Olivetti, who was transmitting
his final orders.
Deployment will
be an eight point hem, the commander said. Full perimeter with a bias on the
entry. Target may know you visually, so you will be pas visible. Nonmortal
force only. Well need someone to spot the roof. Target is primary. Asset
secondary.
Jesus, Langdon
thought, chilled by the efficiency with which Olivetti had just told his men
the cardinal was expendable. Asset secondary.
I repeat.
Nonmortal procurement. We need the target alive. Go. Olivetti snapped off his
walkie talkie.
Vittoria looked
stunned, almost angry. Commander, isnt anyone going inside ?
Olivetti turned.
Inside?
Inside the
Pantheon! Where this is supposed to happen?
Attento,
Olivetti said, his eyes fossilizing. If my ranks have been infiltrated, my men
may be known by sight. Your colleague has just finished warning me that this
will be our sole chance to catch the target. I have no intention of scaring
anyone off by marching my men inside.
But what if the
killer is already inside?
Olivetti checked
his watch. The target was specific. Eight oclock. We have fifteen minutes.
He said he would
kill the cardinal at eight oclock. But he may already have gotten the victim
inside somehow. What if your men see the target come out but dont know who he
is? Someone needs to make sure the inside is clean.
Too risky at
this point.
Not if the
person going in was unrecognizable.
Disguising
operatives is time consuming and
I meant me,
Vittoria said.
Langdon turned
and stared at her.
Olivetti shook
his head. Absolutely not.
He killed my
father.
Exactly, so he
may know who you are.
You heard him on
the phone. He had no idea Leonardo Vetra even had a daughter. He sure as hell
doesnt know what I look like. I could walk in like a tourist. If I see
anything suspicious, I could walk into the square and signal your men to move
in.
Im sorry, I
cannot allow that.
Comandante?
Olivettis receiver crackled. Weve got a situation from the north point. The
fountain is blocking our line of sight. We cant see the entrance unless we
move into plain view on the piazza. Whats your call? Do you want us blind or
vulnerable?
Vittoria
apparently had endured enough. Thats it. Im going. She opened her door and
got out.
Olivetti dropped
his walkie talkie and jumped out of the car, circling in front of Vittoria.
Langdon got out
too. What the hell is she doing!
Olivetti blocked
Vittorias way. Ms. Vetra, your instincts are good, but I cannot let a
civilian interfere.
Interfere?
Youre flying blind. Let me help.
I would love to
have a recon point inside, but . . .
But what?
Vittoria demanded. But Im a woman ?
Olivetti said
nothing.
That had better
not be what you were going to say, Commander, because you know damn well this
is a good idea, and if you let some archaic macho bullshit
Let us do our
job.
Let me help.
Too dangerous.
We would have no lines of communication with you. I cant let you carry a
walkie talkie, it would give you away.
Vittoria reached
in her shirt pocket and produced her cell phone. Plenty of tourists carry
phones.
Olivetti frowned.
Vittoria
unsnapped the phone and mimicked a call. Hi, honey, Im standing in the
Pantheon. You should see this place! She snapped the phone shut and glared at
Olivetti. Who the hell is going to know? It is a no risk situation. Let me be
your eyes! She motioned to the cell phone on Olivettis belt. Whats your
number?
Olivetti did not
reply.
The driver had
been looking on and seemed to have some thoughts of his own. He got out of the
car and took the commander aside. They spoke in hushed tones for ten seconds.
Finally Olivetti nodded and returned. Program this number. He began dictating
digits.
Vittoria
programmed her phone.
Now call the number.
Vittoria pressed
the auto dial. The phone on Olivettis belt began ringing. He picked it up and
spoke into the receiver. Go into the building, Ms. Vetra, look around, exit
the building, then call and tell me what you see.
Vittoria snapped
the phone shut. Thank you, sir.
Langdon felt a
sudden, unexpected surge of protective instinct. Wait a minute, he said to
Olivetti. Youre sending her in there alone.
Vittoria scowled
at him. Robert, Ill be fine.
The Swiss Guard
driver was talking to Olivetti again.
Its dangerous,
Langdon said to Vittoria.
Hes right,
Olivetti said. Even my best men dont work alone. My lieutenant has just
pointed out that the masquerade will be more convincing with both of you
anyway.
Both of us?
Langdon hesitated. Actually, what I meant
Both of you
entering together, Olivetti said, will look like a couple on holiday. You can
also back each other up. Im more comfortable with that.
Vittoria
shrugged. Fine, but well need to go fast.
Langdon groaned.
Nice move, cowboy.
Olivetti pointed
down the street. First street you hit will be Via degli Orfani. Go left. It
takes you directly to the Pantheon. Two minute walk, tops. Ill be here,
directing my men and waiting for your call. Id like you to have protection.
He pulled out his pistol. Do either of you know how to use a gun?
Langdons heart
skipped. We dont need a gun!
Vittoria held her
hand out. I can tag a breaching porpoise from forty meters off the bow of a
rocking ship.
Good. Olivetti
handed the gun to her. Youll have to conceal it.
Vittoria glanced
down at her shorts. Then she looked at Langdon.
Oh no you dont!
Langdon thought, but Vittoria was too fast. She opened his jacket, and inserted
the weapon into one of his breast pockets. It felt like a rock dropping into
his coat, his only consolation being that Diagramma was in the other pocket.
We look
harmless, Vittoria said. Were leaving. She took Langdons arm and headed
down the street.
The driver called
out, Arm in arm is good. Remember, youre tourists. Newlyweds even. Perhaps if
you held hands?
As they turned
the corner Langdon could have sworn he saw on Vittorias face the hint of a
smile.
59
The Swiss Guard
staging room is located adjacent to the Corpo di Vigilanza barracks and is
used primarily for planning the security surrounding papal appearances and
public Vatican events. Today, however, it was being used for something else.
The man
addressing the assembled task force was the second in command of the Swiss
Guard, Captain Elias Rocher. Rocher was a barrel chested man with soft,
puttylike features. He wore the traditional blue captains uniform with his own
personal flaira red beret cocked sideways on his head. His voice was
surprisingly crystalline for such a large man, and when he spoke, his tone had
the clarity of a musical instrument. Despite the precision of his inflection,
Rochers eyes were cloudy like those of some nocturnal mammal. His men called
him orsogrizzly bear. They sometimes joked that Rocher was the bear who
walked in the vipers shadow. Commander Olivetti was the viper. Rocher was
just as deadly as the viper, but at least you could see him coming.
Rochers men
stood at sharp attention, nobody moving a muscle, although the information they
had just received had increased their aggregate blood pressure by a few
thousand points.
Rookie Lieutenant
Chartrand stood in the back of the room wishing he had been among the 99
percent of applicants who had not qualified to be here. At twenty years old,
Chartrand was the youngest guard on the force. He had been in Vatican City only
three months. Like every man there, Chartrand was Swiss Army trained and had
endured two years of additional ausbilding in Bern before qualifying for the
grueling Vatican pròva held in a secret barracks outside of Rome.
Nothing in his training, however, had prepared him for a crisis like this.
At first
Chartrand thought the briefing was some sort of bizarre training exercise.
Futuristic weapons? Ancient cults? Kidnapped cardinals? Then Rocher had shown
them the live video feed of the weapon in question. Apparently this was no
exercise.
We will be
killing power in selected areas, Rocher was saying, to eradicate extraneous
magnetic interference. We will move in teams of four. We will wear infrared
goggles for vision. Reconnaissance will be done with traditional bug sweepers,
recalibrated for sub three ohm flux fields. Any questions?
None.
Chartrands mind
was on overload. What if we dont find it in time? he asked, immediately
wishing he had not.
The grizzly bear
gazed out at him from beneath his red beret. Then he dismissed the group with a
somber salute. Godspeed, men.
60
Two blocks from
the Pantheon, Langdon and Vittoria approached on foot past a line of taxis,
their drivers sleeping in the front seats. Nap time was eternal in the Eternal
Citythe ubiquitous public dozing a perfected extension of the afternoon
siestas born of ancient Spain.
Langdon fought to
focus his thoughts, but the situation was too bizarre to grasp rationally. Six
hours ago he had been sound asleep in Cambridge. Now he was in Europe, caught
up in a surreal battle of ancient titans, packing a semiautomatic in his Harris
tweed, and holding hands with a woman he had only just met.
He looked at
Vittoria. She was focused straight ahead. There was a strength in her
graspthat of an independent and determined woman. Her fingers wrapped around
his with the comfort of innate acceptance. No hesitation. Langdon felt a
growing attraction. Get real, he told himself.
Vittoria seemed
to sense his uneasiness. Relax, she said, without turning her head. Were
supposed to look like newlyweds.
Im relaxed.
Youre crushing
my hand.
Langdon flushed
and loosened up.
Breathe through
your eyes, she said.
Im sorry?
It relaxes the
muscles. Its called pranayama.
Piranha?
Not the fish.
Pranayama. Never mind.
As they rounded
the corner into Piazza della Rotunda, the Pantheon rose before them. Langdon
admired it, as always, with awe. The Pantheon. Temple to all gods. Pagan gods.
Gods of Nature and Earth. The structure seemed boxier from the outside than he
remembered. The vertical pillars and triangular pronaus all but obscured the
circular dome behind it. Still, the bold and immodest inscription over the
entrance assured him they were in the right spot. M AGRIPPA L F COS TERTIUM
FECIT. Langdon translated it, as always, with amusement. Marcus Agrippa, Consul
for the third time, built this.
So much for
humility, he thought, turning his eyes to the surrounding area. A scattering of
tourists with video cameras wandered the area. Others sat enjoying Romes best
iced coffee at La Tazza di Oros outdoor cafe. Outside the entrance to the
Pantheon, four armed Roman policemen stood at attention just as Olivetti had
predicted.
Looks pretty
quiet, Vittoria said.
Langdon nodded,
but he felt troubled. Now that he was standing here in person, the whole
scenario seemed surreal. Despite Vittorias apparent faith that he was right,
Langdon realized he had put everyone on the line here. The Illuminati poem
lingered. From Santis earthly tomb with demons hole. YES, he told himself.
This was the spot. Santis tomb. He had been here many times beneath the
Pantheons oculus and stood before the grave of the great Raphael.
What time is
it? Vittoria asked.
Langdon checked
his watch. Seven fifty. Ten minutes till show time.
Hope these guys
are good, Vittoria said, eyeing the scattered tourists entering the Pantheon.
If anything happens inside that dome, well all be in the crossfire.
Langdon exhaled
heavily as they moved toward the entrance. The gun felt heavy in his pocket. He
wondered what would happen if the policemen frisked him and found the weapon,
but the officers did not give them a second look. Apparently the disguise was
convincing.
Langdon whispered
to Vittoria. Ever fire anything other than a tranquilizer gun?
Dont you trust
me?
Trust you? I
barely know you.
Vittoria frowned.
And here I thought we were newlyweds.
61
The air inside
the Pantheon was cool and damp, heavy with history. The sprawling ceiling
hovered overhead as though weightlessthe 141 foot unsupported span larger even
than the cupola at St. Peters. As always, Langdon felt a chill as he entered
the cavernous room. It was a remarkable fusion of engineering and art. Above
them the famous circular hole in the roof glowed with a narrow shaft of evening
sun. The oculus, Langdon thought. The demons hole.
They had arrived.
Langdons eyes
traced the arch of the ceiling sloping outward to the columned walls and
finally down to the polished marble floor beneath their feet. The faint echo of
footfalls and tourist murmurs reverberated around the dome. Langdon scanned the
dozen or so tourists wandering aimlessly in the shadows. Are you here?
Looks pretty
quiet, Vittoria said, still holding his hand.
Langdon nodded.
Wheres
Raphaels tomb?
Langdon thought
for a moment, trying to get his bearings. He surveyed the circumference of the
room. Tombs. Altars. Pillars. Niches. He motioned to a particularly ornate
funerary across the dome and to the left. I think thats Raphaels over
there.
Vittoria scanned
the rest of the room. I dont see anyone who looks like an assassin about to
kill a cardinal. Shall we look around?
Langdon nodded.
Theres only one spot in here where anyone could be hiding. We better check
the rientranze.
The recesses?
Yes. Langdon
pointed. The recesses in the wall.
Around the
perimeter, interspersed with the tombs, a series of semicircular niches were
hewn in the wall. The niches, although not enormous, were big enough to hide
someone in the shadows. Sadly, Langdon knew they once contained statues of the
Olympian gods, but the pagan sculptures had been destroyed when the Vatican
converted the Pantheon to a Christian church. He felt a pang of frustration to
know he was standing at the first altar of science, and the marker was gone. He
wondered which statue it had been, and where it had pointed. Langdon could
imagine no greater thrill than finding an Illuminati markera statue that
surreptitiously pointed the way down the Path of Illumination. Again he
wondered who the anonymous Illuminati sculptor had been.
Ill take the
left arc, Vittoria said, indicating the left half of the circumference. You
go right. See you in a hundred and eighty degrees.
Langdon smiled
grimly.
As Vittoria moved
off, Langdon felt the eerie horror of the situation seeping back into his mind.
As he turned and made his way to the right, the killers voice seemed to whisper
in the dead space around him. Eight oclock. Virgin sacrifices on the altars of
science. A mathematical progression of death. Eight, nine, ten, eleven . . .
and at midnight. Langdon checked his watch: 7:52. Eight minutes.
As Langdon moved
toward the first recess, he passed the tomb of one of Italys Catholic kings.
The sarcophagus, like many in Rome, was askew with the wall, positioned
awkwardly. A group of visitors seemed confused by this. Langdon did not stop to
explain. Formal Christian tombs were often misaligned with the architecture so
they could lie facing east. It was an ancient superstition that Langdons
Symbology 212 class had discussed just last month.
Thats totally
incongruous! a female student in the front had blurted when Langdon explained
the reason for east facing tombs. Why would Christians want their tombs to
face the rising sun ? Were talking about Christianity . . . not sun worship!
Langdon smiled,
pacing before the blackboard, chewing an apple. Mr. Hitzrot! he shouted.
A young man
dozing in back sat up with a start. What! Me?
Langdon pointed
to a Renaissance art poster on the wall. Who is that man kneeling before God?
Um . . . some
saint?
Brilliant. And
how do you know hes a saint?
Hes got a
halo?
Excellent, and does
that golden halo remind you of anything?
Hitzrot broke
into a smile. Yeah! Those Egyptian things we studied last term. Those . . . um
. . . sun disks !
Thank you,
Hitzrot. Go back to sleep. Langdon turned back to the class. Halos, like much
of Christian symbology, were borrowed from the ancient Egyptian religion of sun
worship. Christianity is filled with examples of sun worship.
Excuse me? the
girl in front said. I go to church all the time, and I dont see much sun
worshiping going on!
Really? What do
you celebrate on December twenty fifth?
Christmas. The
birth of Jesus Christ.
And yet
according to the Bible, Christ was born in March, so what are we doing
celebrating in late December?
Silence.
Langdon smiled.
December twenty fifth, my friends, is the ancient pagan holiday of sol
invictus Unconquered Suncoinciding with the winter solstice. Its that
wonderful time of year when the sun returns, and the days start getting
longer.
Langdon took
another bite of apple.
Conquering
religions, he continued, often adopt existing holidays to make conversion
less shocking. Its called transmutation. It helps people acclimatize to the
new faith. Worshipers keep the same holy dates, pray in the same sacred
locations, use a similar symbology . . . and they simply substitute a different
god.
Now the girl in
front looked furious. Youre implying Christianity is just some kind of . . .
repackaged sun worship !
Not at all.
Christianity did not borrow only from sun worship. The ritual of Christian
canonization is taken from the ancient god making rite of Euhemerus. The
practice of god eatingthat is, Holy Communionwas borrowed from the Aztecs.
Even the concept of Christ dying for our sins is arguably not exclusively
Christian; the self sacrifice of a young man to absolve the sins of his people
appears in the earliest tradition of the Quetzalcoatl.
The girl glared.
So, is anything in Christianity original?
Very little in
any organized faith is truly original. Religions are not born from scratch.
They grow from one another. Modern religion is a collage . . . an assimilated
historical record of mans quest to understand the divine.
Um . . . hold on,
Hitzrot ventured, sounding awake now. I know something Christian thats
original. How about our image of God? Christian art never portrays God as the
hawk sun god, or as an Aztec, or as anything weird. It always shows God as an
old man with a white beard. So our image of God is original, right?
Langdon smiled.
When the early Christian converts abandoned their former deitiespagan gods,
Roman gods, Greek, sun, Mithraic, whateverthey asked the church what their new
Christian God looked like. Wisely, the church chose the most feared, powerful .
. . and familiar face in all of recorded history.
Hitzrot looked
skeptical. An old man with a white, flowing beard?
Langdon pointed
to a hierarchy of ancient gods on the wall. At the top sat an old man with a white,
flowing beard. Does Zeus look familiar?
The class ended
right on cue.
Good evening, a
mans voice said.
Langdon jumped.
He was back in the Pantheon. He turned to face an elderly man in a blue cape
with a red cross on the chest. The man gave him a gray toothed smile.
Youre English,
right? The mans accent was thick Tuscan.
Langdon blinked,
confused. Actually, no. Im American.
The man looked
embarrassed. Oh heavens, forgive me. You were so nicely dressed, I just
figured . . . my apologies.
Can I help you?
Langdon asked, his heart beating wildly.
Actually I
thought perhaps I could help you. I am the cicerone here. The man pointed
proudly to his city issued badge. It is my job to make your visit to Rome more
interesting.
More interesting?
Langdon was certain this particular visit to Rome was plenty interesting.
You look like a
man of distinction, the guide fawned, no doubt more interested in culture
than most. Perhaps I can give you some history on this fascinating building.
Langdon smiled
politely. Kind of you, but Im actually an art historian myself, and
Superb! The
mans eyes lit up like hed hit the jackpot. Then you will no doubt find this
delightful!
I think Id
prefer to
The Pantheon,
the man declared, launching into his memorized spiel, was built by Marcus
Agrippa in 27 B.C.
Yes, Langdon
interjected, and rebuilt by Hadrian in 119 A.D.
It was the
worlds largest free standing dome until 1960 when it was eclipsed by the
Superdome in New Orleans!
Langdon groaned.
The man was unstoppable.
And a fifth
century theologian once called the Pantheon the House of the Devil, warning
that the hole in the roof was an entrance for demons!
Langdon blocked
him out. His eyes climbed skyward to the oculus, and the memory of Vittorias
suggested plot flashed a bone numbing image in his mind . . . a branded
cardinal falling through the hole and hitting the marble floor. Now that would
be a media event. Langdon found himself scanning the Pantheon for reporters.
None. He inhaled deeply. It was an absurd idea. The logistics of pulling off a
stunt like that would be ridiculous.
As Langdon moved
off to continue his inspection, the babbling docent followed like a love
starved puppy. Remind me, Langdon thought to himself, theres nothing worse
than a gung ho art historian.
Across the room,
Vittoria was immersed in her own search. Standing all alone for the first time
since she had heard the news of her father, she felt the stark reality of the
last eight hours closing in around her. Her father had been murderedcruelly
and abruptly. Almost equally painful was that her fathers creation had been
corruptednow a tool of terrorists. Vittoria was plagued with guilt to think
that it was her invention that had enabled the antimatter to be transported . .
. her canister that was now counting down inside the Vatican. In an effort to
serve her fathers quest for the simplicity of truth . . . she had become a
conspirator of chaos.
Oddly, the only
thing that felt right in her life at the moment was the presence of a total
stranger. Robert Langdon. She found an inexplicable refuge in his eyes . . .
like the harmony of the oceans she had left behind early that morning. She was
glad he was there. Not only had he been a source of strength and hope for her,
Langdon had used his quick mind to render this one chance to catch her fathers
killer.
Vittoria breathed
deeply as she continued her search, moving around the perimeter. She was
overwhelmed by the unexpected images of personal revenge that had dominated her
thoughts all day. Even as a sworn lover of all life . . . she wanted this
executioner dead. No amount of good karma could make her turn the other cheek
today. Alarmed and electrified, she sensed something coursing through her
Italian blood that she had never felt before . . . the whispers of Sicilian
ancestors defending family honor with brutal justice. Vendetta, Vittoria
thought, and for the first time in her life understood.
Visions of
reprisal spurred her on. She approached the tomb of Raphael Santi. Even from a
distance she could tell this guy was special. His casket, unlike the others,
was protected by a Plexiglas shield and recessed into the wall. Through the
barrier she could see the front of the sarcophagus.
Raphael Santi
14831520
Vittoria studied
the grave and then read the one sentence descriptive plaque beside Raphaels
tomb.
Then she read it
again.
Then . . . she
read it again.
A moment later,
she was dashing in horror across the floor. Robert! Robert!
62
Langdons
progress around his side of the Pantheon was being hampered somewhat by the
guide on his heels, now continuing his tireless narration as Langdon prepared
to check the final alcove.
You certainly
seem to be enjoying those niches! the docent said, looking delighted. Were
you aware that the tapering thickness of the walls is the reason the dome
appears weightless?
Langdon nodded,
not hearing a word as he prepared to examine another niche. Suddenly someone
grabbed him from behind. It was Vittoria. She was breathless and tugging at his
arm. From the look of terror on her face, Langdon could only imagine one thing.
She found a body. He felt an upswelling of dread.
Ah, your wife!
the docent exclaimed, clearly thrilled to have another guest. He motioned to
her short pants and hiking boots. Now you I can tell are American!
Vittorias eyes
narrowed. Im Italian.
The guides smile
dimmed. Oh, dear.
Robert,
Vittoria whispered, trying to turn her back on the guide. Galileos Diagramma.
I need to see it.
Diagramma? the
docent said, wheedling back in. My! You two certainly know your history!
Unfortunately that document is not viewable. It is under secret preservation in
the Vatican Arc
Could you excuse
us? Langdon said. He was confused by Vittorias panic. He took her aside and
reached in his pocket, carefully extracting the Diagramma folio. Whats going
on?
Whats the date
on this thing? Vittoria demanded, scanning the sheet.
The docent was on
them again, staring at the folio, mouth agape. Thats not . . . really . . .
Tourist
reproduction, Langdon quipped. Thank you for your help. Please, my wife and I
would like a moment alone.
The docent backed
off, eyes never leaving the paper.
Date, Vittoria
repeated to Langdon. When did Galileo publish . . .
Langdon pointed
to the Roman numeral in the lower liner. Thats the pub date. Whats going
on?
Vittoria
deciphered the number. 1639?
Yes. Whats
wrong?
Vittorias eyes
filled with foreboding. Were in trouble, Robert. Big trouble. The dates dont
match.
What dates dont
match?
Raphaels tomb.
He wasnt buried here until 1759. A century after Diagramma was published.
Langdon stared at
her, trying to make sense of the words. No, he replied. Raphael died in
1520, long before Diagramma.
Yes, but he
wasnt buried here until much later.
Langdon was lost.
What are you talking about?
I just read it.
Raphaels body was relocated to the Pantheon in 1758. It was part of some
historic tribute to eminent Italians.
As the words
settled in, Langdon felt like a rug had just been yanked out from under him.
When that poem
was written, Vittoria declared, Raphaels tomb was somewhere else. Back then,
the Pantheon had nothing at all to do with Raphael!
Langdon could not
breathe. But that . . . means . . .
Yes! It means
were in the wrong place!
Langdon felt
himself sway. Impossible . . . I was certain . . .
Vittoria ran over
and grabbed the docent, pulling him back. Signore, excuse us. Where was
Raphaels body in the 1600s?
Urb . . .
Urbino, he stammered, now looking bewildered. His birthplace.
Impossible!
Langdon cursed to himself. The Illuminati altars of science were here in Rome.
Im certain of it!
Illuminati? The
docent gasped, looking again at the document in Langdons hand. Who are you
people?
Vittoria took
charge. Were looking for something called Santis earthly tomb. In Rome. Can
you tell us what that might be?
The docent looked
unsettled. This was Raphaels only tomb in Rome.
Langdon tried to
think, but his mind refused to engage. If Raphaels tomb wasnt in Rome in
1655, then what was the poem referring to? Santis earthly tomb with demons
hole? What the hell is it? Think!
Was there
another artist called Santi? Vittoria asked.
The docent
shrugged. Not that I know of.
How about anyone
famous at all? Maybe a scientist or a poet or an astronomer named Santi?
The docent now
looked like he wanted to leave. No, maam. The only Santi Ive ever heard of
is Raphael the architect.
Architect?
Vittoria said. I thought he was a painter!
He was both, of
course. They all were. Michelangelo, da Vinci, Raphael.
Langdon didnt
know whether it was the docents words or the ornate tombs around them that
brought the revelation to mind, but it didnt matter. The thought occurred.
Santi was an architect. From there the progression of thoughts fell like
dominoes. Renaissance architects lived for only two reasonsto glorify God with
big churches, and to glorify dignitaries with lavish tombs. Santis tomb. Could
it be? The images came faster now . . .
da Vincis Mona
Lisa.
Monets Water
Lilies.
Michelangelos
David.
Santis earthly
tomb . . .
Santi designed
the tomb, Langdon said.
Vittoria turned.
What?
Its not a
reference to where Raphael is buried, its referring to a tomb he designed.
What are you
talking about?
I misunderstood
the clue. Its not Raphaels burial site were looking for, its a tomb Raphael
designed for someone else. I cant believe I missed it. Half of the sculpting
done in Renaissance and Baroque Rome was for the funeraries. Langdon smiled
with the revelation. Raphael must have designed hundreds of tombs!
Vittoria did not
look happy. Hundreds?
Langdons smile
faded. Oh.
Any of them
earthly, professor?
Langdon felt
suddenly inadequate. He knew embarrassingly little about Raphaels work.
Michelangelo he could have helped with, but Raphaels work had never captivated
him. Langdon could only name a couple of Raphaels more famous tombs, but he
wasnt sure what they looked like.
Apparently
sensing Langdons stymie, Vittoria turned to the docent, who was now inching
away. She grabbed his arm and reeled him in. I need a tomb. Designed by
Raphael. A tomb that could be considered earthly.
The docent now
looked distressed. A tomb of Raphaels? I dont know. He designed so many. And
you probably would mean a chapel by Raphael, not a tomb. Architects always
designed the chapels in conjunction with the tomb.
Langdon realized
the man was right.
Are any of
Raphaels tombs or chapels considered earthly ?
The man shrugged.
Im sorry. I dont know what you mean. Earthly really doesnt describe
anything I know of. I should be going.
Vittoria held his
arm and read from the top line of the folio. From Santis earthly tomb with
demons hole. Does that mean anything to you?
Not a thing.
Langdon looked up
suddenly. He had momentarily forgotten the second part of the line. Demons
hole? Yes! he said to the docent. Thats it! Do any of Raphaels chapels
have an oculus in them?
The docent shook
his head. To my knowledge the Pantheon is unique. He paused. But . . .
But what!
Vittoria and Langdon said in unison.
Now the docent
cocked his head, stepping toward them again. A demons hole? He muttered to
himself and picked at his teeth. Demons hole . . . that is . . . buco divolo
?
Vittoria nodded.
Literally, yes.
The docent smiled
faintly. Now theres a term I have not heard in a while. If Im not mistaken,
a buco divolo refers to an undercroft.
An undercroft?
Langdon asked. As in a crypt ?
Yes, but a
specific kind of crypt. I believe a demons hole is an ancient term for a
massive burial cavity located in a chapel . . . underneath another tomb.
An ossuary
annex? Langdon demanded, immediately recognizing what the man was describing.
The docent looked
impressed. Yes! That is the term I was looking for!
Langdon
considered it. Ossuary annexes were a cheap ecclesiastic fix to an awkward
dilemma. When churches honored their most distinguished members with ornate
tombs inside the sanctuary, surviving family members often demanded the family
be buried together . . . thus ensuring they too would have a coveted burial
spot inside the church. However, if the church did not have space or funds to
create tombs for an entire family, they sometimes dug an ossuary annexa hole
in the floor near the tomb where they buried the less worthy family members.
The hole was then covered with the Renaissance equivalent of a manhole cover.
Although convenient, the ossuary annex went out of style quickly because of the
stench that often wafted up into the cathedral. Demons hole, Langdon thought.
He had never heard the term. It seemed eerily fitting.
Langdons heart
was now pounding fiercely. From Santis earthly tomb with demons hole. There
seemed to be only one question left to ask. Did Raphael design any tombs that
had one of these demons holes?
The docent
scratched his head. Actually. Im sorry . . . I can only think of one.
Only one? Langdon
could not have dreamed of a better response.
Where! Vittoria
almost shouted.
The docent eyed
them strangely. Its called the Chigi Chapel. Tomb of Agostino Chigi and his
brother, wealthy patrons of the arts and sciences.
Sciences?
Langdon said, exchanging looks with Vittoria.
Where? Vittoria
asked again.
The docent
ignored the question, seeming enthusiastic again to be of service. As for
whether or not the tomb is earthly, I dont know, but certainly it is . . .
shall we say differénte.
Different?
Langdon said. How?
Incoherent with
the architecture. Raphael was only the architect. Some other sculptor did the
interior adornments. I cant remember who.
Langdon was now
all ears. The anonymous Illuminati master, perhaps?
Whoever did the
interior monuments lacked taste, the docent said. Dio mio! Atrocits! Who
would want to be buried beneath pirámides ?
Langdon could
scarcely believe his ears. Pyramids? The chapel contains pyramids?
I know, the
docent scoffed. Terrible, isnt it?
Vittoria grabbed
the docents arm. Signore, where is this Chigi Chapel?
About a mile
north. In the church of Santa Maria del Popolo.
Vittoria exhaled.
Thank you. Lets
Hey, the docent
said, I just thought of something. What a fool I am.
Vittoria stopped
short. Please dont tell me you made a mistake.
He shook his
head. No, but it should have dawned on me earlier. The Chigi Chapel was not
always known as the Chigi. It used to be called Capella della Terra.
Chapel of the
Land? Langdon asked.
No, Vittoria
said, heading for the door. Chapel of the Earth.
Vittoria Vetra
whipped out her cell phone as she dashed into Piazza della Rotunda. Commander
Olivetti, she said. This is the wrong place!
Olivetti sounded
bewildered. Wrong? What do you mean?
The first altar
of science is at the Chigi Chapel!
Where? Now
Olivetti sounded angry. But Mr. Langdon said
Santa Maria del
Popolo! One mile north. Get your men over there now! Weve got four minutes!
But my men are
in position here ! I cant possibly
Move! Vittoria
snapped the phone shut.
Behind her,
Langdon emerged from the Pantheon, dazed.
She grabbed his
hand and pulled him toward the queue of seemingly driverless taxis waiting by
the curb. She pounded on the hood of the first car in line. The sleeping driver
bolted upright with a startled yelp. Vittoria yanked open the rear door and
pushed Langdon inside. Then she jumped in behind him.
Santa Maria del Popolo,
she ordered. Presto!
Looking delirious
and half terrified, the driver hit the accelerator, peeling out down the
street.
63
Gunther Glick had
assumed control of the computer from Chinita Macri, who now stood hunched in
the back of the cramped BBC van staring in confusion over Glicks shoulder.
I told you,
Glick said, typing some more keys. The British Tattler isnt the only paper
that runs stories on these guys.
Macri peered
closer. Glick was right. The BBC database showed their distinguished network as
having picked up and run six stories in the past ten years on the brotherhood
called the Illuminati. Well, paint me purple, she thought. Who are the
journalists who ran the stories, Macri asked. Schlock jocks?
BBC doesnt hire
schlock jocks.
They hired you.
Glick scowled. I
dont know why youre such a skeptic. The Illuminati are well documented
throughout history.
So are witches,
UFOs, and the Loch Ness Monster.
Glick read the
list of stories. You ever heard of a guy called Winston Churchill?
Rings a bell.
BBC did a
historical a while back on Churchills life. Staunch Catholic by the way. Did
you know that in 1920 Churchill published a statement condemning the Illuminati
and warning Brits of a worldwide conspiracy against morality?
Macri was
dubious. Where did it run? In the British Tattler ?
Glick smiled.
London Herald. February 8, 1920.
No way.
Feast your
eyes.
Macri looked
closer at the clip. London Herald. Feb. 8, 1920. I had no idea. Well,
Churchill was a paranoid.
He wasnt
alone, Glick said, reading further. Looks like Woodrow Wilson gave three
radio broadcasts in 1921 warning of growing Illuminati control over the U.S.
banking system. You want a direct quote from the radio transcript?
Not really.
Glick gave her
one anyway. He said, There is a power so organized, so subtle, so complete,
so pervasive, that none had better speak above their breath when they speak in
condemnation of it.
Ive never heard
anything about this.
Maybe because in
1921 you were just a kid.
Charming. Macri
took the jab in stride. She knew her years were showing. At forty three, her
bushy black curls were streaked with gray. She was too proud for dye. Her mom,
a Southern Baptist, had taught Chinita contentedness and self respect. When
youre a black woman, her mother said, aint no hiding what you are. Day you
try, is the day you die. Stand tall, smile bright, and let em wonder what
secrets making you laugh.
Ever heard of
Cecil Rhodes? Glick asked.
Macri looked up.
The British financier?
Yeah. Founded
the Rhodes Scholarships.
Dont tell me
Illuminatus.
BS.
BBC, actually.
November 16, 1984.
We wrote that
Cecil Rhodes was Illuminati?
Sure did. And
according to our network, the Rhodes Scholarships were funds set up centuries
ago to recruit the worlds brightest young minds into the Illuminati.
Thats
ridiculous! My uncle was a Rhodes Scholar!
Glick winked. So
was Bill Clinton.
Macri was getting
mad now. She had never had tolerance for shoddy, alarmist reporting. Still, she
knew enough about the BBC to know that every story they ran was carefully
researched and confirmed.
Heres one
youll remember, Glick said. BBC, March 5, 1998. Parliament Committee Chair,
Chris Mullin, required all members of British Parliament who were Masons to declare
their affiliation.
Macri remembered
it. The decree had eventually extended to include policemen and judges as well.
Why was it again?
Glick read. . .
. concern that secret factions within the Masons exerted considerable control
over political and financial systems.
Thats right.
Caused quite a
bustle. The Masons in parliament were furious. Had a right to be. The vast
majority turned out to be innocent men who joined the Masons for networking and
charity work. They had no clue about the brotherhoods past affiliations.
Alleged affiliations.
Whatever. Glick
scanned the articles. Look at this stuff. Accounts tracing the Illuminati back
to Galileo, the Guerenets of France, the Alumbrados of Spain. Even Karl Marx
and the Russian Revolution.
History has a
way of rewriting itself.
Fine, you want
something current? Have a look at this. Heres an Illuminati reference from a
recent Wall Street Journal.
This caught
Macris ear. The Journal ?
Guess what the
most popular Internet computer game in America is right now?
Pin the tail on
Pamela Anderson.
Close. Its
called, Illuminati: New World Order.
Macri looked over
his shoulder at the blurb. Steve Jackson Games has a runaway hit . . . a quasi
historical adventure in which an ancient satanic brotherhood from Bavaria sets
out to take over the world. You can find them on line at . . . Macri looked
up, feeling ill. What do these Illuminati guys have against Christianity?
Not just
Christianity, Glick said. Religion in general. Glick cocked his head and
grinned. Although from the phone call we just got, it appears they do have a
special spot in their hearts for the Vatican.
Oh, come on. You
dont really think that guy who called is who he claims to be, do you?
A messenger of
the Illuminati? Preparing to kill four cardinals? Glick smiled. I sure hope
so.
64
Langdon and
Vittorias taxi completed the one mile sprint up the wide Via della Scrofa in
just over a minute. They skidded to a stop on the south side of the Piazza del
Popolo just before eight. Not having any lire, Langdon overpaid the driver in
U.S. dollars. He and Vittoria jumped out. The piazza was quiet except for the
laughter of a handful of locals seated outside the popular Rosati Caféa
hot spot of the Italian literati. The breeze smelled of espresso and pastry.
Langdon was still
in shock over his mistake at the Pantheon. With a cursory glance at this
square, however, his sixth sense was already tingling. The piazza seemed subtly
filled with Illuminati significance. Not only was it laid out in a perfectly elliptical
shape, but dead center stood a towering Egyptian obeliska square pillar of
stone with a distinctively pyramidal tip. Spoils of Romes imperial plundering,
obelisks were scattered across Rome and referred to by symbologists as Lofty
Pyramidsskyward extensions of the sacred pyramidal form.
As Langdons eyes
moved up the monolith, though, his sight was suddenly drawn to something else
in the background. Something even more remarkable.
Were in the
right place, he said quietly, feeling a sudden exposed wariness. Have a look
at that. Langdon pointed to the imposing Porta del Popolothe high stone
archway at the far end of the piazza. The vaulted structure had been
overlooking the piazza for centuries. Dead center of the archways highest
point was a symbolic engraving. Look familiar?
Vittoria looked
up at the huge carving. A shining star over a triangular pile of stones?
Langdon shook his
head. A source of Illumination over a pyramid.
Vittoria turned,
her eyes suddenly wide. Like . . . the Great Seal of the United States?
Exactly. The
Masonic symbol on the one dollar bill.
Vittoria took a
deep breath and scanned the piazza. So wheres this damn church?
The Church of
Santa Maria del Popolo stood out like a misplaced battleship, askew at the base
of a hill on the southeast corner of the piazza. The eleventh century stone
aerie was made even more clumsy by the tower of scaffolding covering the
façade.
Langdons
thoughts were a blur as they raced toward the edifice. He stared up at the
church in wonder. Could a murder really be about to take place inside? He
wished Olivetti would hurry. The gun felt awkward in his pocket.
The churchs
front stairs were ventaglio a welcoming, curved fanironic in this case
because they were blocked with scaffolding, construction equipment, and a sign
warning:
Construzzione.
Non Entrare
Langdon realized
that a church closed for renovation meant total privacy for a killer. Not like
the Pantheon. No fancy tricks needed here. Only to find a way in.
Vittoria slipped
without hesitation between the sawhorses and headed up the staircase.
Vittoria,
Langdon cautioned. If hes still in there . . .
Vittoria did not
seem to hear. She ascended the main portico to the churchs sole wooden door.
Langdon hurried up the stairs behind her. Before he could say a word she had
grasped the handle and pulled. Langdon held his breath. The door did not budge.
There must be
another entrance, Vittoria said.
Probably,
Langdon said, exhaling, but Olivetti will be here in a minute. Its too
dangerous to go in. We should cover the church from out here until
Vittoria turned,
her eyes blazing. If theres another way in, theres another way out. If this
guy disappears, were fungito.
Langdon knew
enough Italian to know she was right.
The alley on the
right side of the church was pinched and dark, with high walls on both sides.
It smelled of urinea common aroma in a city where bars outnumbered public rest
rooms twenty to one.
Langdon and
Vittoria hurried into the fetid dimness. They had gone about fifteen yards down
when Vittoria tugged Langdons arm and pointed.
Langdon saw it
too. Up ahead was an unassuming wooden door with heavy hinges. Langdon
recognized it as the standard porta sacra a private entrance for clergy. Most
of these entrances had gone out of use years ago as encroaching buildings and
limited real estate relegated side entrances to inconvenient alleyways.
Vittoria hurried
to the door. She arrived and stared down at the doorknob, apparently perplexed.
Langdon arrived behind her and eyed the peculiar donut shaped hoop hanging
where the doorknob should have been.
An annulus, he
whispered. Langdon reached out and quietly lifted the ring in his hand. He
pulled the ring toward him. The fixture clicked. Vittoria shifted, looking
suddenly uneasy. Quietly, Langdon twisted the ring clockwise. It spun loosely
360 degrees, not engaging. Langdon frowned and tried the other direction with
the same result.
Vittoria looked
down the remainder of the alley. You think theres another entrance?
Langdon doubted
it. Most Renaissance cathedrals were designed as makeshift fortresses in the
event a city was stormed. They had as few entrances as possible. If there is
another way in, he said, its probably recessed in the rear bastionmore of
an escape route than an entrance.
Vittoria was
already on the move.
Langdon followed
deeper into the alley. The walls shot skyward on both sides of him. Somewhere a
bell began ringing eight oclock . . .
Robert Langdon
did not hear Vittoria the first time she called to him. He had slowed at a
stained glass window covered with bars and was trying to peer inside the
church.
Robert! Her
voice was a loud whisper.
Langdon looked
up. Vittoria was at the end of the alley. She was pointing around the back of
the church and waving to him. Langdon jogged reluctantly toward her. At the
base of the rear wall, a stone bulwark jutted out concealing a narrow grottoa
kind of compressed passageway cutting directly into the foundation of the
church.
An entrance?
Vittoria asked.
Langdon nodded.
Actually an exit, but we wont get technical.
Vittoria knelt
and peered into the tunnel. Lets check the door. See if its open.
Langdon opened
his mouth to object, but Vittoria took his hand and pulled him into the
opening.
Wait, Langdon
said.
She turned
impatiently toward him.
Langdon sighed.
Ill go first.
Vittoria looked
surprised. More chivalry?
Age before
beauty.
Was that a
compliment?
Langdon smiled
and moved past her into the dark. Careful on the stairs.
He inched slowly
into the darkness, keeping one hand on the wall. The stone felt sharp on his
fingertips. For an instant Langdon recalled the ancient myth of Daedelus, how
the boy kept one hand on the wall as he moved through the Minotaurs labyrinth,
knowing he was guaranteed to find the end if he never broke contact with the
wall. Langdon moved forward, not entirely certain he wanted to find the end.
The tunnel
narrowed slightly, and Langdon slowed his pace. He sensed Vittoria close behind
him. As the wall curved left, the tunnel opened into a semicircular alcove.
Oddly, there was faint light here. In the dimness Langdon saw the outline of a
heavy wooden door.
Uh oh, he said.
Locked?
It was.
Was? Vittoria
arrived at his side.
Langdon pointed.
Lit by a shaft of light coming from within, the door hung ajar . . . its hinges
splintered by a wrecking bar still lodged in the wood.
They stood a
moment in silence. Then, in the dark, Langdon felt Vittorias hands on his
chest, groping, sliding beneath his jacket.
Relax,
professor, she said. Im just getting the gun.
At that moment,
inside the Vatican Museums, a task force of Swiss Guards spread out in all
directions. The museum was dark, and the guards wore U.S. Marine issue infrared
goggles. The goggles made everything appear an eerie shade of green. Every
guard wore headphones connected to an antennalike detector that he waved
rhythmically in front of himthe same devices they used twice a week to sweep
for electronic bugs inside the Vatican. They moved methodically, checking
behind statues, inside niches, closets, under furniture. The antennae would
sound if they detected even the tiniest magnetic field.
Tonight, however,
they were getting no readings at all.
65
The interior of
Santa Maria del Popolo was a murky cave in the dimming light. It looked more
like a half finished subway station than a cathedral. The main sanctuary was an
obstacle course of torn up flooring, brick pallets, mounds of dirt,
wheelbarrows, and even a rusty backhoe. Mammoth columns rose through the floor,
supporting a vaulted roof. In the air, silt drifted lazily in the muted glow of
the stained glass. Langdon stood with Vittoria beneath a sprawling Pinturicchio
fresco and scanned the gutted shrine.
Nothing moved.
Dead silence.
Vittoria held the
gun out in front of her with both hands. Langdon checked his watch: 8:04 P.M.
Were crazy to be in here, he thought. Its too dangerous. Still he knew if the
killer were inside, the man could leave through any door he wanted, making a
one gun outside stakeout totally fruitless. Catching him inside was the only
way . . . that was, if he was even still here. Langdon felt guilt ridden over
the blunder that had cost everyone their chance at the Pantheon. He was in no
position to insist on precaution now; he was the one who had backed them into
this corner.
Vittoria looked
harrowed as she scanned the church. So, she whispered. Where is this Chigi
Chapel?
Langdon gazed through
the dusky ghostliness toward the back of the cathedral and studied the outer
walls. Contrary to common perception, Renaissance cathedrals invariably
contained multiple chapels, huge cathedrals like Notre Dame having dozens.
Chapels were less rooms than they were hollows semicircular niches holding
tombs around a churchs perimeter wall.
Bad news, Langdon
thought, seeing the four recesses on each side wall. There were eight chapels
in all. Although eight was not a particularly overwhelming number, all eight
openings were covered with huge sheets of clear polyurethane due to the
construction, the translucent curtains apparently intended to keep dust off the
tombs inside the alcoves.
It could be any
of those draped recesses, Langdon said. No way to know which is the Chigi
without looking inside every one. Could be a good reason to wait for Oliv
Which is the
secondary left apse? she asked.
Langdon studied
her, surprised by her command of architectural terminology. Secondary left
apse?
Vittoria pointed
at the wall behind him. A decorative tile was embedded in the stone. It was
engraved with the same symbol they had seen outsidea pyramid beneath a shining
star. The grime covered plaque beside it read:
Coat of arms of
Alexander Chigi whose tomb is located in the secondary left apse of this
Cathedral
Langdon nodded.
Chigis coat of arms was a pyramid and star? He suddenly found himself
wondering if the wealthy patron Chigi had been an Illuminatus. He nodded to
Vittoria. Nice work, Nancy Drew.
What?
Never mind. I
A piece of metal
clattered to the floor only yards away. The clang echoed through the entire
church. Langdon pulled Vittoria behind a pillar as she whipped the gun toward
the sound and held it there. Silence. They waited. Again there was sound, this
time a rustling. Langdon held his breath. I never should have let us come in
here! The sound moved closer, an intermittent scuffling, like a man with a
limp. Suddenly around the base of the pillar, an object came into view.
Figlio di
puttana! Vittoria cursed under her breath, jumping back. Langdon fell back
with her.
Beside the
pillar, dragging a half eaten sandwich in paper, was an enormous rat. The
creature paused when it saw them, staring a long moment down the barrel of
Vittorias weapon, and then, apparently unmoved, continued dragging its prize
off to the recesses of the church.
Son of a . . .
Langdon gasped, his heart racing.
Vittoria lowered
the gun, quickly regaining her composure. Langdon peered around the side of the
column to see a workmans lunchbox splayed on the floor, apparently knocked off
a sawhorse by the resourceful rodent.
Langdon scanned
the basilica for movement and whispered, If this guys here, he sure as hell
heard that. You sure you dont want to wait for Olivetti?
Secondary left
apse, Vittoria repeated. Where is it?
Reluctantly
Langdon turned and tried to get his bearings. Cathedral terminology was like
stage directionstotally counterintuitive. He faced the main altar. Stage
center. Then he pointed with his thumb backward over his shoulder.
They both turned
and looked where he was pointing.
It seemed the
Chigi Chapel was located in the third of four recessed alcoves to their right.
The good news was that Langdon and Vittoria were on the correct side of the
church. The bad news was that they were at the wrong end. They would have to
traverse the length of the cathedral, passing three other chapels, each of
them, like the Chigi Chapel, covered with translucent plastic shrouds.
Wait, Langdon
said. Ill go first.
Forget it.
Im the one who
screwed up at the Pantheon.
She turned. But
Im the one with the gun.
In her eyes
Langdon could see what she was really thinking . . . Im the one who lost my
father. Im the one who helped build a weapon of mass destruction. This guys
kneecaps are mine . . .
Langdon sensed
the futility and let her go. He moved beside her, cautiously, down the east
side of the basilica. As they passed the first shrouded alcove, Langdon felt
taut, like a contestant on some surreal game show. Ill take curtain number
three, he thought.
The church was
quiet, the thick stone walls blocking out all hints of the outside world. As
they hurried past one chapel after the other, pale humanoid forms wavered like
ghosts behind the rustling plastic. Carved marble, Langdon told himself, hoping
he was right. It was 8:06 P.M. Had the killer been punctual and slipped out
before Langdon and Vittoria had entered? Or was he still here? Langdon was
unsure which scenario he preferred.
They passed the
second apse, ominous in the slowly darkening cathedral. Night seemed to be
falling quickly now, accentuated by the musty tint of the stained glass
windows. As they pressed on, the plastic curtain beside them billowed suddenly,
as if caught in a draft. Langdon wondered if someone somewhere had opened a
door.
Vittoria slowed
as the third niche loomed before them. She held the gun before her, motioning
with her head to the stele beside the apse. Carved in the granite block were
two words:
Capella Chigi
Langdon nodded.
Without a sound they moved to the corner of the opening, positioning themselves
behind a wide pillar. Vittoria leveled the gun around a corner at the plastic.
Then she signaled for Langdon to pull back the shroud.
A good time to
start praying, he thought. Reluctantly, he reached over her shoulder. As
carefully as possible, he began to pull the plastic aside. It moved an inch and
then crinkled loudly. They both froze. Silence. After a moment, moving in slow
motion, Vittoria leaned forward and peered through the narrow slit. Langdon
looked over her shoulder.
For a moment,
neither one of them breathed.
Empty, Vittoria
finally said, lowering the gun. Were too late.
Langdon did not
hear. He was in awe, transported for an instant to another world. In his life,
he had never imagined a chapel that looked like this. Finished entirely in
chestnut marble, the Chigi Chapel was breathtaking. Langdons trained eye
devoured it in gulps. It was as earthly a chapel as Langdon could fathom,
almost as if Galileo and the Illuminati had designed it themselves.
Overhead, the
domed cupola shone with a field of illuminated stars and the seven astronomical
planets. Below that the twelve signs of the zodiacpagan, earthly symbols
rooted in astronomy. The zodiac was also tied directly to Earth, Air, Fire,
Water . . . the quadrants representing power, intellect, ardor, emotion. Earth
is for power, Langdon recalled.
Farther down the
wall, Langdon saw tributes to the Earths four temporal seasonsprimavera,
estate, autunno, invérno. But far more incredible than any of this were
the two huge structures dominating the room. Langdon stared at them in silent
wonder. It cant be, he thought. It just cant be! But it was. On either side
of the chapel, in perfect symmetry, were two ten foot high marble pyramids.
I dont see a
cardinal, Vittoria whispered. Or an assassin. She pulled aside the plastic
and stepped in.
Langdons eyes
were transfixed on the pyramids. What are pyramids doing inside a Christian
chapel? And incredibly, there was more. Dead center of each pyramid, embedded
in their anterior façades, were gold medallions . . . medallions like
few Langdon had ever seen . . . perfect ellipses. The burnished disks glimmered
in the setting sun as it sifted through the cupola. Galileos ellipses?
Pyramids? A cupola of stars? The room had more Illuminati significance than any
room Langdon could have fabricated in his mind.
Robert,
Vittoria blurted, her voice cracking. Look!
Langdon wheeled,
reality returning as his eyes dropped to where she was pointing. Bloody hell!
he shouted, jumping backward.
Sneering up at
them from the floor was the image of a skeletonan intricately detailed, marble
mosaic depicting death in flight. The skeleton was carrying a tablet
portraying the same pyramid and stars they had seen outside. It was not the
image, however, that had turned Langdons blood cold. It was the fact that the
mosaic was mounted on a circular stonea cupermento that had been lifted out
of the floor like a manhole cover and was now sitting off to one side of a dark
opening in the floor.
Demons hole,
Langdon gasped. He had been so taken with the ceiling he had not even seen it.
Tentatively he moved toward the pit. The stench coming up was overwhelming.
Vittoria put a hand
over her mouth. Che puzzo.
Effluvium,
Langdon said. Vapors from decaying bone. He breathed through his sleeve as he
leaned out over the hole, peering down. Blackness. I cant see a thing.
You think
anybodys down there?
No way to know.
Vittoria motioned
to the far side of the hole where a rotting, wooden ladder descended into the
depths.
Langdon shook his
head. Like hell.
Maybe theres a
flashlight outside in those tools. She sounded eager for an excuse to escape
the smell. Ill look.
Careful!
Langdon warned. We dont know for sure that the Hassassin
But Vittoria was
already gone.
One strong willed
woman, Langdon thought.
As he turned back
to the pit, he felt light headed from the fumes. Holding his breath, he dropped
his head below the rim and peered deep into the darkness. Slowly, as his eyes
adjusted, he began to see faint shapes below. The pit appeared to open into a
small chamber. Demons hole. He wondered how many generations of Chigis had
been unceremoniously dumped in. Langdon closed his eyes and waited, forcing his
pupils to dilate so he could see better in the dark. When he opened his eyes
again, a pale muted figure hovered below in the darkness. Langdon shivered but
fought the instinct to pull out. Am I seeing things? Is that a body? The figure
faded. Langdon closed his eyes again and waited, longer this time, so his eyes
would pick up the faintest light.
Dizziness started
to set in, and his thoughts wandered in the blackness. Just a few more seconds.
He wasnt sure if it was breathing the fumes or holding his head at a low
inclination, but Langdon was definitely starting to feel squeamish. When he
finally opened his eyes again, the image before him was totally inexplicable.
He was now
staring at a crypt bathed in an eerie bluish light. A faint hissing sound
reverberated in his ears. Light flickered on the steep walls of the shaft.
Suddenly, a long shadow materialized over him. Startled, Langdon scrambled up.
Look out!
someone exclaimed behind him.
Before Langdon
could turn, he felt a sharp pain on the back of his neck. He spun to see
Vittoria twisting a lit blowtorch away from him, the hissing flame throwing
blue light around the chapel.
Langdon grabbed
his neck. What the hell are you doing?
I was giving you
some light, she said. You backed right into me.
Langdon glared at
the portable blowtorch in her hand.
Best I could
do, she said. No flashlights.
Langdon rubbed
his neck. I didnt hear you come in.
Vittoria handed
him the torch, wincing again at the stench of the crypt. You think those fumes
are combustible?
Lets hope not.
He took the torch
and moved slowly toward the hole. Cautiously, he advanced to the rim and
pointed the flame down into the hole, lighting the side wall. As he directed
the light, his eyes traced the outline of the wall downward. The crypt was
circular and about twenty feet across. Thirty feet down, the glow found the
floor. The ground was dark and mottled. Earthy. Then Langdon saw the body.
His instinct was
to recoil. Hes here, Langdon said, forcing himself not to turn away. The
figure was a pallid outline against the earthen floor. I think hes been
stripped naked. Langdon flashed on the nude corpse of Leonardo Vetra.
Is it one of the
cardinals?
Langdon had no
idea, but he couldnt imagine who the hell else it would be. He stared down at
the pale blob. Unmoving. Lifeless. And yet . . . Langdon hesitated. There was
something very strange about the way the figure was positioned. He seemed to be
. . .
Langdon called
out. Hello?
You think hes
alive?
There was no
response from below.
Hes not
moving, Langdon said. But he looks . . . No, impossible.
He looks what ?
Vittoria was peering over the edge now too.
Langdon squinted
into the darkness. He looks like hes standing up.
Vittoria held her
breath and lowered her face over the edge for a better look. After a moment,
she pulled back. Youre right. Hes standing up! Maybe hes alive and needs
help! She called into the hole. Hello?! Mi puó sentire?
There was no echo
off the mossy interior. Only silence.
Vittoria headed
for the rickety ladder. Im going down.
Langdon caught
her arm. No. Its dangerous. Ill go.
This time
Vittoria didnt argue.
66
Chinita Macri was
mad. She sat in the passengers seat of the BBC van as it idled at a corner on
Via Tomacelli. Gunther Glick was checking his map of Rome, apparently lost. As
she had feared, his mystery caller had phoned back, this time with information.
Piazza del
Popolo, Glick insisted. Thats what were looking for. Theres a church
there. And inside is proof.
Proof. Chinita
stopped polishing the lens in her hand and turned to him. Proof that a
cardinal has been murdered?
Thats what he
said.
You believe
everything you hear? Chinita wished, as she often did, that she was the one in
charge. Videographers, however, were at the whim of the crazy reporters for
whom they shot footage. If Gunther Glick wanted to follow a feeble phone tip,
Macri was his dog on a leash.
She looked at
him, sitting there in the drivers seat, his jaw set intently. The mans
parents, she decided, must have been frustrated comedians to have given him a
name like Gunther Glick. No wonder the guy felt like he had something to prove.
Nonetheless, despite his unfortunate appellative and annoying eagerness to make
a mark, Glick was sweet . . . charming in a pasty, Briddish, unstrung sort of
way. Like Hugh Grant on lithium.
Shouldnt we be
back at St. Peters? Macri said as patiently as possible. We can check this
mystery church out later. Conclave started an hour ago. What if the cardinals
come to a decision while were gone?
Glick did not
seem to hear. I think we go to the right, here. He tilted the map and studied
it again. Yes, if I take a right . . . and then an immediate left. He began
to pull out onto the narrow street before them.
Look out! Macri
yelled. She was a video technician, and her eyes were sharp. Fortunately, Glick
was pretty fast too. He slammed on the brakes and avoided entering the
intersection just as a line of four Alpha Romeos appeared out of nowhere and
tore by in a blur. Once past, the cars skidded, decelerating, and cut sharply
left one block ahead, taking the exact route Glick had intended to take.
Maniacs! Macri
shouted.
Glick looked
shaken. Did you see that?
Yeah, I saw
that! They almost killed us!
No, I mean the
cars, Glick said, his voice suddenly excited. They were all the same.
So they were
maniacs with no imagination.
The cars were
also full.
So what?
Four identical
cars, all with four passengers?
You ever heard
of carpooling?
In Italy? Glick
checked the intersection. They havent even heard of unleaded gas. He hit the
accelerator and peeled out after the cars.
Macri was thrown
back in her seat. What the hell are you doing?
Glick accelerated
down the street and hung a left after the Alpha Romeos. Something tells me you
and I are not the only ones going to church right now.
67
The descent was
slow.
Langdon dropped
rung by rung down the creaking ladder . . . deeper and deeper beneath the floor
of the Chigi Chapel. Into the Demons hole, he thought. He was facing the side
wall, his back to the chamber, and he wondered how many more dark, cramped
spaces one day could provide. The ladder groaned with every step, and the
pungent smell of rotting flesh and dampness was almost asphyxiating. Langdon
wondered where the hell Olivetti was.
Vittorias
outline was still visible above, holding the blowtorch inside the hole, lighting
Langdons way. As he lowered himself deeper into the darkness, the bluish glow
from above got fainter. The only thing that got stronger was the stench.
Twelve rungs
down, it happened. Langdons foot hit a spot that was slippery with decay, and
he faltered. Lunging forward, he caught the ladder with his forearms to avoid
plummeting to the bottom. Cursing the bruises now throbbing on his arms, he
dragged his body back onto the ladder and began his descent again.
Three rungs
deeper, he almost fell again, but this time it was not a rung that caused the
mishap. It was a bolt of fear. He had descended past a hollowed niche in the
wall before him and suddenly found himself face to face with a collection of
skulls. As he caught his breath and looked around him, he realized the wall at
this level was honeycombed with shelflike openingsburial nichesall filled
with skeletons. In the phosphorescent light, it made for an eerie collage of
empty sockets and decaying rib cages flickering around him.
Skeletons by firelight,
he grimaced wryly, realizing he had quite coincidentally endured a similar
evening just last month. An evening of bones and flames. The New York Museum of
Archeologys candlelight benefit dinnersalmon flambé in the shadow of a
brontosaurus skeleton. He had attended at the invitation of Rebecca Straussone
time fashion model now art critic from the Times, a whirlwind of black velvet,
cigarettes, and not so subtly enhanced breasts. Shed called him twice since.
Langdon had not returned her calls. Most ungentlemanly, he chided, wondering
how long Rebecca Strauss would last in a stink pit like this.
Langdon was
relieved to feel the final rung give way to the spongy earth at the bottom. The
ground beneath his shoes felt damp. Assuring himself the walls were not going
to close in on him, he turned into the crypt. It was circular, about twenty
feet across. Breathing through his sleeve again, Langdon turned his eyes to the
body. In the gloom, the image was hazy. A white, fleshy outline. Facing the
other direction. Motionless. Silent.
Advancing through
the murkiness of the crypt, Langdon tried to make sense of what he was looking
at. The man had his back to Langdon, and Langdon could not see his face, but he
did indeed seem to be standing.
Hello? Langdon
choked through his sleeve. Nothing. As he drew nearer, he realized the man was
very short. Too short . . .
Whats
happening? Vittoria called from above, shifting the light.
Langdon did not
answer. He was now close enough to see it all. With a tremor of repulsion, he
understood. The chamber seemed to contract around him. Emerging like a demon
from the earthen floor was an old man . . . or at least half of him. He was
buried up to his waist in the earth. Standing upright with half of him below
ground. Stripped naked. His hands tied behind his back with a red cardinals
sash. He was propped limply upward, spine arched backward like some sort of
hideous punching bag. The mans head lay backward, eyes toward the heavens as
if pleading for help from God himself.
Is he dead?
Vittoria called.
Langdon moved
toward the body. I hope so, for his sake. As he drew to within a few feet, he
looked down at the upturned eyes. They bulged outward, blue and bloodshot.
Langdon leaned down to listen for breath but immediately recoiled. For
Christs sake!
What!
Langdon almost
gagged. Hes dead all right. I just saw the cause of death. The sight was
gruesome. The mans mouth had been jammed open and packed solid with dirt.
Somebody stuffed a fistful of dirt down his throat. He suffocated.
Dirt? Vittoria
said. As in . . . earth ?
Langdon did a
double take. Earth. He had almost forgotten. The brands. Earth, Air, Fire,
Water. The killer had threatened to brand each victim with one of the ancient
elements of science. The first element was Earth. From Santis earthly tomb.
Dizzy from the fumes, Langdon circled to the front of the body. As he did, the
symbologist within him loudly reasserted the artistic challenge of creating the
mythical ambigram. Earth? How? And yet, an instant later, it was before him.
Centuries of Illuminati legend whirled in his mind. The marking on the
cardinals chest was charred and oozing. The flesh was seared black. La lingua
pura . . .
Langdon stared at
the brand as the room began to spin.
Earth, he
whispered, tilting his head to see the symbol upside down. Earth.
Then, in a wave
of horror, he had one final cognition. There are three more.
68
Despite the soft
glow of candlelight in the Sistine Chapel, Cardinal Mortati was on edge.
Conclave had officially begun. And it had begun in a most inauspicious fashion.
Half an hour ago,
at the appointed hour, Camerlegno Carlo Ventresca had entered the chapel. He
walked to the front altar and gave opening prayer. Then, he unfolded his hands
and spoke to them in a tone as direct as anything Mortati had ever heard from
the altar of the Sistine.
You are well
aware, the camerlegno said, that our four preferiti are not present in
conclave at this moment. I ask, in the name of his late Holiness, that you
proceed as you must . . . with faith and purpose. May you have only God before
your eyes. Then he turned to go.
But, one
cardinal blurted out, where are they?
The camerlegno
paused. That I cannot honestly say.
When will they
return?
That I cannot
honestly say.
Are they okay?
That I cannot
honestly say.
Will they
return?
There was a long
pause.
Have faith, the
camerlegno said. Then he walked out of the room.
The doors to the
Sistine Chapel had been sealed, as was the custom, with two heavy chains on the
outside. Four Swiss Guards stood watch in the hallway beyond. Mortati knew the
only way the doors could be opened now, prior to electing a Pope, was if someone
inside fell deathly ill, or if the preferiti arrived. Mortati prayed it would
be the latter, although from the knot in his stomach he was not so sure.
Proceed as we
must, Mortati decided, taking his lead from the resolve in the camerlegnos
voice. So he had called for a vote. What else could he do?
It had taken
thirty minutes to complete the preparatory rituals leading up to this first
vote. Mortati had waited patiently at the main altar as each cardinal, in order
of seniority, had approached and performed the specific balloting procedure.
Now, at last, the
final cardinal had arrived at the altar and was kneeling before him.
I call as my
witness, the cardinal declared, exactly as those before him, Christ the Lord,
who will be my judge that my vote is given to the one who before God I think
should be elected.
The cardinal
stood up. He held his ballot high over his head for everyone to see. Then he
lowered the ballot to the altar, where a plate sat atop a large chalice. He
placed the ballot on the plate. Next he picked up the plate and used it to drop
the ballot into the chalice. Use of the plate was to ensure no one secretly
dropped multiple ballots.
After he had
submitted his ballot, he replaced the plate over the chalice, bowed to the
cross, and returned to his seat.
The final ballot
had been cast.
Now it was time
for Mortati to go to work.
Leaving the plate
on top of the chalice, Mortati shook the ballots to mix them. Then he removed
the plate and extracted a ballot at random. He unfolded it. The ballot was
exactly two inches wide. He read aloud for everyone to hear.
Eligo in summum
pontificem . . . he declared, reading the text that was embossed at the top of
every ballot. I elect as Supreme Pontiff . . . Then he announced the nominees
name that had been written beneath it. After he read the name, he raised a
threaded needle and pierced the ballot through the word Eligo, carefully
sliding the ballot onto the thread. Then he made note of the vote in a logbook.
Next, he repeated
the entire procedure. He chose a ballot from the chalice, read it aloud,
threaded it onto the line, and made note in his log. Almost immediately,
Mortati sensed this first vote would be failed. No consensus. After only seven
ballots, already seven different cardinals had been named. As was normal, the
handwriting on each ballot was disguised by block printing or flamboyant
script. The concealment was ironic in this case because the cardinals were
obviously submitting votes for themselves. This apparent conceit, Mortati knew,
had nothing to do with self centered ambition. It was a holding pattern. A
defensive maneuver. A stall tactic to ensure no cardinal received enough votes
to win . . . and another vote would be forced.
The cardinals
were waiting for their preferiti . . .
When the last of
the ballots had been tallied, Mortati declared the vote failed.
He took the
thread carrying all the ballots and tied the ends together to create a ring.
Then he lay the ring of ballots on a silver tray. He added the proper chemicals
and carried the tray to a small chimney behind him. Here he lit the ballots. As
the ballots burned, the chemicals hed added created black smoke. The smoke
flowed up a pipe to a hole in the roof where it rose above the chapel for all
to see. Cardinal Mortati had just sent his first communication to the outside
world.
One balloting. No
Pope.
69
Nearly
asphyxiated by fumes, Langdon struggled up the ladder toward the light at the
top of the pit. Above him he heard voices, but nothing was making sense. His
head was spinning with images of the branded cardinal.
Earth . . . Earth
. . .
As he pushed
upward, his vision narrowed and he feared consciousness would slip away. Two
rungs from the top, his balance faltered. He lunged upward trying to find the
lip, but it was too far. He lost his grip on the ladder and almost tumbled
backward into the dark. There was a sharp pain under his arms, and suddenly
Langdon was airborne, legs swinging wildly out over the chasm.
The strong hands
of two Swiss Guards hooked him under the armpits and dragged him skyward. A
moment later Langdons head emerged from the Demons hole, choking and gasping
for air. The guards dragged him over the lip of the opening, across the floor,
and lay him down, back against the cold marble floor.
For a moment, Langdon
was unsure where he was. Overhead he saw stars . . . orbiting planets. Hazy
figures raced past him. People were shouting. He tried to sit up. He was lying
at the base of a stone pyramid. The familiar bite of an angry tongue echoed
inside the chapel, and then Langdon knew.
Olivetti was
screaming at Vittoria. Why the hell didnt you figure that out in the first
place!
Vittoria was
trying to explain the situation.
Olivetti cut her
off midsentence and turned to bark orders to his men. Get that body out of
there! Search the rest of the building!
Langdon tried to
sit up. The Chigi Chapel was packed with Swiss Guards. The plastic curtain over
the chapel opening had been torn off the entryway, and fresh air filled
Langdons lungs. As his senses slowly returned, Langdon saw Vittoria coming
toward him. She knelt down, her face like an angel.
You okay?
Vittoria took his arm and felt his pulse. Her hands were tender on his skin.
Thanks. Langdon
sat up fully. Olivettis mad.
Vittoria nodded.
He has a right to be. We blew it.
You mean I blew
it.
So redeem
yourself. Get him next time.
Next time?
Langdon thought it was a cruel comment. There is no next time! We missed our
shot!
Vittoria checked
Langdons watch. Mickey says weve got forty minutes. Get your head together
and help me find the next marker.
I told you,
Vittoria, the sculptures are gone. The Path of Illumination is Langdon
halted.
Vittoria smiled
softly.
Suddenly Langdon
was staggering to his feet. He turned dizzying circles, staring at the artwork
around him. Pyramids, stars, planets, ellipses. Suddenly everything came back.
This is the first altar of science! Not the Pantheon! It dawned on him now how
perfectly Illuminati the chapel was, far more subtle and selective than the
world famous Pantheon. The Chigi was an out of the way alcove, a literal hole
in the wall, a tribute to a great patron of science, decorated with earthly
symbology. Perfect.
Langdon steadied
himself against the wall and gazed up at the enormous pyramid sculptures.
Vittoria was dead right. If this chapel was the first altar of science, it
might still contain the Illuminati sculpture that served as the first marker.
Langdon felt an electrifying rush of hope to realize there was still a chance.
If the marker were indeed here, and they could follow it to the next altar of
science, they might have another chance to catch the killer.
Vittoria moved
closer. I found out who the unknown Illuminati sculptor was.
Langdons head
whipped around. You what ?
Now we just need
to figure out which sculpture in here is the
Wait a minute!
You know who the Illuminati sculptor was? He had spent years trying to find
that information.
Vittoria smiled.
It was Bernini. She paused. The Bernini.
Langdon
immediately knew she was mistaken. Bernini was an impossibility. Gianlorenzo
Bernini was the second most famous sculptor of all time, his fame eclipsed only
by Michelangelo himself. During the 1600s Bernini created more sculptures than
any other artist. Unfortunately, the man they were looking for was supposedly
an unknown, a nobody.
Vittoria frowned.
You dont look excited.
Bernini is
impossible.
Why? Bernini was
a contemporary of Galileo. He was a brilliant sculptor.
He was a very
famous man and a Catholic.
Yes, Vittoria
said. Exactly like Galileo.
No, Langdon
argued. Nothing like Galileo. Galileo was a thorn in the Vaticans side.
Bernini was the Vaticans wonder boy. The church loved Bernini. He was elected
the Vaticans overall artistic authority. He practically lived inside Vatican
City his entire life!
A perfect cover.
Illuminati infiltration.
Langdon felt
flustered. Vittoria, the Illuminati members referred to their secret artist as
il maestro ignoto the unknown master.
Yes, unknown to
them. Think of the secrecy of the Masonsonly the upper echelon members knew
the whole truth. Galileo could have kept Berninis true identity secret from
most members . . . for Berninis own safety. That way, the Vatican would never
find out.
Langdon was
unconvinced but had to admit Vittorias logic made strange sense. The
Illuminati were famous for keeping secret information compartmentalized, only
revealing the truth to upper level members. It was the cornerstone of their
ability to stay secret . . . very few knew the whole story.
And Berninis
affiliation with the Illuminati, Vittoria added with a smile, explains why he
designed those two pyramids.
Langdon turned to
the huge sculpted pyramids and shook his head. Bernini was a religious sculptor.
Theres no way he carved those pyramids.
Vittoria
shrugged. Tell that to the sign behind you.
Langdon turned to
the plaque:
ART OF THE CHIGI
CHAPEL
While the
architecture is Raphaels, all interior adornments are those of Gianlorenzo
Bernini.
Langdon read the
plaque twice, and still he was not convinced. Gianlorenzo Bernini was
celebrated for his intricate, holy sculptures of the Virgin Mary, angels,
prophets, Popes. What was he doing carving pyramids ?
Langdon looked up
at the towering monuments and felt totally disoriented. Two pyramids, each with
a shining, elliptical medallion. They were about as un Christian as sculpture
could get. The pyramids, the stars above, the signs of the Zodiac. All interior
adornments are those of Gianlorenzo Bernini. If that were true, Langdon
realized, it meant Vittoria had to be right. By default, Bernini was the
Illuminatis unknown master; nobody else had contributed artwork to this
chapel! The implications came almost too fast for Langdon to process.
Bernini was an
Illuminatus.
Bernini designed
the Illuminati ambigrams.
Bernini laid out
the path of Illumination.
Langdon could
barely speak. Could it be that here in this tiny Chigi Chapel, the world
renowned Bernini had placed a sculpture that pointed across Rome toward the
next altar of science?
Bernini, he
said. I never would have guessed.
Who other than a
famous Vatican artist would have had the clout to put his artwork in specific
Catholic chapels around Rome and create the Path of Illumination? Certainly not
an unknown.
Langdon
considered it. He looked at the pyramids, wondering if one of them could
somehow be the marker. Maybe both of them? The pyramids face opposite
directions, Langdon said, not sure what to make of them. They are also
identical, so I dont know which . . .
I dont think
the pyramids are what were looking for.
But theyre the
only sculptures here.
Vittoria cut him
off by pointing toward Olivetti and some of his guards who were gathered near
the demons hole.
Langdon followed
the line of her hand to the far wall. At first he saw nothing. Then someone
moved and he caught a glimpse. White marble. An arm. A torso. And then a
sculpted face. Partially hidden in its niche. Two life size human figures
intertwined. Langdons pulse accelerated. He had been so taken with the
pyramids and demons hole, he had not even seen this sculpture. He moved across
the room, through the crowd. As he drew near, Langdon recognized the work was
pure Berninithe intensity of the artistic composition, the intricate faces and
flowing clothing, all from the purest white marble Vatican money could buy. It
was not until he was almost directly in front of it that Langdon recognized the
sculpture itself. He stared up at the two faces and gasped.
Who are they? Vittoria
urged, arriving behind him.
Langdon stood
astonished. Habakkuk and the Angel, he said, his voice almost inaudible. The
piece was a fairly well known Bernini work that was included in some art
history texts. Langdon had forgotten it was here.
Habakkuk?
Yes. The prophet
who predicted the annihilation of the earth.
Vittoria looked
uneasy. You think this is the marker?
Langdon nodded in
amazement. Never in his life had he been so sure of anything. This was the
first Illuminati marker. No doubt. Although Langdon had fully expected the
sculpture to somehow point to the next altar of science, he did not expect it
to be literal. Both the angel and Habakkuk had their arms outstretched and were
pointing into the distance.
Langdon found
himself suddenly smiling. Not too subtle, is it?
Vittoria looked
excited but confused. I see them pointing, but they are contradicting each
other. The angel is pointing one way, and the prophet the other.
Langdon chuckled.
It was true. Although both figures were pointing into the distance, they were
pointing in totally opposite directions. Langdon, however, had already solved
that problem. With a burst of energy he headed for the door.
Where are you
going? Vittoria called.
Outside the
building! Langdons legs felt light again as he ran toward the door. I need
to see what direction that sculpture is pointing!
Wait! How do you
know which finger to follow?
The poem, he
called over his shoulder. The last line!
Let angels
guide you on your lofty quest? She gazed upward at the outstretched finger of
the angel. Her eyes misted unexpectedly. Well Ill be damned!
70
Gunther Glick and
Chinita Macri sat parked in the BBC van in the shadows at the far end of Piazza
del Popolo. They had arrived shortly after the four Alpha Romeos, just in time
to witness an inconceivable chain of events. Chinita still had no idea what it
all meant, but shed made sure the camera was rolling.
As soon as theyd
arrived, Chinita and Glick had seen a veritable army of young men pour out of
the Alpha Romeos and surround the church. Some had weapons drawn. One of them,
a stiff older man, led a team up the front steps of the church. The soldiers
drew guns and blew the locks off the front doors. Macri heard nothing and
figured they must have had silencers. Then the soldiers entered.
Chinita had
recommended they sit tight and film from the shadows. After all, guns were
guns, and they had a clear view of the action from the van. Glick had not
argued. Now, across the piazza, men moved in and out of the church. They yelled
to each other. Chinita adjusted her camera to follow a team as they searched
the surrounding area. All of them, though dressed in civilian clothes, seemed
to move with military precision. Who do you think they are? she asked.
Hell if I know.
Glick looked riveted. You getting all this?
Every frame.
Glick sounded
smug. Still think we should go back to Pope Watch?
Chinita wasnt
sure what to say. There was obviously something going on here, but she had been
in journalism long enough to know that there was often a very dull explanation
for interesting events. This could be nothing, she said. These guys could
have gotten the same tip you got and are just checking it out. Could be a false
alarm.
Glick grabbed her
arm. Over there! Focus. He pointed back to the church.
Chinita swung the
camera back to the top of the stairs. Hello there, she said, training on the
man now emerging from the church.
Whos the dapper?
Chinita moved in
for a close up. Havent seen him before. She tightened in on the mans face
and smiled. But I wouldnt mind seeing him again.
Robert Langdon
dashed down the stairs outside the church and into the middle of the piazza. It
was getting dark now, the springtime sun setting late in southern Rome. The sun
had dropped below the surrounding buildings, and shadows streaked the square.
Okay, Bernini,
he said aloud to himself. Where the hell is your angel pointing?
He turned and
examined the orientation of the church from which he had just come. He pictured
the Chigi Chapel inside, and the sculpture of the angel inside that. Without
hesitation he turned due west, into the glow of the impending sunset. Time was
evaporating.
Southwest, he
said, scowling at the shops and apartments blocking his view. The next marker
is out there.
Racking his
brain, Langdon pictured page after page of Italian art history. Although very
familiar with Berninis work, Langdon knew the sculptor had been far too
prolific for any nonspecialist to know all of it. Still, considering the
relative fame of the first markerHabakkuk and the Angel Langdon hoped the
second marker was a work he might know from memory.
Earth, Air, Fire,
Water, he thought. Earth they had foundinside the Chapel of the
EarthHabakkuk, the prophet who predicted the earths annihilation.
Air is next.
Langdon urged himself to think. A Bernini sculpture that has something to do
with Air! He was drawing a total blank. Still he felt energized. Im on the
path of Illumination! It is still intact!
Looking
southwest, Langdon strained to see a spire or cathedral tower jutting up over
the obstacles. He saw nothing. He needed a map. If they could figure out what
churches were southwest of here, maybe one of them would spark Langdons
memory. Air, he pressed. Air. Bernini. Sculpture. Air. Think!
Langdon turned
and headed back up the cathedral stairs. He was met beneath the scaffolding by
Vittoria and Olivetti.
Southwest,
Langdon said, panting. The next church is southwest of here.
Olivettis
whisper was cold. You sure this time?
Langdon didnt
bite. We need a map. One that shows all the churches in Rome.
The commander
studied him a moment, his expression never changing.
Langdon checked
his watch. We only have half an hour.
Olivetti moved
past Langdon down the stairs toward his car, parked directly in front of the
cathedral. Langdon hoped he was going for a map.
Vittoria looked
excited. So the angels pointing southwest? No idea which churches are
southwest?
I cant see past
the damn buildings. Langdon turned and faced the square again. And I dont
know Romes churches well enou He stopped.
Vittoria looked
startled. What?
Langdon looked
out at the piazza again. Having ascended the church stairs, he was now higher,
and his view was better. He still couldnt see anything, but he realized he was
moving in the right direction. His eyes climbed the tower of rickety
scaffolding above him. It rose six stories, almost to the top of the churchs
rose window, far higher than the other buildings in the square. He knew in an
instant where he was headed.
Across the
square, Chinita Macri and Gunther Glick sat glued to the windshield of the BBC
van.
You getting
this? Gunther asked.
Macri tightened
her shot on the man now climbing the scaffolding. Hes a little well dressed
to be playing Spiderman if you ask me.
And whos Ms.
Spidey?
Chinita glanced
at the attractive woman beneath the scaffolding. Bet youd like to find out.
Think I should
call editorial?
Not yet. Lets
watch. Better to have something in the can before we admit we abandoned
conclave.
You think
somebody really killed one of the old farts in there?
Chinita clucked.
Youre definitely going to hell.
And Ill be
taking the Pulitzer with me.
71
The scaffolding
seemed less stable the higher Langdon climbed. His view of Rome, however, got
better with every step. He continued upward.
He was breathing
harder than he expected when he reached the upper tier. He pulled himself onto
the last platform, brushed off the plaster, and stood up. The height did not
bother him at all. In fact, it was invigorating.
The view was
staggering. Like an ocean on fire, the red tiled rooftops of Rome spread out
before him, glowing in the scarlet sunset. From that spot, for the first time
in his life, Langdon saw beyond the pollution and traffic of Rome to its
ancient rootsCitt di Dio The city of God.
Squinting into
the sunset, Langdon scanned the rooftops for a church steeple or bell tower.
But as he looked farther and farther toward the horizon, he saw nothing. There
are hundreds of churches in Rome, he thought. There must be one southwest of
here! If the church is even visible, he reminded himself. Hell, if the church
is even still standing!
Forcing his eyes
to trace the line slowly, he attempted the search again. He knew, of course,
that not all churches would have visible spires, especially smaller, out of the
way sanctuaries. Not to mention, Rome had changed dramatically since the 1600s
when churches were by law the tallest buildings allowed. Now, as Langdon looked
out, he saw apartment buildings, high rises, TV towers.
For the second
time, Langdons eye reached the horizon without seeing anything. Not one single
spire. In the distance, on the very edge of Rome, Michelangelos massive dome
blotted the setting sun. St. Peters Basilica. Vatican City. Langdon found
himself wondering how the cardinals were faring, and if the Swiss Guards
search had turned up the antimatter. Something told him it hadnt . . . and
wouldnt.
The poem was
rattling through his head again. He considered it, carefully, line by line.
From Santis earthly tomb with demons hole. They had found Santis tomb.
Cross Rome the mystic elements unfold. The mystic elements were Earth, Air,
Fire, Water. The path of light is laid, the sacred test. The path of
Illumination formed by Berninis sculptures. Let angels guide you on your lofty
quest.
The angel was
pointing southwest . . .
Front stairs!
Glick exclaimed, pointing wildly through the windshield of the BBC van.
Somethings going on!
Macri dropped her
shot back down to the main entrance. Something was definitely going on. At the
bottom of the stairs, the military looking man had pulled one of the Alpha
Romeos close to the stairs and opened the trunk. Now he was scanning the square
as if checking for onlookers. For a moment, Macri thought the man had spotted
them, but his eyes kept moving. Apparently satisfied, he pulled out a walkie
talkie and spoke into it.
Almost instantly,
it seemed an army emerged from the church. Like an American football team
breaking from a huddle, the soldiers formed a straight line across the top of
the stairs. Moving like a human wall, they began to descend. Behind them,
almost entirely hidden by the wall, four soldiers seemed to be carrying
something. Something heavy. Awkward.
Glick leaned
forward on the dashboard. Are they stealing something from the church?
Chinita tightened
her shot even more, using the telephoto to probe the wall of men, looking for
an opening. One split second, she willed. A single frame. Thats all I need.
But the men moved as one. Come on! Macri stayed with them, and it paid off. When
the soldiers tried to lift the object into the trunk, Macri found her opening.
Ironically, it was the older man who faltered. Only for an instant, but long
enough. Macri had her frame. Actually, it was more like ten frames.
Call editorial,
Chinita said. Weve got a dead body.
Far away, at
CERN, Maximilian Kohler maneuvered his wheelchair into Leonardo Vetras study.
With mechanical efficiency, he began sifting through Vetras files. Not finding
what he was after, Kohler moved to Vetras bedroom. The top drawer of his
bedside table was locked. Kohler pried it open with a knife from the kitchen.
Inside Kohler
found exactly what he was looking for.
72
Langdon swung off
the scaffolding and dropped back to the ground. He brushed the plaster dust
from his clothes. Vittoria was there to greet him.
No luck? she
said.
He shook his
head.
They put the
cardinal in the trunk.
Langdon looked
over to the parked car where Olivetti and a group of soldiers now had a map
spread out on the hood. Are they looking southwest?
She nodded. No
churches. From here the first one you hit is St. Peters.
Langdon grunted.
At least they were in agreement. He moved toward Olivetti. The soldiers parted
to let him through.
Olivetti looked
up. Nothing. But this doesnt show every last church. Just the big ones. About
fifty of them.
Where are we?
Langdon asked.
Olivetti pointed
to Piazza del Popolo and traced a straight line exactly southwest. The line
missed, by a substantial margin, the cluster of black squares indicating Romes
major churches. Unfortunately, Romes major churches were also Romes older
churches . . . those that would have been around in the 1600s.
Ive got some
decisions to make, Olivetti said. Are you certain of the direction?
Langdon pictured
the angels outstretched finger, the urgency rising in him again. Yes, sir.
Positive.
Olivetti shrugged
and traced the straight line again. The path intersected the Margherita Bridge,
Via Cola di Riezo, and passed through Piazza del Risorgimento, hitting no
churches at all until it dead ended abruptly at the center of St. Peters
Square.
Whats wrong
with St. Peters? one of the soldiers said. He had a deep scar under his left
eye. Its a church.
Langdon shook his
head. Needs to be a public place. Hardly seems public at the moment.
But the line
goes through St. Peters Square, Vittoria added, looking over Langdons
shoulder. The square is public.
Langdon had
already considered it. No statues, though.
Isnt there a
monolith in the middle?
She was right.
There was an Egyptian monolith in St. Peters Square. Langdon looked out at the
monolith in the piazza in front of them. The lofty pyramid. An odd coincidence,
he thought. He shook it off. The Vaticans monolith is not by Bernini. It was
brought in by Caligula. And it has nothing to do with Air. There was another
problem as well. Besides, the poem says the elements are spread across Rome.
St. Peters Square is in Vatican City. Not Rome.
Depends who you
ask, a guard interjected.
Langdon looked
up. What?
Always a bone of
contention. Most maps show St. Peters Square as part of Vatican City, but
because its outside the walled city, Roman officials for centuries have
claimed it as part of Rome.
Youre kidding,
Langdon said. He had never known that.
I only mention
it, the guard continued, because Commander Olivetti and Ms. Vetra were asking
about a sculpture that had to do with Air.
Langdon was wide
eyed. And you know of one in St. Peters Square?
Not exactly.
Its not really a sculpture. Probably not relevant.
Lets hear it,
Olivetti pressed.
The guard
shrugged. The only reason I know about it is because Im usually on piazza
duty. I know every corner of St. Peters Square.
The sculpture,
Langdon urged. What does it look like? Langdon was starting to wonder if the
Illuminati could really have been gutsy enough to position their second marker
right outside St. Peters Church.
I patrol past it
every day, the guard said. Its in the center, directly where that line is
pointing. Thats what made me think of it. As I said, its not really a
sculpture. Its more of a . . . block.
Olivetti looked
mad. A block?
Yes, sir. A
marble block embedded in the square. At the base of the monolith. But the block
is not a rectangle. Its an ellipse. And the block is carved with the image of
a billowing gust of wind. He paused. Air, I suppose, if you wanted to get
scientific about it.
Langdon stared at
the young soldier in amazement. A relief! he exclaimed suddenly.
Everyone looked
at him.
Relief, Langdon
said, is the other half of sculpture! Sculpture is the art of shaping figures
in the round and also in relief. He had written the definition on chalkboards
for years. Reliefs were essentially two dimensional sculptures, like Abraham
Lincolns profile on the penny. Berninis Chigi Chapel medallions were another
perfect example.
Bassorelievo?
the guard asked, using the Italian art term.
Yes! Bas relief!
Langdon rapped his knuckles on the hood. I wasnt thinking in those terms!
That tile youre talking about in St. Peters Square is called the West Ponente
the West Wind. Its also known as Respiro di Dio.
Breath of God?
Yes! Air! And it
was carved and put there by the original architect!
Vittoria looked
confused. But I thought Michelangelo designed St. Peters.
Yes, the
basilica ! Langdon exclaimed, triumph in his voice. But St. Peters Square
was designed by Bernini!
As the caravan of
Alpha Romeos tore out of Piazza del Popolo, everyone was in too much of a hurry
to notice the BBC van pulling out behind them.
73
Gunther Glick
floored the BBC vans accelerator and swerved through traffic as he tailed the
four speeding Alpha Romeos across the Tiber River on Ponte Margherita. Normally
Glick would have made an effort to maintain an inconspicuous distance, but
today he could barely keep up. These guys were flying.
Macri sat in her
work area in the back of the van finishing a phone call with London. She hung
up and yelled to Glick over the sound of the traffic. You want the good news
or bad news?
Glick frowned.
Nothing was ever simple when dealing with the home office. Bad news.
Editorial is
burned we abandoned our post.
Surprise.
They also think
your tipster is a fraud.
Of course.
And the boss
just warned me that youre a few crumpets short of a proper tea.
Glick scowled.
Great. And the good news?
They agreed to
look at the footage we just shot.
Glick felt his
scowl soften into a grin. I guess well see whos short a few crumpets. So
fire it off.
Cant transmit
until we stop and get a fixed cell read.
Glick gunned the
van onto Via Cola di Rienzo. Cant stop now. He tailed the Alpha Romeos
through a hard left swerve around Piazza Risorgimento.
Macri held on to
her computer gear in back as everything slid. Break my transmitter, she
warned, and well have to walk this footage to London.
Sit tight, love.
Something tells me were almost there.
Macri looked up.
Where?
Glick gazed out
at the familiar dome now looming directly in front of them. He smiled. Right
back where we started.
The four Alpha
Romeos slipped deftly into traffic surrounding St. Peters Square. They split
up and spread out along the piazza perimeter, quietly unloading men at select
points. The debarking guards moved into the throng of tourists and media vans
on the edge of the square and instantly became invisible. Some of the guards
entered the forest of pillars encompassing the colonnade. They too seemed to
evaporate into the surroundings. As Langdon watched through the windshield, he
sensed a noose tightening around St. Peters.
In addition to
the men Olivetti had just dispatched, the commander had radioed ahead to the
Vatican and sent additional undercover guards to the center where Berninis
West Ponente was located. As Langdon looked out at the wide open spaces of St.
Peters Square, a familiar question nagged. How does the Illuminati assassin
plan to get away with this? How will he get a cardinal through all these people
and kill him in plain view? Langdon checked his Mickey Mouse watch. It was 8:54
P.M. Six minutes.
In the front
seat, Olivetti turned and faced Langdon and Vittoria. I want you two right on
top of this Bernini brick or block or whatever the hell it is. Same drill.
Youre tourists. Use the phone if you see anything.
Before Langdon
could respond, Vittoria had his hand and was pulling him out of the car.
The springtime
sun was setting behind St. Peters Basilica, and a massive shadow spread,
engulfing the piazza. Langdon felt an ominous chill as he and Vittoria moved
into the cool, black umbra. Snaking through the crowd, Langdon found himself
searching every face they passed, wondering if the killer was among them.
Vittorias hand felt warm.
As they crossed
the open expanse of St. Peters Square, Langdon sensed Berninis sprawling
piazza having the exact effect the artist had been commissioned to createthat
of humbling all those who entered. Langdon certainly felt humbled at the
moment. Humbled and hungry, he realized, surprised such a mundane thought could
enter his head at a moment like this.
To the obelisk?
Vittoria asked.
Langdon nodded,
arching left across the piazza.
Time? Vittoria
asked, walking briskly, but casually.
Five of.
Vittoria said
nothing, but Langdon felt her grip tighten. He was still carrying the gun. He
hoped Vittoria would not decide she needed it. He could not imagine her
whipping out a weapon in St. Peters Square and blowing away the kneecaps of
some killer while the global media looked on. Then again, an incident like that
would be nothing compared to the branding and murder of a cardinal out here.
Air, Langdon
thought. The second element of science. He tried to picture the brand. The
method of murder. Again he scanned the sprawling expanse of granite beneath his
feetSt. Peters Squarean open desert surrounded by Swiss Guard. If the
Hassassin really dared attempt this, Langdon could not imagine how he would
escape.
In the center of
the piazza rose Caligulas 350 ton Egyptian obelisk. It stretched eighty one
feet skyward to the pyramidal apex onto which was affixed a hollow iron cross.
Sufficiently high to catch the last of the evening sun, the cross shone as if
magic . . . purportedly containing relics of the cross on which Christ was
crucified.
Two fountains
flanked the obelisk in perfect symmetry. Art historians knew the fountains
marked the exact geometric focal points of Berninis elliptical piazza, but it
was an architectural oddity Langdon had never really considered until today. It
seemed Rome was suddenly filled with ellipses, pyramids, and startling
geometry.
As they neared
the obelisk, Vittoria slowed. She exhaled heavily, as if coaxing Langdon to
relax along with her. Langdon made the effort, lowering his shoulders and
loosening his clenched jaw.
Somewhere around
the obelisk, boldly positioned outside the largest church in the world, was the
second altar of scienceBerninis West Ponente an elliptical block in St.
Peters Square.
Gunther Glick
watched from the shadows of the pillars surrounding St. Peters Square. On any
other day the man in the tweed jacket and the woman in khaki shorts would not
have interested him in the least. They appeared to be nothing but tourists
enjoying the square. But today was not any other day. Today had been a day of
phone tips, corpses, unmarked cars racing through Rome, and men in tweed
jackets climbing scaffolding in search of God only knew what. Glick would stay
with them.
He looked out
across the square and saw Macri. She was exactly where he had told her to go,
on the far side of the couple, hovering on their flank. Macri carried her video
camera casually, but despite her imitation of a bored member of the press, she
stood out more than Glick would have liked. No other reporters were in this far
corner of the square, and the acronym BBC stenciled on her camera was drawing
some looks from tourists.
The tape Macri
had shot earlier of the naked body dumped in the trunk was playing at this very
moment on the VCR transmitter back in the van. Glick knew the images were
sailing over his head right now en route to London. He wondered what editorial
would say.
He wished he and
Macri had reached the body sooner, before the army of plainclothed soldiers had
intervened. The same army, he knew, had now fanned out and surrounded this
piazza. Something big was about to happen.
The media is the
right arm of anarchy, the killer had said. Glick wondered if he had missed his
chance for a big scoop. He looked out at the other media vans in the distance
and watched Macri tailing the mysterious couple across the piazza. Something
told Glick he was still in the game . . .
74
Langdon saw what
he was looking for a good ten yards before they reached it. Through the
scattered tourists, the white marble ellipse of Berninis West Ponente stood
out against the gray granite cubes that made up the rest of the piazza.
Vittoria apparently saw it too. Her hand tensed.
Relax, Langdon
whispered. Do your piranha thing.
Vittoria loosened
her grip.
As they drew
nearer, everything seemed forbiddingly normal. Tourists wandered, nuns chatted
along the perimeter of the piazza, a girl fed pigeons at the base of the
obelisk.
Langdon refrained
from checking his watch. He knew it was almost time.
The elliptical stone
arrived beneath their feet, and Langdon and Vittoria slowed to a stopnot
overeagerlyjust two tourists pausing dutifully at a point of mild interest.
West Ponente,
Vittoria said, reading the inscription on the stone.
Langdon gazed
down at the marble relief and felt suddenly naive. Not in his art books, not in
his numerous trips to Rome, not ever had West Ponente s significance jumped
out at him.
Not until now.
The relief was
elliptical, about three feet long, and carved with a rudimentary facea depiction
of the West Wind as an angel like countenance. Gusting from the angels mouth,
Bernini had drawn a powerful breath of air blowing outward away from the
Vatican . . . the breath of God. This was Berninis tribute to the second
element . . . Air . . . an ethereal zephyr blown from angels lips. As Langdon
stared, he realized the significance of the relief went deeper still. Bernini
had carved the air in five distinct gusts . . . five! What was more, flanking
the medallion were two shining stars. Langdon thought of Galileo. Two stars,
five gusts, ellipses, symmetry . . . He felt hollow. His head hurt.
Vittoria began
walking again almost immediately, leading Langdon away from the relief. I
think someones following us, she said.
Langdon looked
up. Where?
Vittoria moved a
good thirty yards before speaking. She pointed up at the Vatican as if showing
Langdon something on the dome. The same person has been behind us all the way
across the square. Casually, Vittoria glanced over her shoulder. Still on us.
Keep moving.
You think its
the Hassassin?
Vittoria shook
her head. Not unless the Illuminati hires women with BBC cameras.
When the bells of
St. Peters began their deafening clamor, both Langdon and Vittoria jumped. It
was time. They had circled away from West Ponente in an attempt to lose the
reporter but were now moving back toward the relief.
Despite the
clanging bells, the area seemed perfectly calm. Tourists wandered. A homeless
drunk dozed awkwardly at the base of the obelisk. A little girl fed pigeons.
Langdon wondered if the reporter had scared the killer off. Doubtful, he
decided, recalling the killers promise. I will make your cardinals media
luminaries.
As the echo of
the ninth bell faded away, a peaceful silence descended across the square.
Then . . . the
little girl began to scream.
75
Langdon was the
first to reach the screaming girl.
The terrified
youngster stood frozen, pointing at the base of the obelisk where a shabby,
decrepit drunk sat slumped on the stairs. The man was a miserable sight . . .
apparently one of Romes homeless. His gray hair hung in greasy strands in
front of his face, and his entire body was wrapped in some sort of dirty cloth.
The girl kept screaming as she scampered off into the crowd.
Langdon felt an
upsurge of dread as he dashed toward the invalid. There was a dark, widening
stain spreading across the mans rags. Fresh, flowing blood.
Then, it was as
if everything happened at once.
The old man
seemed to crumple in the middle, tottering forward. Langdon lunged, but he was
too late. The man pitched forward, toppled off the stairs, and hit the pavement
facedown. Motionless.
Langdon dropped
to his knees. Vittoria arrived beside him. A crowd was gathering.
Vittoria put her
fingers on the mans throat from behind. Theres a pulse, she declared. Roll
him.
Langdon was
already in motion. Grasping the mans shoulders, he rolled the body. As he did,
the loose rags seemed to slough away like dead flesh. The man flopped limp onto
his back. Dead center of his naked chest was a wide area of charred flesh.
Vittoria gasped
and pulled back.
Langdon felt
paralyzed, pinned somewhere between nausea and awe. The symbol had a terrifying
simplicity to it.
Air, Vittoria
choked. Its . . . him.
Swiss Guards
appeared from out of nowhere, shouting orders, racing after an unseen assassin.
Nearby, a tourist
explained that only minutes ago, a dark skinned man had been kind enough to
help this poor, wheezing, homeless man across the square . . . even sitting a
moment on the stairs with the invalid before disappearing back into the crowd.
Vittoria ripped
the rest of the rags off the mans abdomen. He had two deep puncture wounds,
one on either side of the brand, just below his rib cage. She cocked the mans head
back and began to administer mouth to mouth. Langdon was not prepared for what
happened next. As Vittoria blew, the wounds on either side of the mans
midsection hissed and sprayed blood into the air like blowholes on a whale. The
salty liquid hit Langdon in the face.
Vittoria stopped
short, looking horrified. His lungs . . . she stammered. Theyre . . .
punctured.
Langdon wiped his
eyes as he looked down at the two perforations. The holes gurgled. The
cardinals lungs were destroyed. He was gone.
Vittoria covered
the body as the Swiss Guards moved in.
Langdon stood,
disoriented. As he did, he saw her. The woman who had been following them
earlier was crouched nearby. Her BBC video camera was shouldered, aimed, and
running. She and Langdon locked eyes, and he knew shed gotten it all. Then,
like a cat, she bolted.
76
Chinita Macri was
on the run. She had the story of her life.
Her video camera
felt like an anchor as she lumbered across St. Peters Square, pushing through
the gathering crowd. Everyone seemed to be moving in the opposite direction
than her . . . toward the commotion. Macri was trying to get as far away as
possible. The man in the tweed jacket had seen her, and now she sensed others
were after her, men she could not see, closing in from all sides.
Macri was still
aghast from the images she had just recorded. She wondered if the dead man was
really who she feared he was. Glicks mysterious phone contact suddenly seemed
a little less crazy.
As she hurried in
the direction of the BBC van, a young man with a decidedly militaristic air
emerged from the crowd before her. Their eyes met, and they both stopped. Like
lightning, he raised a walkie talkie and spoke into it. Then he moved toward
her. Macri wheeled and doubled back into the crowd, her heart pounding.
As she stumbled
through the mass of arms and legs, she removed the spent video cassette from
her camera. Cellulose gold, she thought, tucking the tape under her belt flush
to her backside and letting her coat tails cover it. For once she was glad she
carried some extra weight. Glick, where the hell are you!
Another soldier
appeared to her left, closing in. Macri knew she had little time. She banked
into the crowd again. Yanking a blank cartridge from her case, she slapped it
into the camera. Then she prayed.
She was thirty
yards from the BBC van when the two men materialized directly in front of her,
arms folded. She was going nowhere.
Film, one
snapped. Now.
Macri recoiled,
wrapping her arms protectively around her camera. No chance.
One of the men
pulled aside his jacket, revealing a sidearm.
So shoot me,
Macri said, amazed by the boldness of her voice.
Film, the first
one repeated.
Where the devil
is Glick? Macri stamped her foot and yelled as loudly as possible, I am a
professional videographer with the BBC! By Article 12 of the Free Press Act,
this film is property of the British Broadcast Corporation!
The men did not
flinch. The one with the gun took a step toward her. I am a lieutenant with
the Swiss Guard, and by the Holy Doctrine governing the property on which you
are now standing, you are subject to search and seizure.
A crowd had
started to gather now around them.
Macri yelled, I
will not under any circumstances give you the film in this camera without
speaking to my editor in London. I suggest you
The guards ended
it. One yanked the camera out of her hands. The other forcibly grabbed her by
the arm and twisted her in the direction of the Vatican. Grazie, he said,
leading her through a jostling crowd.
Macri prayed they
would not search her and find the tape. If she could somehow protect the film
long enough to
Suddenly, the
unthinkable happened. Someone in the crowd was groping under her coat. Macri
felt the video yanked away from her. She wheeled, but swallowed her words.
Behind her, a breathless Gunther Glick gave her a wink and dissolved back into
the crowd.
77
Robert Langdon
staggered into the private bathroom adjoining the Office of the Pope. He dabbed
the blood from his face and lips. The blood was not his own. It was that of
Cardinal Lamassé, who had just died horribly in the crowded square
outside the Vatican. Virgin sacrifices on the altars of science. So far, the
Hassassin had made good on his threat.
Langdon felt
powerless as he gazed into the mirror. His eyes were drawn, and stubble had
begun to darken his cheeks. The room around him was immaculate and lavishblack
marble with gold fixtures, cotton towels, and scented hand soaps.
Langdon tried to
rid his mind of the bloody brand he had just seen. Air. The image stuck. He had
witnessed three ambigrams since waking up this morning . . . and he knew there
were two more coming.
Outside the door,
it sounded as if Olivetti, the camerlegno, and Captain Rocher were debating
what to do next. Apparently, the antimatter search had turned up nothing so
far. Either the guards had missed the canister, or the intruder had gotten
deeper inside the Vatican than Commander Olivetti had been willing to
entertain.
Langdon dried his
hands and face. Then he turned and looked for a urinal. No urinal. Just a bowl.
He lifted the lid.
As he stood
there, tension ebbing from his body, a giddy wave of exhaustion shuddered
through his core. The emotions knotting his chest were so many, so incongruous.
He was fatigued, running on no food or sleep, walking the Path of Illumination,
traumatized by two brutal murders. Langdon felt a deepening horror over the
possible outcome of this drama.
Think, he told
himself. His mind was blank.
As he flushed, an
unexpected realization hit him. This is the Popes toilet, he thought. I just
took a leak in the Popes toilet. He had to chuckle. The Holy Throne.
78
In London, a BBC
technician ejected a video cassette from a satellite receiver unit and dashed
across the control room floor. She burst into the office of the editor in
chief, slammed the video into his VCR, and pressed play.
As the tape
rolled, she told him about the conversation she had just had with Gunther Glick
in Vatican City. In addition, BBC photo archives had just given her a positive
ID on the victim in St. Peters Square.
When the editor
in chief emerged from his office, he was ringing a cowbell. Everything in
editorial stopped.
Live in five!
the man boomed. On air talent to prep! Media coordinators, I want your
contacts on line! Weve got a story were selling! And weve got film!
The market
coordinators grabbed their Rolodexes.
Film specs! one
of them yelled.
Thirty second
trim, the chief replied.
Content?
Live homicide.
The coordinators
looked encouraged. Usage and licensing price?
A million U.S.
per.
Heads shot up.
What!
You heard me! I
want top of the food chain. CNN, MSNBC, then the big three! Offer a dial in
preview. Give them five minutes to piggyback before BBC runs it.
What the hell
happened? someone demanded. The prime minister get skinned alive?
The chief shook
his head. Better.
At that exact
instant, somewhere in Rome, the Hassassin enjoyed a fleeting moment of repose
in a comfortable chair. He admired the legendary chamber around him. I am
sitting in the Church of Illumination, he thought. The Illuminati lair. He
could not believe it was still here after all of these centuries.
Dutifully, he
dialed the BBC reporter to whom he had spoken earlier. It was time. The world
had yet to hear the most shocking news of all.
79
Vittoria Vetra
sipped a glass of water and nibbled absently at some tea scones just set out by
one of the Swiss Guards. She knew she should eat, but she had no appetite. The
Office of the Pope was bustling now, echoing with tense conversations. Captain
Rocher, Commander Olivetti, and half a dozen guards assessed the damage and
debated the next move.
Robert Langdon
stood nearby staring out at St. Peters Square. He looked dejected. Vittoria
walked over. Ideas?
He shook his
head.
Scone?
His mood seemed
to brighten at the sight of food. Hell yes. Thanks. He ate voraciously.
The conversation
behind them went quiet suddenly when two Swiss Guards escorted Camerlegno
Ventresca through the door. If the chamberlain had looked drained before,
Vittoria thought, now he looked empty.
What happened?
the camerlegno said to Olivetti. From the look on the camerlegnos face, he
appeared to have already been told the worst of it.
Olivettis
official update sounded like a battlefield casualty report. He gave the facts
with flat efficacy. Cardinal Ebner was found dead in the church of Santa Maria
del Popolo just after eight oclock. He had been suffocated and branded with
the ambigrammatic word Earth. Cardinal Lamassé was murdered in St.
Peters Square ten minutes ago. He died of perforations to the chest. He was
branded with the word Air, also ambigrammatic. The killer escaped in both
instances.
The camerlegno
crossed the room and sat heavily behind the Popes desk. He bowed his head.
Cardinals
Guidera and Baggia, however, are still alive.
The camerlegnos
head shot up, his expression pained. This is our consolation? Two cardinals
have been murdered, commander. And the other two will obviously not be alive
much longer unless you find them.
We will find
them, Olivetti assured. I am encouraged.
Encouraged?
Weve had nothing but failure.
Untrue. Weve
lost two battles, signore, but were winning the war. The Illuminati had
intended to turn this evening into a media circus. So far we have thwarted
their plan. Both cardinals bodies have been recovered without incident. In
addition, Olivetti continued, Captain Rocher tells me he is making excellent
headway on the antimatter search.
Captain Rocher
stepped forward in his red beret. Vittoria thought he looked more human somehow
than the other guardsstern but not so rigid. Rochers voice was emotional and
crystalline, like a violin. I am hopeful we will have the canister for you
within an hour, signore.
Captain, the
camerlegno said, excuse me if I seem less than hopeful, but I was under the
impression that a search of Vatican City would take far more time than we
have.
A full search,
yes. However, after assessing the situation, I am confident the antimatter
canister is located in one of our white zonesthose Vatican sectors accessible
to public toursthe museums and St. Peters Basilica, for example. We have
already killed power in those zones and are conducting our scan.
You intend to
search only a small percentage of Vatican City?
Yes, signore. It
is highly unlikely that an intruder gained access to the inner zones of Vatican
City. The fact that the missing security camera was stolen from a public access
areaa stairwell in one of the museumsclearly implies that the intruder had
limited access. Therefore he would only have been able to relocate the camera
and antimatter in another public access area. It is these areas on which we are
focusing our search.
But the intruder
kidnapped four cardinals. That certainly implies deeper infiltration than we
thought.
Not necessarily.
We must remember that the cardinals spent much of today in the Vatican museums
and St. Peters Basilica, enjoying those areas without the crowds. It is
probable that the missing cardinals were taken in one of these areas.
But how were
they removed from our walls?
We are still
assessing that.
I see. The
camerlegno exhaled and stood up. He walked over to Olivetti. Commander, I
would like to hear your contingency plan for evacuation.
We are still
formalizing that, signore. In the meantime, I am faithful Captain Rocher will
find the canister.
Rocher clicked
his boots as if in appreciation of the vote of confidence. My men have already
scanned two thirds of the white zones. Confidence is high.
The camerlegno
did not appear to share that confidence.
At that moment
the guard with a scar beneath one eye came through the door carrying a
clipboard and a map. He strode toward Langdon. Mr. Langdon? I have the
information you requested on the West Ponente.
Langdon swallowed
his scone. Good. Lets have a look.
The others kept
talking while Vittoria joined Robert and the guard as they spread out the map
on the Popes desk.
The soldier
pointed to St. Peters Square. This is where we are. The central line of West
Ponente s breath points due east, directly away from Vatican City. The guard
traced a line with his finger from St. Peters Square across the Tiber River
and up into the heart of old Rome. As you can see, the line passes through almost
all of Rome. There are about twenty Catholic churches that fall near this
line.
Langdon slumped.
Twenty?
Maybe more.
Do any of the
churches fall directly on the line?
Some look closer
than others, the guard said, but translating the exact bearing of the West
Ponente onto a map leaves margin for error.
Langdon looked
out at St. Peters Square a moment. Then he scowled, stroking his chin. How
about fire ? Any of them have Bernini artwork that has to do with fire?
Silence.
How about
obelisks? he demanded. Are any of the churches located near obelisks?
The guard began
checking the map.
Vittoria saw a
glimmer of hope in Langdons eyes and realized what he was thinking. Hes
right! The first two markers had been located on or near piazzas that contained
obelisks! Maybe obelisks were a theme? Soaring pyramids marking the Illuminati
path? The more Vittoria thought about it, the more perfect it seemed . . . four
towering beacons rising over Rome to mark the altars of science.
Its a long
shot, Langdon said, but I know that many of Romes obelisks were erected or
moved during Berninis reign. He was no doubt involved in their placement.
Or, Vittoria
added, Bernini could have placed his markers near existing obelisks.
Langdon nodded.
True.
Bad news, the
guard said. No obelisks on the line. He traced his finger across the map.
None even remotely close. Nothing.
Langdon sighed.
Vittorias
shoulders slumped. Shed thought it was a promising idea. Apparently, this was
not going to be as easy as theyd hoped. She tried to stay positive. Robert,
think. You must know of a Bernini statue relating to fire. Anything at all.
Believe me, Ive
been thinking. Bernini was incredibly prolific. Hundreds of works. I was hoping
West Ponente would point to a single church. Something that would ring a bell.
Fuòco,
she pressed. Fire. No Bernini titles jump out?
Langdon shrugged.
Theres his famous sketches of Fireworks, but theyre not sculpture, and
theyre in Leipzig, Germany.
Vittoria frowned.
And youre sure the breath is what indicates the direction?
You saw the
relief, Vittoria. The design was totally symmetrical. The only indication of
bearing was the breath.
Vittoria knew he
was right.
Not to mention,
he added, because the West Ponente signifies Air, following the breath seems
symbolically appropriate.
Vittoria nodded.
So we follow the breath. But where?
Olivetti came
over. What have you got?
Too many
churches, the soldier said. Two dozen or so. I suppose we could put four men
on each church
Forget it,
Olivetti said. We missed this guy twice when we knew exactly where he was
going to be. A mass stakeout means leaving Vatican City unprotected and
canceling the search.
We need a
reference book, Vittoria said. An index of Berninis work. If we can scan
titles, maybe something will jump out.
I dont know,
Langdon said. If its a work Bernini created specifically for the Illuminati,
it may be very obscure. It probably wont be listed in a book.
Vittoria refused
to believe it. The other two sculptures were fairly well known. Youd heard of
them both.
Langdon shrugged.
Yeah.
If we scan
titles for references to the word fire, maybe well find a statue thats
listed as being in the right direction.
Langdon seemed
convinced it was worth a shot. He turned to Olivetti. I need a list of all
Berninis work. You guys probably dont have a coffee table Bernini book around
here, do you?
Coffee table
book? Olivetti seemed unfamiliar with the term.
Never mind. Any
list. How about the Vatican Museum? They must have Bernini references.
The guard with
the scar frowned. Power in the museum is out, and the records room is
enormous. Without the staff there to help
The Bernini work
in question, Olivetti interrupted. Would it have been created while Bernini
was employed here at the Vatican?
Almost
definitely, Langdon said. He was here almost his entire career. And certainly
during the time period of the Galileo conflict.
Olivetti nodded.
Then theres another reference.
Vittoria felt a
flicker of optimism. Where?
The commander did
not reply. He took his guard aside and spoke in hushed tones. The guard seemed
uncertain but nodded obediently. When Olivetti was finished talking, the guard
turned to Langdon.
This way please,
Mr. Langdon. Its nine fifteen. Well have to hurry.
Langdon and the
guard headed for the door.
Vittoria started
after them. Ill help.
Olivetti caught
her by the arm. No, Ms. Vetra. I need a word with you. His grasp was
authoritative.
Langdon and the
guard left. Olivettis face was wooden as he took Vittoria aside. But whatever
it was Olivetti had intended to say to her, he never got the chance. His walkie
talkie crackled loudly. Commandante?
Everyone in the
room turned.
The voice on the
transmitter was grim. I think you better turn on the television.
80
When Langdon had
left the Vatican Secret Archives only two hours ago, he had never imagined he
would see them again. Now, winded from having jogged the entire way with his
Swiss Guard escort, Langdon found himself back at the archives once again.
His escort, the
guard with the scar, now led Langdon through the rows of translucent cubicles.
The silence of the archives felt somehow more forbidding now, and Langdon was
thankful when the guard broke it.
Over here, I
think, he said, escorting Langdon to the back of the chamber where a series of
smaller vaults lined the wall. The guard scanned the titles on the vaults and
motioned to one of them. Yes, here it is. Right where the commander said it
would be.
Langdon read the
title. Attivi Vaticani. Vatican assets? He scanned the list of contents. Real
estate . . . currency . . . Vatican Bank . . . antiquities . . . The list went
on.
Paperwork of all
Vatican assets, the guard said.
Langdon looked at
the cubicle. Jesus. Even in the dark, he could tell it was packed.
My commander
said that whatever Bernini created while under Vatican patronage would be
listed here as an asset.
Langdon nodded,
realizing the commanders instincts just might pay off. In Berninis day,
everything an artist created while under the patronage of the Pope became, by
law, property of the Vatican. It was more like feudalism than patronage, but
top artists lived well and seldom complained. Including works placed in
churches outside Vatican City?
The soldier gave
him an odd look. Of course. All Catholic churches in Rome are property of the
Vatican.
Langdon looked at
the list in his hand. It contained the names of the twenty or so churches that
were located on a direct line with West Ponente s breath. The third altar of
science was one of them, and Langdon hoped he had time to figure out which it
was. Under other circumstances, he would gladly have explored each church in
person. Today, however, he had about twenty minutes to find what he was looking
forthe one church containing a Bernini tribute to fire.
Langdon walked to
the vaults electronic revolving door. The guard did not follow. Langdon sensed
an uncertain hesitation. He smiled. The airs fine. Thin, but breathable.
My orders are to
escort you here and then return immediately to the security center.
Youre leaving
?
Yes. The Swiss
Guard are not allowed inside the archives. I am breaching protocol by escorting
you this far. The commander reminded me of that.
Breaching
protocol? Do you have any idea what is going on here tonight? Whose side is
your damn commander on!
All friendliness
disappeared from the guards face. The scar under his eye twitched. The guard
stared, looking suddenly a lot like Olivetti himself.
I apologize,
Langdon said, regretting the comment. Its just . . . I could use some help.
The guard did not
blink. I am trained to follow orders. Not debate them. When you find what you
are looking for, contact the commander immediately.
Langdon was
flustered. But where will he be?
The guard removed
his walkie talkie and set it on a nearby table. Channel one. Then he
disappeared into the dark.
81
The television in
the Office of the Pope was an oversized Hitachi hidden in a recessed cabinet
opposite his desk. The doors to the cabinet were now open, and everyone
gathered around. Vittoria moved in close. As the screen warmed up, a young
female reporter came into view. She was a doe eyed brunette.
For MSNBC news,
she announced, this is Kelly Horan Jones, live from Vatican City. The image
behind her was a night shot of St. Peters Basilica with all its lights
blazing.
Youre not
live, Rocher snapped. Thats stock footage! The lights in the basilica are
out.
Olivetti silenced
him with a hiss.
The reporter
continued, sounding tense. Shocking developments in the Vatican elections this
evening. We have reports that two members of the College of Cardinals have been
brutally murdered in Rome.
Olivetti swore
under his breath.
As the reporter
continued, a guard appeared at the door, breathless. Commander, the central
switchboard reports every line lit. Theyre requesting our official position
on
Disconnect it,
Olivetti said, never taking his eyes from the TV.
The guard looked
uncertain. But, commander
Go!
The guard ran
off.
Vittoria sensed
the camerlegno had wanted to say something but had stopped himself. Instead,
the man stared long and hard at Olivetti before turning back to the television.
MSNBC was now
running tape. The Swiss Guards carried the body of Cardinal Ebner down the
stairs outside Santa Maria del Popolo and lifted him into an Alpha Romeo. The
tape froze and zoomed in as the cardinals naked body became visible just
before they deposited him in the trunk of the car.
Who the hell
shot this footage? Olivetti demanded.
The MSNBC
reporter kept talking. This is believed to be the body of Cardinal Ebner of
Frankfurt, Germany. The men removing his body from the church are believed to
be Vatican Swiss Guard. The reporter looked like she was making every effort
to appear appropriately moved. They closed in on her face, and she became even
more somber. At this time, MSNBC would like to issue our viewers a
discretionary warning. The images we are about to show are exceptionally vivid and
may not be suitable for all audiences.
Vittoria grunted
at the stations feigned concern for viewer sensibility, recognizing the
warning as exactly what it wasthe ultimate media teaser line. Nobody ever
changed channels after a promise like that.
The reporter
drove it home. Again, this footage may be shocking to some viewers.
What footage?
Olivetti demanded. You just showed
The shot that
filled the screen was of a couple in St. Peters Square, moving through the
crowd. Vittoria instantly recognized the two people as Robert and herself. In
the corner of the screen was a text overlay: Courtesy of the BBC. A bell was
tolling.
Oh, no,
Vittoria said aloud. Oh . . . no.
The camerlegno
looked confused. He turned to Olivetti. I thought you said you confiscated
this tape!
Suddenly, on
television, a child was screaming. The image panned to find a little girl
pointing at what appeared to be a bloody homeless man. Robert Langdon entered
abruptly into the frame, trying to help the little girl. The shot tightened.
Everyone in the
Popes office stared in horrified silence as the drama unfolded before them.
The cardinals body fell face first onto the pavement. Vittoria appeared and
called orders. There was blood. A brand. A ghastly, failed attempt to administer
CPR.
This astonishing
footage, the reporter was saying, was shot only minutes ago outside the
Vatican. Our sources tell us this is the body of Cardinal Lamassé from
France. How he came to be dressed this way and why he was not in conclave
remain a mystery. So far, the Vatican has refused to comment. The tape began
to roll again.
Refused
comment? Rocher said. Give us a damn minute!
The reporter was
still talking, her eyebrows furrowing with intensity. Although MSNBC has yet
to confirm a motive for the attack, our sources tell us that responsibility for
the murders has been claimed by a group calling themselves the Illuminati.
Olivetti
exploded. What!
. . . find out
more about the Illuminati by visiting our website at
Non é
posibile! Olivetti declared. He switched channels.
This station had
a Hispanic male reporter. a satanic cult known as the Illuminati, who some
historians believe
Olivetti began
pressing the remote wildly. Every channel was in the middle of a live update.
Most were in English.
Swiss Guards
removing a body from a church earlier this evening. The body is believed to be
that of Cardinal
lights in the
basilica and museums are extinguished leaving speculation
will be
speaking with conspiracy theorist Tyler Tingley, about this shocking
resurgence
rumors of two
more assassinations planned for later this evening
questioning now
whether papal hopeful Cardinal Baggia is among the missing
Vittoria turned
away. Everything was happening so fast. Outside the window, in the settling
dark, the raw magnetism of human tragedy seemed to be sucking people toward
Vatican City. The crowd in the square thickened almost by the instant.
Pedestrians streamed toward them while a new batch of media personnel unloaded
vans and staked their claim in St. Peters Square.
Olivetti set down
the remote control and turned to the camerlegno. Signore, I cannot imagine how
this could happen. We took the tape that was in that camera!
The camerlegno
looked momentarily too stunned to speak.
Nobody said a
word. The Swiss Guards stood rigid at attention.
It appears, the
camerlegno said finally, sounding too devastated to be angry, that we have not
contained this crisis as well as I was led to believe. He looked out the
window at the gathering masses. I need to make an address.
Olivetti shook
his head. No, signore. That is exactly what the Illuminati want you to
doconfirm them, empower them. We must remain silent.
And these people?
The camerlegno pointed out the window. There will be tens of thousands
shortly. Then hundreds of thousands. Continuing this charade only puts them in
danger. I need to warn them. Then we need to evacuate our College of
Cardinals.
There is still
time. Let Captain Rocher find the antimatter.
The camerlegno
turned. Are you attempting to give me an order?
No, I am giving
you advice. If you are concerned about the people outside, we can announce a
gas leak and clear the area, but admitting we are hostage is dangerous.
Commander, I
will only say this once. I will not use this office as a pulpit to lie to the
world. If I announce anything at all, it will be the truth.
The truth? That
Vatican City is threatened to be destroyed by satanic terrorists? It only
weakens our position.
The camerlegno
glared. How much weaker could our position be?
Rocher shouted
suddenly, grabbing the remote and increasing the volume on the television.
Everyone turned.
On air, the woman
from MSNBC now looked genuinely unnerved. Superimposed beside her was a photo
of the late Pope. . . . breaking information. This just in from the BBC . . .
She glanced off camera as if to confirm she was really supposed to make this
announcement. Apparently getting confirmation, she turned and grimly faced the
viewers. The Illuminati have just claimed responsibility for . . . She
hesitated. They have claimed responsibility for the death of the Pope fifteen
days ago.
The camerlegnos
jaw fell.
Rocher dropped
the remote control.
Vittoria could
barely process the information.
By Vatican law,
the woman continued, no formal autopsy is ever performed on a Pope, so the
Illuminati claim of murder cannot be confirmed. Nonetheless, the Illuminati
hold that the cause of the late Popes death was not a stroke as the Vatican
reported, but poisoning.
The room went
totally silent again.
Olivetti erupted.
Madness! A bold faced lie!
Rocher began
flipping channels again. The bulletin seemed to spread like a plague from
station to station. Everyone had the same story. Headlines competed for optimal
sensationalism.
Murder at the
Vatican
Pope Poisoned
Satan Touches
House of God
The camerlegno
looked away. God help us.
As Rocher
flipped, he passed a BBC station. tipped me off about the killing at Santa
Maria de Popolo
Wait! the
camerlegno said. Back.
Rocher went back.
On screen, a prim looking man sat at a BBC news desk. Superimposed over his
shoulder was a still snapshot of an odd looking man with a red beard.
Underneath his photo, it said:
Gunther
GlickLive in Vatican City
Reporter Glick
was apparently reporting by phone, the connection scratchy. . . . my
videographer got the footage of the cardinal being removed from the Chigi
Chapel.
Let me reiterate
for our viewers, the anchorman in London was saying, BBC reporter Gunther
Glick is the man who first broke this story. He has been in phone contact twice
now with the alleged Illuminati assassin. Gunther, you say the assassin phoned
only moments ago to pass along a message from the Illuminati?
He did.
And their
message was that the Illuminati were somehow responsible for the Popes death?
The anchorman sounded incredulous.
Correct. The
caller told me that the Popes death was not a stroke, as the Vatican had
thought, but rather that the Pope had been poisoned by the Illuminati.
Everyone in the
Popes office froze.
Poisoned? the
anchorman demanded. But . . . but how !
They gave no
specifics, Glick replied, except to say that they killed him with a drug
known as . . .there was a rustling of papers on the linesomething known as
Heparin.
The camerlegno,
Olivetti, and Rocher all exchanged confused looks.
Heparin? Rocher
demanded, looking unnerved. But isnt that . . . ?
The camerlegno
blanched. The Popes medication.
Vittoria was
stunned. The Pope was on Heparin?
He had
thrombophlebitis, the camerlegno said. He took an injection once a day.
Rocher looked
flabbergasted. But Heparin isnt a poison. Why would the Illuminati claim
Heparin is
lethal in the wrong dosages, Vittoria offered. Its a powerful anticoagulant.
An overdose would cause massive internal bleeding and brain hemorrhages.
Olivetti eyed her
suspiciously. How would you know that?
Marine
biologists use it on sea mammals in captivity to prevent blood clotting from
decreased activity. Animals have died from improper administration of the
drug. She paused. A Heparin overdose in a human would cause symptoms easily
mistaken for a stroke . . . especially in the absence of a proper autopsy.
The camerlegno
now looked deeply troubled.
Signore,
Olivetti said, this is obviously an Illuminati ploy for publicity. Someone
overdosing the Pope would be impossible. Nobody had access. And even if we take
the bait and try to refute their claim, how could we? Papal law prohibits
autopsy. Even with an autopsy, we would learn nothing. We would find traces of
Heparin in his body from his daily injections.
True. The
camerlegnos voice sharpened. And yet something else troubles me. No one on
the outside knew His Holiness was taking this medication.
There was a
silence.
If he overdosed
with Heparin, Vittoria said, his body would show signs.
Olivetti spun
toward her. Ms. Vetra, in case you didnt hear me, papal autopsies are
prohibited by Vatican Law. We are not about to defile His Holinesss body by
cutting him open just because an enemy makes a taunting claim!
Vittoria felt
shamed. I was not implying . . . She had not meant to seem disrespectful. I
certainly was not suggesting you exhume the Pope . . . She hesitated, though.
Something Robert told her in the Chigi passed like a ghost through her mind. He
had mentioned that papal sarcophagi were above ground and never cemented shut,
a throwback to the days of the pharaohs when sealing and burying a casket was
believed to trap the deceaseds soul inside. Gravity had become the mortar of
choice, with coffin lids often weighing hundreds of pounds. Technically, she
realized, it would be possible to
What sort of
signs? the camerlegno said suddenly.
Vittoria felt her
heart flutter with fear. Overdoses can cause bleeding of the oral mucosa.
Oral what?
The victims
gums would bleed. Post mortem, the blood congeals and turns the inside of the
mouth black. Vittoria had once seen a photo taken at an aquarium in London
where a pair of killer whales had been mistakenly overdosed by their trainer.
The whales floated lifeless in the tank, their mouths hanging open and their
tongues black as soot.
The camerlegno
made no reply. He turned and stared out the window.
Rochers voice
had lost its optimism. Signore, if this claim about poisoning is true . . .
Its not true,
Olivetti declared. Access to the Pope by an outsider is utterly impossible.
If this claim is
true, Rocher repeated, and our Holy Father was poisoned, then that has
profound implications for our antimatter search. The alleged assassination
implies a much deeper infiltration of Vatican City than we had imagined.
Searching the white zones may be inadequate. If we are compromised to such a
deep extent, we may not find the canister in time.
Olivetti leveled
his captain with a cold stare. Captain, I will tell you what is going to
happen.
No, the
camerlegno said, turning suddenly. I will tell you what is going to happen.
He looked directly at Olivetti. This has gone far enough. In twenty minutes I
will be making a decision whether or not to cancel conclave and evacuate
Vatican City. My decision will be final. Is that clear?
Olivetti did not
blink. Nor did he respond.
The camerlegno
spoke forcefully now, as though tapping a hidden reserve of power. Captain
Rocher, you will complete your search of the white zones and report directly to
me when you are finished.
Rocher nodded,
throwing Olivetti an uneasy glance.
The camerlegno
then singled out two guards. I want the BBC reporter, Mr. Glick, in this
office immediately. If the Illuminati have been communicating with him, he may
be able to help us. Go.
The two soldiers
disappeared.
Now the
camerlegno turned and addressed the remaining guards. Gentlemen, I will not
permit any more loss of life this evening. By ten oclock you will locate the
remaining two cardinals and capture the monster responsible for these murders.
Do I make myself understood?
But, signore,
Olivetti argued, we have no idea where
Mr. Langdon is
working on that. He seems capable. I have faith.
With that, the
camerlegno strode for the door, a new determination in his step. On his way
out, he pointed to three guards. You three, come with me. Now.
The guards
followed.
In the doorway,
the camerlegno stopped. He turned to Vittoria. Ms. Vetra. You too. Please come
with me.
Vittoria
hesitated. Where are we going?
He headed out the
door. To see an old friend.
82
At CERN,
secretary Sylvie Baudeloque was hungry, wishing she could go home. To her
dismay, Kohler had apparently survived his trip to the infirmary; he had phoned
and demanded not asked, demandedthat Sylvie stay late this evening. No
explanation.
Over the years,
Sylvie had programmed herself to ignore Kohlers bizarre mood swings and
eccentricitieshis silent treatments, his unnerving propensity to secretly film
meetings with his wheelchairs porta video. She secretly hoped one day he would
shoot himself during his weekly visit to CERNs recreational pistol range, but
apparently he was a pretty good shot.
Now, sitting
alone at her desk, Sylvie heard her stomach growling. Kohler had not yet
returned, nor had he given her any additional work for the evening. To hell
with sitting here bored and starving, she decided. She left Kohler a note and
headed for the staff dining commons to grab a quick bite.
She never made
it.
As she passed
CERNs recreational suites de loisir a long hallway of lounges with televisionsshe
noticed the rooms were overflowing with employees who had apparently abandoned
dinner to watch the news. Something big was going on. Sylvie entered the first
suite. It was packed with byte headswild young computer programmers. When she
saw the headlines on the TV, she gasped.
Terror at the
Vatican
Sylvie listened
to the report, unable to believe her ears. Some ancient brotherhood killing
cardinals? What did that prove? Their hatred? Their dominance? Their ignorance?
And yet,
incredibly, the mood in this suite seemed anything but somber.
Two young techies
ran by waving T shirts that bore a picture of Bill Gates and the message:
And the Geek
shall inherit the Earth!
Illuminati! one
shouted. I told you these guys were real!
Incredible! I
thought it was just a game!
They killed the
Pope, man! The Pope !
Jeez! I wonder
how many points you get for that ?
They ran off
laughing.
Sylvie stood in
stunned amazement. As a Catholic working among scientists, she occasionally
endured the antireligious whisperings, but the party these kids seemed to be
having was all out euphoria over the churchs loss. How could they be so
callous? Why the hatred?
For Sylvie, the
church had always been an innocuous entity . . . a place of fellowship and
introspection . . . sometimes just a place to sing out loud without people
staring at her. The church recorded the benchmarks of her lifefunerals,
weddings, baptisms, holidaysand it asked for nothing in return. Even the
monetary dues were voluntary. Her children emerged from Sunday School every
week uplifted, filled with ideas about helping others and being kinder. What
could possibly be wrong with that ?
It never ceased
to amaze her that so many of CERNs so called brilliant minds failed to
comprehend the importance of the church. Did they really believe quarks and
mesons inspired the average human being? Or that equations could replace
someones need for faith in the divine?
Dazed, Sylvie
moved down the hallway past the other lounges. All the TV rooms were packed. She
began wondering now about the call Kohler had gotten from the Vatican earlier.
Coincidence? Perhaps. The Vatican called CERN from time to time as a courtesy
before issuing scathing statements condemning CERNs researchmost recently for
CERNs breakthroughs in nanotechnology, a field the church denounced because of
its implications for genetic engineering. CERN never cared. Invariably, within
minutes after a Vatican salvo, Kohlers phone would ring off the hook with tech
investment companies wanting to license the new discovery. No such thing as
bad press, Kohler would always say.
Sylvie wondered
if she should page Kohler, wherever the hell he was, and tell him to turn on
the news. Did he care? Had he heard? Of course, hed heard. He was probably
videotaping the entire report with his freaky little camcorder, smiling for the
first time in a year.
As Sylvie
continued down the hall, she finally found a lounge where the mood was subdued
. . . almost melancholy. Here the scientists watching the report were some of
CERNs oldest and most respected. They did not even look up as Sylvie slipped
in and took a seat.
On the other side
of CERN, in Leonardo Vetras frigid apartment, Maximilian Kohler had finished
reading the leather bound journal hed taken from Vetras bedside table. Now he
was watching the television reports. After a few minutes, he replaced Vetras
journal, turned off the television, and left the apartment.
Far away, in
Vatican City, Cardinal Mortati carried another tray of ballots to the Sistine
Chapel chimney. He burned them, and the smoke was black.
Two ballotings.
No Pope.
83
Flashlights were
no match for the voluminous blackness of St. Peters Basilica. The void
overhead pressed down like a starless night, and Vittoria felt the emptiness
spread out around her like a desolate ocean. She stayed close as the Swiss
Guards and the camerlegno pushed on. High above, a dove cooed and fluttered
away.
As if sensing her
discomfort, the camerlegno dropped back and lay a hand on her shoulder. A
tangible strength transferred in the touch, as if the man were magically
infusing her with the calm she needed to do what they were about to do.
What are we about
to do? she thought. This is madness!
And yet, Vittoria
knew, for all its impiety and inevitable horror, the task at hand was
inescapable. The grave decisions facing the camerlegno required information . .
. information entombed in a sarcophagus in the Vatican Grottoes. She wondered
what they would find. Did the Illuminati murder the Pope? Did their power
really reach so far? Am I really about to perform the first papal autopsy?
Vittoria found it
ironic that she felt more apprehensive in this unlit church than she would
swimming at night with barracuda. Nature was her refuge. She understood nature.
But it was matters of man and spirit that left her mystified. Killer fish
gathering in the dark conjured images of the press gathering outside. TV
footage of branded bodies reminded her of her fathers corpse . . . and the
killers harsh laugh. The killer was out there somewhere. Vittoria felt the
anger drowning her fear.
As they circled
past a pillarthicker in girth than any redwood she could imagineVittoria saw
an orange glow up ahead. The light seemed to emanate from beneath the floor in
the center of the basilica. As they came closer, she realized what she was
seeing. It was the famous sunken sanctuary beneath the main altarthe sumptuous
underground chamber that held the Vaticans most sacred relics. As they drew
even with the gate surrounding the hollow, Vittoria gazed down at the golden
coffer surrounded by scores of glowing oil lamps.
St. Peters
bones? she asked, knowing full well that they were. Everyone who came to St.
Peters knew what was in the golden casket.
Actually, no,
the camerlegno said. A common misconception. Thats not a reliquary. The box
holds palliums woven sashes that the Pope gives to newly elected cardinals.
But I thought
As does everyone.
The guidebooks label this as St. Peters tomb, but his true grave is two
stories beneath us, buried in the earth. The Vatican excavated it in the
forties. Nobody is allowed down there.
Vittoria was
shocked. As they moved away from the glowing recession into the darkness again,
she thought of the stories shed heard of pilgrims traveling thousands of miles
to look at that golden box, thinking they were in the presence of St. Peter.
Shouldnt the Vatican tell people?
We all benefit
from a sense of contact with divinity . . . even if it is only imagined.
Vittoria, as a
scientist, could not argue the logic. She had read countless studies of the
placebo effectaspirins curing cancer in people who believed they were using a
miracle drug. What was faith, after all?
Change, the
camerlegno said, is not something we do well within Vatican City. Admitting
our past faults, modernization, are things we historically eschew. His Holiness
was trying to change that. He paused. Reaching to the modern world. Searching
for new paths to God.
Vittoria nodded
in the dark. Like science?
To be honest,
science seems irrelevant.
Irrelevant?
Vittoria could think of a lot of words to describe science, but in the modern
world irrelevant did not seem like one of them.
Science can
heal, or science can kill. It depends on the soul of the man using the science.
It is the soul that interests me.
When did you
hear your call?
Before I was
born.
Vittoria looked
at him.
Im sorry, that
always seems like a strange question. What I mean is that Ive always known I
would serve God. From the moment I could first think. It wasnt until I was a
young man, though, in the military, that I truly understood my purpose.
Vittoria was
surprised. You were in the military?
Two years. I
refused to fire a weapon, so they made me fly instead. Medevac helicopters. In
fact, I still fly from time to time.
Vittoria tried to
picture the young priest flying a helicopter. Oddly, she could see him
perfectly behind the controls. Camerlegno Ventresca possessed a grit that
seemed to accentuate his conviction rather than cloud it. Did you ever fly the
Pope?
Heavens no. We
left that precious cargo to the professionals. His Holiness let me take the
helicopter to our retreat in Gandolfo sometimes. He paused, looking at her.
Ms. Vetra, thank you for your help here today. I am very sorry about your
father. Truly.
Thank you.
I never knew my
father. He died before I was born. I lost my mother when I was ten.
Vittoria looked
up. You were orphaned? She felt a sudden kinship.
I survived an
accident. An accident that took my mother.
Who took care of
you?
God, the
camerlegno said. He quite literally sent me another father. A bishop from
Palermo appeared at my hospital bed and took me in. At the time I was not
surprised. I had sensed Gods watchful hand over me even as a boy. The bishops
appearance simply confirmed what I had already suspected, that God had somehow
chosen me to serve him.
You believed God
chose you?
I did. And I do.
There was no trace of conceit in the camerlegnos voice, only gratitude. I
worked under the bishops tutelage for many years. He eventually became a
cardinal. Still, he never forgot me. He is the father I remember. A beam of a
flashlight caught the camerlegnos face, and Vittoria sensed a loneliness in
his eyes.
The group arrived
beneath a towering pillar, and their lights converged on an opening in the
floor. Vittoria looked down at the staircase descending into the void and
suddenly wanted to turn back. The guards were already helping the camerlegno
onto the stairs. They helped her next.
What became of
him? she asked, descending, trying to keep her voice steady. The cardinal who
took you in?
He left the
College of Cardinals for another position.
Vittoria was
surprised.
And then, Im
sorry to say, he passed on.
Le mie
condoglianze, Vittoria said. Recently?
The camerlegno
turned, shadows accentuating the pain on his face. Exactly fifteen days ago.
We are going to see him right now.
84
The dark lights
glowed hot inside the archival vault. This vault was much smaller than the
previous one Langdon had been in. Less air. Less time. He wished hed asked
Olivetti to turn on the recirculating fans.
Langdon quickly
located the section of assets containing the ledgers cataloging Belle Arti. The
section was impossible to miss. It occupied almost eight full stacks. The
Catholic church owned millions of individual pieces worldwide.
Langdon scanned
the shelves searching for Gianlorenzo Bernini. He began his search about midway
down the first stack, at about the spot he thought the B s would begin. After
a moment of panic fearing the ledger was missing, he realized, to his greater
dismay, that the ledgers were not arranged alphabetically. Why am I not surprised?
It was not until
Langdon circled back to the beginning of the collection and climbed a rolling
ladder to the top shelf that he understood the vaults organization. Perched
precariously on the upper stacks he found the fattest ledgers of allthose
belonging to the masters of the RenaissanceMichelangelo, Raphael, da Vinci,
Botticelli. Langdon now realized, appropriate to a vault called Vatican
Assets, the ledgers were arranged by the overall monetary value of each
artists collection. Sandwiched between Raphael and Michelangelo, Langdon found
the ledger marked Bernini. It was over five inches thick.
Already short of
breath and struggling with the cumbersome volume, Langdon descended the ladder.
Then, like a kid with a comic book, he spread himself out on the floor and
opened the cover.
The book was
cloth bound and very solid. The ledger was handwritten in Italian. Each page
cataloged a single work, including a short description, date, location, cost of
materials, and sometimes a rough sketch of the piece. Langdon fanned through
the pages . . . over eight hundred in all. Bernini had been a busy man.
As a young
student of art, Langdon had wondered how single artists could create so much
work in their lifetimes. Later he learned, much to his disappointment, that
famous artists actually created very little of their own work. They ran studios
where they trained young artists to carry out their designs. Sculptors like
Bernini created miniatures in clay and hired others to enlarge them into
marble. Langdon knew that if Bernini had been required to personally complete
all of his commissions, he would still be working today.
Index, he said
aloud, trying to ward off the mental cobwebs. He flipped to the back of the
book, intending to look under the letter F for titles containing the word
fuòco firebut the F s were not together. Langdon swore under his
breath. What the hell do these people have against alphabetizing?
The entries had
apparently been logged chronologically, one by one, as Bernini created each new
work. Everything was listed by date. No help at all.
As Langdon stared
at the list, another disheartening thought occurred to him. The title of the
sculpture he was looking for might not even contain the word Fire. The previous
two worksHabakkuk and the Angel and West Ponente had not contained specific
references to Earth or Air.
He spent a minute
or two flipping randomly through the ledger in hopes that an illustration might
jump out at him. Nothing did. He saw dozens of obscure works he had never heard
of, but he also saw plenty he recognized . . . Daniel and the Lion, Apollo and
Daphne, as well as a half dozen fountains. When he saw the fountains, his
thoughts skipped momentarily ahead. Water. He wondered if the fourth altar of
science was a fountain. A fountain seemed a perfect tribute to water. Langdon
hoped they could catch the killer before he had to consider Water Bernini had
carved dozens of fountains in Rome, most of them in front of churches.
Langdon turned
back to the matter at hand. Fire. As he looked through the book, Vittorias
words encouraged him. You were familiar with the first two sculptures . . . you
probably know this one too. As he turned to the index again, he scanned for
titles he knew. Some were familiar, but none jumped out. Langdon now realized
he would never complete his search before passing out, so he decided, against
his better judgment, that he would have to take the book outside the vault.
Its only a ledger, he told himself. Its not like Im removing an original
Galilean folio. Langdon recalled the folio in his breast pocket and reminded
himself to return it before leaving.
Hurrying now, he
reached down to lift the volume, but as he did, he saw something that gave him
pause. Although there were numerous notations throughout the index, the one
that had just caught his eye seemed odd.
The note
indicated that the famous Bernini sculpture, The Ecstasy of St. Teresa, shortly
after its unveiling, had been moved from its original location inside the
Vatican. This in itself was not what had caught Langdons eye. He was already
familiar with the sculptures checkered past. Though some thought it a
masterpiece, Pope Urban VIII had rejected The Ecstasy of St. Teresa as too
sexually explicit for the Vatican. He had banished it to some obscure chapel
across town. What had caught Langdons eye was that the work had apparently
been placed in one of the five churches on his list. What was more, the note
indicated it had been moved there per suggerimento del artista.
By suggestion of
the artist? Langdon was confused. It made no sense that Bernini had suggested
his masterpiece be hidden in some obscure location. All artists wanted their
work displayed prominently, not in some remote
Langdon
hesitated. Unless . . .
He was fearful
even to entertain the notion. Was it possible? Had Bernini intentionally
created a work so explicit that it forced the Vatican to hide it in some out of
the way spot? A location perhaps that Bernini himself could suggest? Maybe a
remote church on a direct line with West Ponente s breath?
As Langdons
excitement mounted, his vague familiarity with the statue intervened, insisting
the work had nothing to do with fire. The sculpture, as anyone who had seen it
could attest, was anything but scientificpornographic maybe, but certainly not
scientific. An English critic had once condemned The Ecstasy of St. Teresa as
the most unfit ornament ever to be placed in a Christian Church. Langdon
certainly understood the controversy. Though brilliantly rendered, the statue
depicted St. Teresa on her back in the throes of a toe curling orgasm. Hardly
Vatican fare.
Langdon hurriedly
flipped to the ledgers description of the work. When he saw the sketch, he
felt an instantaneous and unexpected tingle of hope. In the sketch, St. Teresa
did indeed appear to be enjoying herself, but there was another figure in the
statue who Langdon had forgotten was there.
An angel.
The sordid legend
suddenly came back . . .
St. Teresa was a
nun sainted after she claimed an angel had paid her a blissful visit in her
sleep. Critics later decided her encounter had probably been more sexual than
spiritual. Scrawled at the bottom of the ledger, Langdon saw a familiar
excerpt. St. Teresas own words left little to the imagination:
. . . his great
golden spear . . . filled with fire . . . plunged into me several times . . .
penetrated to my entrails . . . a sweetness so extreme that one could not
possibly wish it to stop.
Langdon smiled.
If thats not a metaphor for some serious sex, I dont know what is. He was
smiling also because of the ledgers description of the work. Although the
paragraph was in Italian, the word fuòco appeared a half dozen times:
. . . angels
spear tipped with point of fire . . .
. . . angels
head emanating rays of fire . . .
. . . woman
inflamed by passions fire . . .
Langdon was not
entirely convinced until he glanced up at the sketch again. The angels fiery
spear was raised like a beacon, pointing the way. Let angels guide you on your
lofty quest. Even the type of angel Bernini had selected seemed significant.
Its a seraphim, Langdon realized. Seraphim literally means the fiery one.
Robert Langdon
was not a man who had ever looked for confirmation from above, but when he read
the name of the church where the sculpture now resided, he decided he might
become a believer after all.
Santa Maria della
Vittoria.
Vittoria, he
thought, grinning. Perfect.
Staggering to his
feet, Langdon felt a rush of dizziness. He glanced up the ladder, wondering if
he should replace the book. The hell with it, he thought. Father Jaqui can do
it. He closed the book and left it neatly at the bottom of the shelf.
As he made his
way toward the glowing button on the vaults electronic exit, he was breathing
in shallow gasps. Nonetheless, he felt rejuvenated by his good fortune.
His good fortune,
however, ran out before he reached the exit.
Without warning,
the vault let out a pained sigh. The lights dimmed, and the exit button went
dead. Then, like an enormous expiring beast, the archival complex went totally
black. Someone had just killed power.
85
The Holy Vatican
Grottoes are located beneath the main floor of St. Peters Basilica. They are
the burial place of deceased Popes.
Vittoria reached
the bottom of the spiral staircase and entered the grotto. The darkened tunnel
reminded her of CERNs Large Hadron Colliderblack and cold. Lit now only by
the flashlights of the Swiss Guards, the tunnel carried a distinctly
incorporeal feel. On both sides, hollow niches lined the walls. Recessed in the
alcoves, as far as the lights let them see, the hulking shadows of sarcophagi
loomed.
An iciness raked
her flesh. Its the cold, she told herself, knowing that was only partially
true. She had the sense they were being watched, not by anyone in the flesh,
but by specters in the dark. On top of each tomb, in full papal vestments, lay
life sized semblances of each Pope, shown in death, arms folded across their
chests. The prostrate bodies seemed to emerge from within the tombs, pressing
upward against the marble lids as if trying to escape their mortal restraints.
The flashlight procession moved on, and the papal silhouettes rose and fell
against the walls, stretching and vanishing in a macabre shadowbox dance.
A silence had
fallen across the group, and Vittoria couldnt tell whether it was one of
respect or apprehension. She sensed both. The camerlegno moved with his eyes
closed, as if he knew every step by heart. Vittoria suspected he had made this
eerie promenade many times since the Popes death . . . perhaps to pray at his
tomb for guidance.
I worked under
the cardinals tutelage for many years, the camerlegno had said. He was like a
father to me. Vittoria recalled the camerlegno speaking those words in
reference to the cardinal who had saved him from the army. Now, however,
Vittoria understood the rest of the story. That very cardinal who had taken the
camerlegno under his wing had apparently later risen to the papacy and brought
with him his young protégé to serve as chamberlain.
That explains a
lot, Vittoria thought. She had always possessed a well tuned perception for
others inner emotions, and something about the camerlegno had been nagging her
all day. Since meeting him, she had sensed an anguish more soulful and private
than the overwhelming crisis he now faced. Behind his pious calm, she saw a man
tormented by personal demons. Now she knew her instincts had been correct. Not
only was he facing the most devastating threat in Vatican history, but he was
doing it without his mentor and friend . . . flying solo.
The guards slowed
now, as if unsure where exactly in the darkness the most recent Pope was
buried. The camerlegno continued assuredly and stopped before a marble tomb
that seemed to glisten brighter than the others. Lying atop was a carved figure
of the late Pope. When Vittoria recognized his face from television, a shot of
fear gripped her. What are we doing?
I realize we do
not have much time, the camerlegno said. I still ask we take a moment of
prayer.
The Swiss Guard
all bowed their heads where they were standing. Vittoria followed suit, her
heart pounding in the silence. The camerlegno knelt before the tomb and prayed
in Italian. As Vittoria listened to his words, an unexpected grief surfaced as
tears . . . tears for her own mentor . . . her own holy father. The
camerlegnos words seemed as appropriate for her father as they did for the
Pope.
Supreme father,
counselor, friend. The camerlegnos voice echoed dully around the ring. You
told me when I was young that the voice in my heart was that of God. You told
me I must follow it no matter what painful places it leads. I hear that voice
now, asking of me impossible tasks. Give me strength. Bestow on me forgiveness.
What I do . . . I do in the name of everything you believe. Amen.
Amen, the
guards whispered.
Amen, Father.
Vittoria wiped her eyes.
The camerlegno
stood slowly and stepped away from the tomb. Push the covering aside.
The Swiss Guards
hesitated. Signore, one said, by law we are at your command. He paused. We
will do as you say . . .
The camerlegno
seemed to read the young mans mind. Someday I will ask your forgiveness for
placing you in this position. Today I ask for your obedience. Vatican laws are
established to protect this church. It is in that very spirit that I command
you to break them now.
There was a
moment of silence and then the lead guard gave the order. The three men set
down their flashlights on the floor, and their shadows leapt overhead. Lit now
from beneath, the men advanced toward the tomb. Bracing their hands against the
marble covering near the head of the tomb, they planted their feet and prepared
to push. On signal, they all thrust, straining against the enormous slab. When
the lid did not move at all, Vittoria found herself almost hoping it was too
heavy. She was suddenly fearful of what they would find inside.
The men pushed
harder, and still the stone did not move.
Ancora, the
camerlegno said, rolling up the sleeves of his cassock and preparing to push
along with them. Ora! Everyone heaved.
Vittoria was
about to offer her own help, but just then, the lid began to slide. The men dug
in again, and with an almost primal growl of stone on stone, the lid rotated
off the top of the tomb and came to rest at an anglethe Popes carved head now
pushed back into the niche and his feet extended out into the hallway.
Everyone stepped
back.
Tentatively, a
guard bent and retrieved his flashlight. Then he aimed it into the tomb. The
beam seemed to tremble a moment, and then the guard held it steady. The other
guards gathered one by one. Even in the darkness Vittoria sensed them recoil.
In succession, they crossed themselves.
The camerlegno
shuddered when he looked into the tomb, his shoulders dropping like weights. He
stood a long moment before turning away.
Vittoria had
feared the corpses mouth might be clenched tight with rigor mortis and that
she would have to suggest breaking the jaw to see the tongue. She now saw it
would be unnecessary. The cheeks had collapsed, and the Popes mouth gaped
wide.
His tongue was
black as death.
86
No light. No
sound.
The Secret
Archives were black.
Fear, Langdon now
realized, was an intense motivator. Short of breath, he fumbled through the
blackness toward the revolving door. He found the button on the wall and rammed
his palm against it. Nothing happened. He tried again. The door was dead.
Spinning blind,
he called out, but his voice emerged strangled. The peril of his predicament
suddenly closed in around him. His lungs strained for oxygen as the adrenaline
doubled his heart rate. He felt like someone had just punched him in the gut.
When he threw his
weight into the door, for an instant he thought he felt the door start to turn.
He pushed again, seeing stars. Now he realized it was the entire room turning,
not the door. Staggering away, Langdon tripped over the base of a rolling
ladder and fell hard. He tore his knee against the edge of a book stack.
Swearing, he got up and groped for the ladder.
He found it. He
had hoped it would be heavy wood or iron, but it was aluminum. He grabbed the
ladder and held it like a battering ram. Then he ran through the dark at the
glass wall. It was closer than he thought. The ladder hit head on, bouncing
off. From the feeble sound of the collision, Langdon knew he was going to need
a hell of a lot more than an aluminum ladder to break this glass.
When he flashed
on the semiautomatic, his hopes surged and then instantly fell. The weapon was
gone. Olivetti had relieved him of it in the Popes office, saying he did not
want loaded weapons around with the camerlegno present. It made sense at the
time.
Langdon called
out again, making less sound than the last time.
Next he
remembered the walkie talkie the guard had left on the table outside the vault.
Why the hell didnt I bring it in! As the purple stars began to dance before
his eyes, Langdon forced himself to think. Youve been trapped before, he told
himself. You survived worse. You were just a kid and you figured it out. The
crushing darkness came flooding in. Think!
Langdon lowered
himself onto the floor. He rolled over on his back and laid his hands at his
sides. The first step was to gain control.
Relax. Conserve.
No longer
fighting gravity to pump blood, Langdons heart began to slow. It was a trick
swimmers used to re oxygenate their blood between tightly scheduled races.
There is plenty
of air in here, he told himself. Plenty. Now think. He waited, half expecting
the lights to come back on at any moment. They did not. As he lay there, able
to breathe better now, an eerie resignation came across him. He felt peaceful.
He fought it.
You will move,
damn it! But where . . .
On Langdons
wrist, Mickey Mouse glowed happily as if enjoying the dark: 9:33 P.M. Half an
hour until Fire. Langdon thought it felt a whole hell of a lot later. His mind,
instead of coming up with a plan for escape, was suddenly demanding an explanation.
Who turned off the power? Was Rocher expanding his search? Wouldnt Olivetti
have warned Rocher that Im in here! Langdon knew at this point it made no
difference.
Opening his mouth
wide and tipping back his head, Langdon pulled the deepest breaths he could
manage. Each breath burned a little less than the last. His head cleared. He
reeled his thoughts in and forced the gears into motion.
Glass walls, he
told himself. But damn thick glass.
He wondered if
any of the books in here were stored in heavy, steel, fireproof file cabinets.
Langdon had seen them from time to time in other archives but had seen none
here. Besides, finding one in the dark could prove time consuming. Not that he
could lift one anyway, particularly in his present state.
How about the
examination table? Langdon knew this vault, like the other, had an examination
table in the center of the stacks. So what? He knew he couldnt lift it. Not to
mention, even if he could drag it, he wouldnt get it far. The stacks were
closely packed, the aisles between them far too narrow.
The aisles are
too narrow . . .
Suddenly, Langdon
knew.
With a burst of
confidence, he jumped to his feet far too fast. Swaying in the fog of a head
rush, he reached out in the dark for support. His hand found a stack. Waiting a
moment, he forced himself to conserve. He would need all of his strength to do
this.
Positioning
himself against the book stack like a football player against a training sled,
he planted his feet and pushed. If I can somehow tip the shelf. But it barely
moved. He realigned and pushed again. His feet slipped backward on the floor.
The stack creaked but did not move.
He needed
leverage.
Finding the glass
wall again, he placed one hand on it to guide him as he raced in the dark
toward the far end of the vault. The back wall loomed suddenly, and he collided
with it, crushing his shoulder. Cursing, Langdon circled the shelf and grabbed
the stack at about eye level. Then, propping one leg on the glass behind him
and another on the lower shelves, he started to climb. Books fell around him,
fluttering into the darkness. He didnt care. Instinct for survival had long
since overridden archival decorum. He sensed his equilibrium was hampered by
the total darkness and closed his eyes, coaxing his brain to ignore visual
input. He moved faster now. The air felt leaner the higher he went. He
scrambled toward the upper shelves, stepping on books, trying to gain purchase,
heaving himself upward. Then, like a rock climber conquering a rock face,
Langdon grasped the top shelf. Stretching his legs out behind him, he walked
his feet up the glass wall until he was almost horizontal.
Now or never,
Robert, a voice urged. Just like the leg press in the Harvard gym.
With dizzying
exertion, he planted his feet against the wall behind him, braced his arms and
chest against the stack, and pushed. Nothing happened.
Fighting for air,
he repositioned and tried again, extending his legs. Ever so slightly, the
stack moved. He pushed again, and the stack rocked forward an inch or so and
then back. Langdon took advantage of the motion, inhaling what felt like an
oxygenless breath and heaving again. The shelf rocked farther.
Like a swing set,
he told himself. Keep the rhythm. A little more.
Langdon rocked
the shelf, extending his legs farther with each push. His quadriceps burned
now, and he blocked the pain. The pendulum was in motion. Three more pushes, he
urged himself.
It only took two.
There was an
instant of weightless uncertainty. Then, with a thundering of books sliding off
the shelves, Langdon and the shelf were falling forward.
Halfway to the
ground, the shelf hit the stack next to it. Langdon hung on, throwing his
weight forward, urging the second shelf to topple. There was a moment of
motionless panic, and then, creaking under the weight, the second stack began
to tip. Langdon was falling again.
Like enormous
dominoes, the stacks began to topple, one after another. Metal on metal, books
tumbling everywhere. Langdon held on as his inclined stack bounced downward
like a ratchet on a jack. He wondered how many stacks there were in all. How
much would they weigh? The glass at the far end was thick . . .
Langdons stack
had fallen almost to the horizontal when he heard what he was waiting fora
different kind of collision. Far off. At the end of the vault. The sharp smack
of metal on glass. The vault around him shook, and Langdon knew the final
stack, weighted down by the others, had hit the glass hard. The sound that
followed was the most unwelcome sound Langdon had ever heard.
Silence.
There was no
crashing of glass, only the resounding thud as the wall accepted the weight of
the stacks now propped against it. He lay wide eyed on the pile of books.
Somewhere in the distance there was a creaking. Langdon would have held his
breath to listen, but he had none left to hold.
One second. Two .
. .
Then, as he
teetered on the brink of unconsciousness, Langdon heard a distant yielding . .
. a ripple spidering outward through the glass. Suddenly, like a cannon, the
glass exploded. The stack beneath Langdon collapsed to the floor.
Like welcome rain
on a desert, shards of glass tinkled downward in the dark. With a great sucking
hiss, the air gushed in.
Thirty seconds
later, in the Vatican Grottoes, Vittoria was standing before a corpse when the
electronic squawk of a walkie talkie broke the silence. The voice blaring out
sounded short of breath. This is Robert Langdon! Can anyone hear me?
Vittoria looked
up. Robert ! She could not believe how much she suddenly wished he were there.
The guards
exchanged puzzled looks. One took a radio off his belt. Mr. Langdon? You are
on channel three. The commander is waiting to hear from you on channel one.
I know hes on
channel one, damn it! I dont want to speak to him. I want the camerlegno. Now!
Somebody find him for me.
In the obscurity
of the Secret Archives, Langdon stood amidst shattered glass and tried to catch
his breath. He felt a warm liquid on his left hand and knew he was bleeding.
The camerlegnos voice spoke at once, startling Langdon.
This is
Camerlegno Ventresca. Whats going on?
Langdon pressed
the button, his heart still pounding. I think somebody just tried to kill me!
There was a
silence on the line.
Langdon tried to
calm himself. I also know where the next killing is going to be.
The voice that
came back was not the camerlegnos. It was Commander Olivettis: Mr. Langdon.
Do not speak another word.
87
Langdons watch,
now smeared with blood, read 9:41 P.M. as he ran across the Courtyard of the
Belvedere and approached the fountain outside the Swiss Guard security center.
His hand had stopped bleeding and now felt worse than it looked. As he arrived,
it seemed everyone convened at onceOlivetti, Rocher, the camerlegno, Vittoria,
and a handful of guards.
Vittoria hurried
toward him immediately. Robert, youre hurt.
Before Langdon
could answer, Olivetti was before him. Mr. Langdon, Im relieved youre okay.
Im sorry about the crossed signals in the archives.
Crossed
signals? Langdon demanded. You knew damn well
It was my
fault, Rocher said, stepping forward, sounding contrite. I had no idea you
were in the archives. Portions of our white zones are cross wired with that
building. We were extending our search. Im the one who killed power. If I had
known . . .
Robert,
Vittoria said, taking his wounded hand in hers and looking it over, the Pope
was poisoned. The Illuminati killed him.
Langdon heard the
words, but they barely registered. He was saturated. All he could feel was the
warmth of Vittorias hands.
The camerlegno
pulled a silk handkerchief from his cassock and handed it to Langdon so he
could clean himself. The man said nothing. His green eyes seemed filled with a
new fire.
Robert,
Vittoria pressed, you said you found where the next cardinal is going to be
killed?
Langdon felt
flighty. I do, its at the
No, Olivetti
interrupted. Mr. Langdon, when I asked you not to speak another word on the
walkie talkie, it was for a reason. He turned to the handful of assembled
Swiss Guards. Excuse us, gentlemen.
The soldiers
disappeared into the security center. No indignity. Only compliance.
Olivetti turned
back to the remaining group. As much as it pains me to say this, the murder of
our Pope is an act that could only have been accomplished with help from within
these walls. For the good of all, we can trust no one. Including our guards.
He seemed to be suffering as he spoke the words.
Rocher looked
anxious. Inside collusion implies
Yes, Olivetti
said. The integrity of your search is compromised. And yet it is a gamble we
must take. Keep looking.
Rocher looked
like he was about to say something, thought better of it, and left.
The camerlegno
inhaled deeply. He had not said a word yet, and Langdon sensed a new rigor in
the man, as if a turning point had been reached.
Commander? The
camerlegnos tone was impermeable. I am going to break conclave.
Olivetti pursed
his lips, looking dour. I advise against it. We still have two hours and
twenty minutes.
A heartbeat.
Olivettis tone
was now challenging What do you intend to do? Evacuate the cardinals single
handedly?
I intend to save
this church with whatever power God has given me. How I proceed is no longer
your concern.
Olivetti
straightened. Whatever you intend to do . . . He paused. I do not have the
authority to restrain you. Particularly in light of my apparent failure as head
of security. I ask only that you wait. Wait twenty minutes . . . until after
ten oclock. If Mr. Langdons information is correct, I may still have a chance
to catch this assassin. There is still a chance to preserve protocol and
decorum.
Decorum? The
camerlegno let out a choked laugh. We have long since passed propriety,
commander. In case you hadnt noticed, this is war.
A guard emerged
from the security center and called out to the camerlegno, Signore, I just got
word we have detained the BBC reporter, Mr. Glick.
The camerlegno
nodded. Have both he and his camerawoman meet me outside the Sistine Chapel.
Olivettis eyes
widened. What are you doing?
Twenty minutes,
commander. Thats all Im giving you. Then he was gone.
When Olivettis
Alpha Romeo tore out of Vatican City, this time there was no line of unmarked
cars following him. In the back seat, Vittoria bandaged Langdons hand with a
first aid kit shed found in the glove box.
Olivetti stared
straight ahead. Okay, Mr. Langdon. Where are we going?
88
Even with its
siren now affixed and blaring, Olivettis Alpha Romeo seemed to go unnoticed as
it rocketed across the bridge into the heart of old Rome. All the traffic was
moving in the other direction, toward the Vatican, as if the Holy See had
suddenly become the hottest entertainment in Rome.
Langdon sat in
the backseat, the questions whipping through his mind. He wondered about the
killer, if they would catch him this time, if he would tell them what they
needed to know, if it was already too late. How long before the camerlegno told
the crowd in St. Peters Square they were in danger? The incident in the vault
still nagged. A mistake.
Olivetti never
touched the brakes as he snaked the howling Alpha Romeo toward the Church of
Santa Maria della Vittoria. Langdon knew on any other day his knuckles would
have been white. At the moment, however, he felt anesthetized. Only the
throbbing in his hand reminded him where he was.
Overhead, the
siren wailed. Nothing like telling him were coming, Langdon thought. And yet
they were making incredible time. He guessed Olivetti would kill the siren as
they drew nearer.
Now with a moment
to sit and reflect, Langdon felt a tinge of amazement as the news of the Popes
murder finally registered in his mind. The thought was inconceivable, and yet
somehow it seemed a perfectly logical event. Infiltration had always been the
Illuminati powerbaserearrangements of power from within. And it was not as if
Popes had never been murdered. Countless rumors of treachery abounded, although
with no autopsy, none was ever confirmed. Until recently. Academics not long
ago had gotten permission to X ray the tomb of Pope Celestine V, who had
allegedly died at the hands of his overeager successor, Boniface VIII. The
researchers had hoped the X ray might reveal some small hint of foul playa
broken bone perhaps. Incredibly, the X ray had revealed a ten inch nail driven
into the Popes skull.
Langdon now
recalled a series of news clippings fellow Illuminati buffs had sent him years
ago. At first he had thought the clippings were a prank, so hed gone to the
Harvard microfiche collection to confirm the articles were authentic.
Incredibly, they were. He now kept them on his bulletin board as examples of
how even respectable news organizations sometimes got carried away with
Illuminati paranoia. Suddenly, the medias suspicions seemed a lot less
paranoid. Langdon could see the articles clearly in his mind . . .
The British
Broadcasting Corporation
June 14, 1998
Pope John Paul I,
who died in 1978, fell victim to a plot by the P2 Masonic Lodge . . . The
secret society P2 decided to murder John Paul I when it saw he was determined
to dismiss the American Archbishop Paul Marcinkus as President of the Vatican
Bank. The Bank had been implicated in shady financial deals with the Masonic
Lodge . . .
The New York
Times
August 24, 1998
Why was the late
John Paul I wearing his day shirt in bed? Why was it torn? The questions dont
stop there. No medical investigations were made. Cardinal Villot forbade an
autopsy on the grounds that no Pope was ever given a postmortem. And John
Pauls medicines mysteriously vanished from his bedside, as did his glasses,
slippers and his last will and testament.
London Daily Mail
August 27, 1998
. . . a plot
including a powerful, ruthless and illegal Masonic lodge with tentacles
stretching into the Vatican.
The cellular in
Vittorias pocket rang, thankfully erasing the memories from Langdons mind.
Vittoria
answered, looking confused as to who might be calling her. Even from a few feet
away, Langdon recognized the laserlike voice on the phone.
Vittoria? This
is Maximilian Kohler. Have you found the antimatter yet?
Max? Youre
okay?
I saw the news.
There was no mention of CERN or the antimatter. This is good. What is
happening?
We havent
located the canister yet. The situation is complex. Robert Langdon has been
quite an asset. We have a lead on catching the man assassinating cardinals.
Right now we are headed
Ms. Vetra,
Olivetti interrupted. Youve said enough.
She covered the
receiver, clearly annoyed. Commander, this is the president of CERN. Certainly
he has a right to
He has a right,
Olivetti snapped, to be here handling this situation. Youre on an open
cellular line. Youve said enough.
Vittoria took a
deep breath. Max?
I may have some
information for you, Max said. About your father . . . I may know who he told
about the antimatter.
Vittorias
expression clouded. Max, my father said he told no one.
Im afraid,
Vittoria, your father did tell someone. I need to check some security records.
I will be in touch soon. The line went dead.
Vittoria looked
waxen as she returned the phone to her pocket.
You okay?
Langdon asked.
Vittoria nodded,
her trembling fingers revealing the lie.
The church is on
Piazza Barberini, Olivetti said, killing the siren and checking his watch. We
have nine minutes.
When Langdon had
first realized the location of the third marker, the position of the church had
rung some distant bell for him. Piazza Barberini. Something about the name was
familiar . . . something he could not place. Now Langdon realized what it was.
The piazza was the sight of a controversial subway stop. Twenty years ago,
construction of the subway terminal had created a stir among art historians who
feared digging beneath Piazza Barberini might topple the multiton obelisk that
stood in the center. City planners had removed the obelisk and replaced it with
a small fountain called the Triton.
In Berninis day,
Langdon now realized, Piazza Barberini had contained an obelisk! Whatever
doubts Langdon had felt that this was the location of the third marker now
totally evaporated.
A block from the
piazza, Olivetti turned into an alley, gunned the car halfway down, and skidded
to a stop. He pulled off his suit jacket, rolled up his sleeves, and loaded his
weapon.
We cant risk
your being recognized, he said. You two were on television. I want you across
the piazza, out of sight, watching the front entrance. Im going in the back.
He produced a familiar pistol and handed it to Langdon. Just in case.
Langdon frowned.
It was the second time today he had been handed the gun. He slid it into his
breast pocket. As he did, he realized he was still carrying the folio from
Diagramma. He couldnt believe he had forgotten to leave it behind. He pictured
the Vatican Curator collapsing in spasms of outrage at the thought of this
priceless artifact being packed around Rome like some tourist map. Then Langdon
thought of the mess of shattered glass and strewn documents that hed left
behind in the archives. The curator had other problems. If the archives even
survive the night . . .
Olivetti got out
of the car and motioned back up the alley. The piazza is that way. Keep your
eyes open and dont let yourselves be seen. He tapped the phone on his belt.
Ms. Vetra, lets retest our auto dial.
Vittoria removed
her phone and hit the auto dial number she and Olivetti had programmed at the
Pantheon. Olivettis phone vibrated in silent ring mode on his belt.
The commander
nodded. Good. If you see anything, I want to know. He cocked his weapon.
Ill be inside waiting. This heathen is mine.
At that moment,
very nearby, another cellular phone was ringing.
The Hassassin
answered. Speak.
It is I, the
voice said. Janus.
The Hassassin
smiled. Hello, master.
Your position
may be known. Someone is coming to stop you.
They are too
late. I have already made the arrangements here.
Good. Make sure
you escape alive. There is work yet to be done.
Those who stand
in my way will die.
Those who stand
in your way are knowledgeable.
You speak of an
American scholar?
You are aware of
him?
The Hassassin
chuckled. Cool tempered but naive. He spoke to me on the phone earlier. He is
with a female who seems quite the opposite. The killer felt a stirring of
arousal as he recalled the fiery temperament of Leonardo Vetras daughter.
There was a
momentary silence on the line, the first hesitation the Hassassin had ever
sensed from his Illuminati master. Finally, Janus spoke. Eliminate them if
need be.
The killer
smiled. Consider it done. He felt a warm anticipation spreading through his
body. Although the woman I may keep as a prize.
89
War had broken
out in St. Peters Square.
The piazza had
exploded into a frenzy of aggression. Media trucks skidded into place like
assault vehicles claiming beachheads. Reporters unfurled high tech electronics
like soldiers arming for battle. All around the perimeter of the square,
networks jockeyed for position as they raced to erect the newest weapon in
media warsflat screen displays.
Flat screen
displays were enormous video screens that could be assembled on top of trucks
or portable scaffolding. The screens served as a kind of billboard
advertisement for the network, broadcasting that networks coverage and
corporate logo like a drive in movie. If a screen were well situatedin front
of the action, for examplea competing network could not shoot the story
without including an advertisement for their competitor.
The square was
quickly becoming not only a multimedia extravaganza, but a frenzied public
vigil. Onlookers poured in from all directions. Open space in the usually
limitless square was fast becoming a valuable commodity. People clustered
around the towering flat screen displays, listening to live reports in stunned
excitement.
Only a hundred
yards away, inside the thick walls of St. Peters Basilica, the world was
serene. Lieutenant Chartrand and three other guards moved through the darkness.
Wearing their infrared goggles, they fanned out across the nave, swinging their
detectors before them. The search of Vatican Citys public access areas so far
had yielded nothing.
Better remove
your goggles up here, the senior guard said.
Chartrand was
already doing it. They were nearing the Niche of the Palliumsthe sunken area
in the center of the basilica. It was lit by ninety nine oil lamps, and the
amplified infrared would have seared their eyes.
Chartrand enjoyed
being out of the heavy goggles, and he stretched his neck as they descended
into the sunken niche to scan the area. The room was beautiful . . . golden and
glowing. He had not been down here yet.
It seemed every
day since Chartrand had arrived in Vatican City he had learned some new Vatican
mystery. These oil lamps were one of them. There were exactly ninety nine lamps
burning at all times. It was tradition. The clergy vigilantly refilled the
lamps with sacred oils such that no lamp ever burned out. It was said they
would burn until the end of time.
Or at least until
midnight, Chartrand thought, feeling his mouth go dry again.
Chartrand swung
his detector over the oil lamps. Nothing hidden in here. He was not surprised;
the canister, according to the video feed, was hidden in a dark area.
As he moved
across the niche, he came to a bulkhead grate covering a hole in the floor. The
hole led to a steep and narrow stairway that went straight down. He had heard
stories about what lay down there. Thankfully, they would not have to descend.
Rochers orders were clear. Search only the public access areas; ignore the
white zones.
Whats that
smell? he asked, turning away from the grate. The niche smelled intoxicatingly
sweet.
Fumes from the
lamps, one of them replied.
Chartrand was
surprised. Smells more like cologne than kerosene.
Its not
kerosene. These lamps are close to the papal altar, so they take a special,
ambiental mixtureethanol, sugar, butane, and perfume.
Butane?
Chartrand eyed the lamps uneasily.
The guard nodded.
Dont spill any. Smells like heaven, but burns like hell.
The guards had
completed searching the Niche of the Palliums and were moving across the
basilica again when their walkie talkies went off.
It was an update.
The guards listened in shock.
Apparently there
were troubling new developments, which could not be shared on air, but the
camerlegno had decided to break tradition and enter conclave to address the
cardinals. Never before in history had this been done. Then again, Chartrand
realized, never before in history had the Vatican been sitting on what amounted
to some sort of neoteric nuclear warhead.
Chartrand felt
comforted to know the camerlegno was taking control. The camerlegno was the
person inside Vatican City for whom Chartrand held the most respect. Some of
the guards thought of the camerlegno as a beato a religious zealot whose love
of God bordered on obsessionbut even they agreed . . . when it came to
fighting the enemies of God, the camerlegno was the one man who would stand up
and play hardball.
The Swiss Guards
had seen a lot of the camerlegno this week in preparation for conclave, and
everyone had commented that the man seemed a bit rough around the edges, his
verdant eyes a bit more intense than usual. Not surprisingly, they had all
commented; not only was the camerlegno responsible for planning the sacred
conclave, but he had to do it immediately on the heels of the loss of his
mentor, the Pope.
Chartrand had
only been at the Vatican a few months when he heard the story of the bomb that
blew up the camerlegnos mother before the kids very eyes. A bomb in church .
. . and now its happening all over again. Sadly, the authorities never caught
the bastards who planted the bomb . . . probably some anti Christian hate group
they said, and the case faded away. No wonder the camerlegno despised apathy.
A couple months
back, on a peaceful afternoon inside Vatican City, Chartrand had bumped into
the camerlegno coming across the grounds. The camerlegno had apparently
recognized Chartrand as a new guard and invited him to accompany him on a
stroll. They had talked about nothing in particular, and the camerlegno made
Chartrand feel immediately at home.
Father,
Chartrand said, may I ask you a strange question?
The camerlegno
smiled. Only if I may give you a strange answer.
Chartrand
laughed. I have asked every priest I know, and I still dont understand.
What troubles
you? The camerlegno led the way in short, quick strides, his frock kicking out
in front of him as he walked. His black, crepe sole shoes seemed befitting,
Chartrand thought, like reflections of the mans essence . . . modern but
humble, and showing signs of wear.
Chartrand took a
deep breath. I dont understand this omnipotent benevolent thing.
The camerlegno
smiled. Youve been reading Scripture.
I try.
You are confused
because the Bible describes God as an omnipotent and benevolent deity.
Exactly.
Omnipotent
benevolent simply means that God is all powerful and well meaning.
I understand the
concept. Its just . . . there seems to be a contradiction.
Yes. The
contradiction is pain. Mans starvation, war, sickness . . .
Exactly!
Chartrand knew the camerlegno would understand. Terrible things happen in this
world. Human tragedy seems like proof that God could not possibly be both all
powerful and well meaning. If He loves us and has the power to change our
situation, He would prevent our pain, wouldnt He?
The camerlegno
frowned. Would He?
Chartrand felt uneasy.
Had he overstepped his bounds? Was this one of those religious questions you
just didnt ask? Well . . . if God loves us, and He can protect us, He would
have to. It seems He is either omnipotent and uncaring, or benevolent and
powerless to help.
Do you have
children, Lieutenant?
Chartrand
flushed. No, signore.
Imagine you had
an eight year old son . . . would you love him?
Of course.
Would you do
everything in your power to prevent pain in his life?
Of course.
Would you let
him skateboard?
Chartrand did a
double take. The camerlegno always seemed oddly in touch for a clergyman.
Yeah, I guess, Chartrand said. Sure, Id let him skateboard, but Id tell
him to be careful.
So as this
childs father, you would give him some basic, good advice and then let him go
off and make his own mistakes?
I wouldnt run
behind him and mollycoddle him if thats what you mean.
But what if he
fell and skinned his knee?
He would learn
to be more careful.
The camerlegno
smiled. So although you have the power to interfere and prevent your childs
pain, you would choose to show your love by letting him learn his own lessons?
Of course. Pain
is part of growing up. Its how we learn.
The camerlegno
nodded. Exactly.
90
Langdon and
Vittoria observed Piazza Barberini from the shadows of a small alleyway on the
western corner. The church was opposite them, a hazy cupola emerging from a
faint cluster of buildings across the square. The night had brought with it a
welcome cool, and Langdon was surprised to find the square deserted. Above
them, through open windows, blaring televisions reminded Langdon where everyone
had disappeared to.
. . . no comment
yet from the Vatican . . . Illuminati murders of two cardinals . . . satanic
presence in Rome . . . speculation about further infiltration . . .
The news had
spread like Neros fire. Rome sat riveted, as did the rest of the world.
Langdon wondered if they would really be able to stop this runaway train. As he
scanned the piazza and waited, Langdon realized that despite the encroachment
of modern buildings, the piazza still looked remarkably elliptical. High above,
like some sort of modern shrine to a bygone hero, an enormous neon sign blinked
on the roof of a luxurious hotel. Vittoria had already pointed it out to
Langdon. The sign seemed eerily befitting.
HOTEL BERNINI
Five of ten,
Vittoria said, cat eyes darting around the square. No sooner had she spoken the
words than she grabbed Langdons arm and pulled him back into the shadows. She
motioned into the center of the square.
Langdon followed
her gaze. When he saw it, he stiffened.
Crossing in front
of them, beneath a street lamp, two dark figures appeared. Both were cloaked,
their heads covered with dark mantles, the traditional black covering of
Catholic widows. Langdon would have guessed they were women, but he couldnt be
sure in the dark. One looked elderly and moved as if in pain, hunched over. The
other, larger and stronger, was helping.
Give me the
gun, Vittoria said.
You cant just
Fluid as a cat,
Vittoria was in and out of his pocket once again. The gun glinted in her hand.
Then, in absolute silence, as if her feet never touched the cobblestone, she
was circling left in the shadows, arching across the square to approach the
couple from the rear. Langdon stood transfixed as Vittoria disappeared. Then,
swearing to himself, he hurried after her.
The couple was
moving slowly, and it was only a matter of half a minute before Langdon and
Vittoria were positioned behind them, closing in from the rear. Vittoria
concealed the gun beneath casually crossed arms in front of her, out of sight
but accessible in a flash. She seemed to float faster and faster as the gap
lessened, and Langdon battled to keep up. When his shoes scuffed a stone and
sent it skittering, Vittoria shot him a sideways glare. But the couple did not
seem to hear. They were talking.
At thirty feet,
Langdon could start to hear voices. No words. Just faint murmurings. Beside
him, Vittoria moved faster with every step. Her arms loosened before her, the
gun starting to peek out. Twenty feet. The voices were clearerone much louder
than the other. Angry. Ranting. Langdon sensed it was the voice of an old
woman. Gruff. Androgynous. He strained to hear what she was saying, but another
voice cut the night.
Mi scusi!
Vittorias friendly tone lit the square like a torch.
Langdon tensed as
the cloaked couple stopped short and began to turn. Vittoria kept striding
toward them, even faster now, on a collision course. They would have no time to
react. Langdon realized his own feet had stopped moving. From behind, he saw
Vittorias arms loosening, her hand coming free, the gun swinging forward.
Then, over her shoulder, he saw a face, lit now in the street lamp. The panic
surged to his legs, and he lunged forward. Vittoria, no!
Vittoria,
however, seemed to exist a split second ahead of him. In a motion as swift as
it was casual, Vittorias arms were raised again, the gun disappearing as she
clutched herself like a woman on a chilly night. Langdon stumbled to her side,
almost colliding with the cloaked couple before them.
Buona sera,
Vittoria blurted, her voice startled with retreat.
Langdon exhaled
in relief. Two elderly women stood before them scowling out from beneath their
mantles. One was so old she could barely stand. The other was helping her. Both
clutched rosaries. They seemed confused by the sudden interruption.
Vittoria smiled,
although she looked shaken. Dovè la chiesa Santa Maria della Vittoria?
Where is the Church of
The two women
motioned in unison to a bulky silhouette of a building on an inclined street
from the direction they had come. È là.
Grazie, Langdon
said, putting his hands on Vittorias shoulders and gently pulling her back. He
couldnt believe theyd almost attacked a pair of old ladies.
Non si
puó entrare, one woman warned. È chiusa temprano.
Closed early?
Vittoria looked surprised. Perchè?
Both women
explained at once. They sounded irate. Langdon understood only parts of the
grumbling Italian. Apparently, the women had been inside the church fifteen
minutes ago praying for the Vatican in its time of need, when some man had
appeared and told them the church was closing early.
Hanno conosciuto
luomo? Vittoria demanded, sounding tense. Did you know the man?
The women shook
their heads. The man was a straniero crudo, they explained, and he had forcibly
made everyone inside leave, even the young priest and janitor, who said they
were calling the police. But the intruder had only laughed, telling them to be
sure the police brought cameras.
Cameras? Langdon
wondered.
The women clucked
angrily and called the man a bar rabo. Then, grumbling, they continued on
their way.
Bar
rabo?"Langdon asked Vittoria. A barbarian?
Vittoria looked
suddenly taut. Not quite. Bar rabo is derogatory wordplay. It means rabo . .
. Arab.
Langdon felt a
shiver and turned toward the outline of the church. As he did, his eyes
glimpsed something in the churchs stained glass windows. The image shot dread
through his body.
Unaware, Vittoria
removed her cell phone and pressed the auto dial. Im warning Olivetti.
Speechless,
Langdon reached out and touched her arm. With a tremulous hand, he pointed to
the church.
Vittoria let out
a gasp.
Inside the
building, glowing like evil eyes through the stained glass windows . . . shone
the growing flash of flames.
91
Langdon and
Vittoria dashed to the main entrance of the church of Santa Maria della
Vittoria and found the wooden door locked. Vittoria fired three shots from
Olivettis semi automatic into the ancient bolt, and it shattered.
The church had no
anteroom, so the entirety of the sanctuary spread out in one gasping sweep as
Langdon and Vittoria threw open the main door. The scene before them was so
unexpected, so bizarre, that Langdon had to close his eyes and reopen them
before his mind could take it all in.
The church was
lavish baroque . . . gilded walls and altars. Dead center of the sanctuary,
beneath the main cupola, wooden pews had been stacked high and were now ablaze
in some sort of epic funeral pyre. A bonfire shooting high into the dome. As
Langdons eyes followed the inferno upward, the true horror of the scene
descended like a bird of prey.
High overhead,
from the left and right sides of the ceiling, hung two incensor cableslines
used for swinging frankincense vessels above the congregation. These lines,
however, carried no incensors now. Nor were they swinging. They had been used
for something else . . .
Suspended from
the cables was a human being. A naked man. Each wrist had been connected to an
opposing cable, and he had been hoisted almost to the point of being torn
apart. His arms were outstretched in a spread eagle as if he were nailed to
some sort of invisible crucifix hovering within the house of God.
Langdon felt
paralyzed as he stared upward. A moment later, he witnessed the final
abomination. The old man was alive, and he raised his head. A pair of terrified
eyes gazed down in a silent plea for help. On the mans chest was a scorched
emblem. He had been branded. Langdon could not see it clearly, but he had
little doubt what the marking said. As the flames climbed higher, lapping at
the mans feet, the victim let out a cry of pain, his body trembling.
As if ignited by
some unseen force, Langdon felt his body suddenly in motion, dashing down the
main aisle toward the conflagration. His lungs filled with smoke as he closed
in. Ten feet from the inferno, at a full sprint, Langdon hit a wall of heat.
The skin on his face singed, and he fell back, shielding his eyes and landing
hard on the marble floor. Staggering upright, he pressed forward again, hands
raised in protection.
Instantly he
knew. The fire was far too hot.
Moving back
again, he scanned the chapel walls. A heavy tapestry, he thought. If I can
somehow smother the . . . But he knew a tapestry was not to be found. This is a
baroque chapel, Robert, not some damn German castle! Think! He forced his eyes
back to the suspended man.
High above, smoke
and flames swirled in the cupola. The incensor cables stretched outward from
the mans wrists, rising to the ceiling where they passed through pulleys, and
descended again to metal cleats on either side of the church. Langdon looked
over at one of the cleats. It was high on the wall, but he knew if he could get
to it and loosen one of the lines, the tension would slacken and the man would
swing wide of the fire.
A sudden surge of
flames crackled higher, and Langdon heard a piercing scream from above. The
skin on the mans feet was starting to blister. The cardinal was being roasted
alive. Langdon fixed his sights on the cleat and ran for it.
In the rear of
the church, Vittoria clutched the back of a pew, trying to gather her senses.
The image overhead was horrid. She forced her eyes away. Do something! She
wondered where Olivetti was. Had he seen the Hassassin? Had he caught him?
Where were they now? Vittoria moved forward to help Langdon, but as she did, a
sound stopped her.
The crackling of
the flames was getting louder by the instant, but a second sound also cut the
air. A metallic vibration. Nearby. The repetitive pulse seemed to emanate from
the end of the pews to her left. It was a stark rattle, like the ringing of a
phone, but stony and hard. She clutched the gun firmly and moved down the row
of pews. The sound grew louder. On. Off. A recurrent vibration.
As she approached
the end of the aisle, she sensed the sound was coming from the floor just
around the corner at the end of the pews. As she moved forward, gun
outstretched in her right hand, she realized she was also holding something in
her left handher cell phone. In her panic she had forgotten that outside she
had used it to dial the commander . . . setting off his phones silent vibration
feature as a warning. Vittoria raised her phone to her ear. It was still
ringing. The commander had never answered. Suddenly, with rising fear, Vittoria
sensed she knew what was making the sound. She stepped forward, trembling.
The entire church
seemed to sink beneath her feet as her eyes met the lifeless form on the floor.
No stream of liquid flowed from the body. No signs of violence tattooed the
flesh. There was only the fearful geometry of the commanders head . . .
torqued backward, twisted 180 degrees in the wrong direction. Vittoria fought
the images of her own fathers mangled body.
The phone on the
commanders belt lay against the floor, vibrating over and over against the
cold marble. Vittoria hung up her own phone, and the ringing stopped. In the
silence, Vittoria heard a new sound. A breathing in the dark directly behind
her.
She started to
spin, gun raised, but she knew she was too late. A laser beam of heat screamed
from the top of her skull to the soles of her feet as the killers elbow crashed
down on the back of her neck.
Now you are
mine, a voice said.
Then, everything
went black.
Across the
sanctuary, on the left lateral wall, Langdon balanced atop a pew and scraped
upward on the wall trying to reach the cleat. The cable was still six feet
above his head. Cleats like these were common in churches and were placed high
to prevent tampering. Langdon knew priests used wooden ladders called
piuòli to access the cleats. The killer had obviously used the churchs
ladder to hoist his victim. So where the hell is the ladder now! Langdon looked
down, searching the floor around him. He had a faint recollection of seeing a
ladder in here somewhere. But where? A moment later his heart sank. He realized
where he had seen it. He turned toward the raging fire. Sure enough, the ladder
was high atop the blaze, engulfed in flames.
Filled now with
desperation, Langdon scanned the entire church from his raised platform,
looking for anything at all that could help him reach the cleat. As his eyes
probed the church, he had a sudden realization.
Where the hell is
Vittoria? She had disappeared. Did she go for help? Langdon screamed out her
name, but there was no response. And where is Olivetti?
There was a howl
of pain from above, and Langdon sensed he was already too late. As his eyes
went skyward again and saw the slowly roasting victim, Langdon had thoughts for
only one thing. Water. Lots of it. Put out the fire. At least lower the
flames."I need water, damn it! he yelled out loud.
Thats next, a
voice growled from the back of the church.
Langdon wheeled,
almost falling off the pews.
Striding up the
side aisle directly toward him came a dark monster of a man. Even in the glow
of the fire, his eyes burned black. Langdon recognized the gun in his hand as
the one from his own jacket pocket . . . the one Vittoria had been carrying
when they came in.
The sudden wave
of panic that rose in Langdon was a frenzy of disjunct fears. His initial
instinct was for Vittoria. What had this animal done to her? Was she hurt? Or
worse ? In the same instant, Langdon realized the man overhead was screaming
louder. The cardinal would die. Helping him now was impossible. Then, as the
Hassassin leveled the gun at Langdons chest, Langdons panic turned inward,
his senses on overload. He reacted on instinct as the shot went off. Launching
off the bench, Langdon sailed arms first over the sea of church pews.
When he hit the
pews, he hit harder than he had imagined, immediately rolling to the floor. The
marble cushioned his fall with all the grace of cold steel. Footsteps closed to
his right. Langdon turned his body toward the front of the church and began
scrambling for his life beneath the pews.
High above the
chapel floor, Cardinal Guidera endured his last torturous moments of consciousness.
As he looked down the length of his naked body, he saw the skin on his legs
begin to blister and peel away. I am in hell, he decided. God, why hast thou
forsaken me? He knew this must be hell because he was looking at the brand on
his chest upside down . . . and yet, as if by the devils magic, the word made
perfect sense.
92
Three ballotings.
No Pope.
Inside the
Sistine Chapel, Cardinal Mortati had begun praying for a miracle. Send us the
candidates! The delay had gone long enough. A single missing candidate, Mortati
could understand. But all four? It left no options. Under these conditions,
achieving a two thirds majority would take an act of God Himself.
When the bolts on
the outer door began to grind open, Mortati and the entire College of Cardinals
wheeled in unison toward the entrance. Mortati knew this unsealing could mean
only one thing. By law, the chapel door could only be unsealed for two
reasonsto remove the very ill, or to admit late cardinals.
The preferiti are
coming!
Mortatis heart
soared. Conclave had been saved.
But when the door
opened, the gasp that echoed through the chapel was not one of joy. Mortati
stared in incredulous shock as the man walked in. For the first time in Vatican
history, a camerlegno had just crossed the sacred threshold of conclave after
sealing the doors.
What is he
thinking!
The camerlegno
strode to the altar and turned to address the thunderstruck audience.
Signori, he said, I have waited as long as I can. There is something you
have a right to know.
93
Langdon had no
idea where he was going. Reflex was his only compass, driving him away from
danger. His elbows and knees burned as he clambered beneath the pews. Still he
clawed on. Somewhere a voice was telling him to move left. If you can get to
the main aisle, you can dash for the exit. He knew it was impossible. Theres a
wall of flames blocking the main aisle! His mind hunting for options, Langdon
scrambled blindly on. The footsteps closed faster now to his right.
When it happened,
Langdon was unprepared. He had guessed he had another ten feet of pews until he
reached the front of the church. He had guessed wrong. Without warning, the
cover above him ran out. He froze for an instant, half exposed at the front of
the church. Rising in the recess to his left, gargantuan from this vantage
point, was the very thing that had brought him here. He had entirely forgotten.
Berninis Ecstasy of St. Teresa rose up like some sort of pornographic still
life . . . the saint on her back, arched in pleasure, mouth open in a moan, and
over her, an angel pointing his spear of fire.
A bullet exploded
in the pew over Langdons head. He felt his body rise like a sprinter out of a
gate. Fueled only by adrenaline, and barely conscious of his actions, he was
suddenly running, hunched, head down, pounding across the front of the church
to his right. As the bullets erupted behind him, Langdon dove yet again,
sliding out of control across the marble floor before crashing in a heap
against the railing of a niche on the right hand wall.
It was then that
he saw her. A crumpled heap near the back of the church. Vittoria! Her bare
legs were twisted beneath her, but Langdon sensed somehow that she was
breathing. He had no time to help her.
Immediately, the
killer rounded the pews on the far left of the church and bore relentlessly
down. Langdon knew in a heartbeat it was over. The killer raised the weapon,
and Langdon did the only thing he could do. He rolled his body over the
banister into the niche. As he hit the floor on the other side, the marble
columns of the balustrade exploded in a storm of bullets.
Langdon felt like
a cornered animal as he scrambled deeper into the semicircular niche. Rising
before him, the niches sole contents seemed ironically aproposa single
sarcophagus. Mine perhaps, Langdon thought. Even the casket itself seemed
fitting. It was a sctola a small, unadorned, marble box. Burial on a budget.
The casket was raised off the floor on two marble blocks, and Langdon eyed the
opening beneath it, wondering if he could slide through.
Footsteps echoed
behind him.
With no other
option in sight, Langdon pressed himself to the floor and slithered toward the
casket. Grabbing the two marble supports, one with each hand, he pulled like a
breaststroker, dragging his torso into the opening beneath the tomb. The gun
went off.
Accompanying the
roar of the gun, Langdon felt a sensation he had never felt in his life . . . a
bullet sailing past his flesh. There was a hiss of wind, like the backlash of a
whip, as the bullet just missed him and exploded in the marble with a puff of
dust. Blood surging, Langdon heaved his body the rest of the way beneath the
casket. Scrambling across the marble floor, he pulled himself out from beneath
the casket and to the other side.
Dead end.
Langdon was now
face to face with the rear wall of the niche. He had no doubt that this tiny
space behind the tomb would become his grave. And soon, he realized, as he saw
the barrel of the gun appear in the opening beneath the sarcophagus. The
Hassassin held the weapon parallel with the floor, pointing directly at
Langdons midsection.
Impossible to
miss.
Langdon felt a
trace of self preservation grip his unconscious mind. He twisted his body onto
his stomach, parallel with the casket. Facedown, he planted his hands flat on
the floor, the glass cut from the archives pinching open with a stab. Ignoring
the pain, he pushed. Driving his body upward in an awkward push up, Langdon
arched his stomach off the floor just as the gun went off. He could feel the
shock wave of the bullets as they sailed beneath him and pulverized the porous
travertine behind. Closing his eyes and straining against exhaustion, Langdon
prayed for the thunder to stop.
And then it did.
The roar of
gunfire was replaced with the cold click of an empty chamber.
Langdon opened
his eyes slowly, almost fearful his eyelids would make a sound. Fighting the
trembling pain, he held his position, arched like a cat. He didnt even dare
breathe. His eardrums numbed by gunfire, Langdon listened for any hint of the
killers departure. Silence. He thought of Vittoria and ached to help her.
The sound that
followed was deafening. Barely human. A guttural bellow of exertion.
The sarcophagus
over Langdons head suddenly seemed to rise on its side. Langdon collapsed on
the floor as hundreds of pounds teetered toward him. Gravity overcame friction,
and the lid was the first to go, sliding off the tomb and crashing to the floor
beside him. The casket came next, rolling off its supports and toppling upside
down toward Langdon.
As the box
rolled, Langdon knew he would either be entombed in the hollow beneath it or
crushed by one of the edges. Pulling in his legs and head, Langdon compacted
his body and yanked his arms to his sides. Then he closed his eyes and awaited
the sickening crush.
When it came, the
entire floor shook beneath him. The upper rim landed only millimeters from the
top of his head, rattling his teeth in their sockets. His right arm, which
Langdon had been certain would be crushed, miraculously still felt intact. He
opened his eyes to see a shaft of light. The right rim of the casket had not
fallen all the way to the floor and was still propped partially on its
supports. Directly overhead, though, Langdon found himself staring quite
literally into the face of death.
The original
occupant of the tomb was suspended above him, having adhered, as decaying
bodies often did, to the bottom of the casket. The skeleton hovered a moment,
like a tentative lover, and then with a sticky crackling, it succumbed to
gravity and peeled away. The carcass rushed down to embrace him, raining putrid
bones and dust into Langdons eyes and mouth.
Before Langdon
could react, a blind arm was slithering through the opening beneath the casket,
sifting through the carcass like a hungry python. It groped until it found
Langdons neck and clamped down. Langdon tried to fight back against the iron
fist now crushing his larynx, but he found his left sleeve pinched beneath the
edge of the coffin. He had only one arm free, and the fight was a losing
battle.
Langdons legs
bent in the only open space he had, his feet searching for the casket floor
above him. He found it. Coiling, he planted his feet. Then, as the hand around
his neck squeezed tighter, Langdon closed his eyes and extended his legs like a
ram. The casket shifted, ever so slightly, but enough.
With a raw
grinding, the sarcophagus slid off the supports and landed on the floor. The
casket rim crashed onto the killers arm, and there was a muffled scream of
pain. The hand released Langdons neck, twisting and jerking away into the
dark. When the killer finally pulled his arm free, the casket fell with a
conclusive thud against the flat marble floor.
Complete
darkness. Again.
And silence.
There was no
frustrated pounding outside the overturned sarcophagus. No prying to get in.
Nothing. As Langdon lay in the dark amidst a pile of bones, he fought the
closing darkness and turned his thoughts to her.
Vittoria. Are you
alive?
If Langdon had
known the truththe horror to which Vittoria would soon awakehe would have
wished for her sake that she were dead.
94
Sitting in the
Sistine Chapel among his stunned colleagues, Cardinal Mortati tried to
comprehend the words he was hearing. Before him, lit only by the candlelight,
the camerlegno had just told a tale of such hatred and treachery that Mortati
found himself trembling. The camerlegno spoke of kidnapped cardinals, branded
cardinals, murdered cardinals. He spoke of the ancient Illuminatia name that
dredged up forgotten fearsand of their resurgence and vow of revenge against
the church. With pain in his voice, the camerlegno spoke of his late Pope . . .
the victim of an Illuminati poisoning. And finally, his words almost a whisper,
he spoke of a deadly new technology, antimatter, which in less than two hours threatened
to destroy all of Vatican City.
When he was
through, it was as if Satan himself had sucked the air from the room. Nobody
could move. The camerlegnos words hung in the darkness.
The only sound
Mortati could now hear was the anomalous hum of a television camera in backan
electronic presence no conclave in history had ever enduredbut a presence
demanded by the camerlegno. To the utter astonishment of the cardinals, the
camerlegno had entered the Sistine Chapel with two BBC reportersa man and a womanand
announced that they would be transmitting his solemn statement, live to the
world.
Now, speaking
directly to the camera, the camerlegno stepped forward. To the Illuminati, he
said, his voice deepening, and to those of science, let me say this. He
paused. You have won the war.
The silence
spread now to the deepest corners of the chapel. Mortati could hear the
desperate thumping of his own heart.
The wheels have
been in motion for a long time, the camerlegno said. Your victory has been
inevitable. Never before has it been as obvious as it is at this moment.
Science is the new God.
What is he
saying? Mortati thought. Has he gone mad? The entire world is hearing this!
Medicine,
electronic communications, space travel, genetic manipulation . . . these are
the miracles about which we now tell our children. These are the miracles we
herald as proof that science will bring us the answers. The ancient stories of
immaculate conceptions, burning bushes, and parting seas are no longer
relevant. God has become obsolete. Science has won the battle. We concede.
A rustle of
confusion and bewilderment swept through the chapel.
But sciences
victory, the camerlegno added, his voice intensifying, has cost every one of
us. And it has cost us deeply.
Silence.
Science may have
alleviated the miseries of disease and drudgery and provided an array of
gadgetry for our entertainment and convenience, but it has left us in a world
without wonder. Our sunsets have been reduced to wavelengths and frequencies. The
complexities of the universe have been shredded into mathematical equations.
Even our self worth as human beings has been destroyed. Science proclaims that
Planet Earth and its inhabitants are a meaningless speck in the grand scheme. A
cosmic accident. He paused. Even the technology that promises to unite us,
divides us. Each of us is now electronically connected to the globe, and yet we
feel utterly alone. We are bombarded with violence, division, fracture, and
betrayal. Skepticism has become a virtue. Cynicism and demand for proof has
become enlightened thought. Is it any wonder that humans now feel more
depressed and defeated than they have at any point in human history? Does
science hold anything sacred? Science looks for answers by probing our unborn
fetuses. Science even presumes to rearrange our own DNA. It shatters Gods
world into smaller and smaller pieces in quest of meaning . . . and all it
finds is more questions.
Mortati watched
in awe. The camerlegno was almost hypnotic now. He had a physical strength in
his movements and voice that Mortati had never witnessed on a Vatican altar.
The mans voice was wrought with conviction and sadness.
The ancient war
between science and religion is over, the camerlegno said. You have won. But
you have not won fairly. You have not won by providing answers. You have won by
so radically reorienting our society that the truths we once saw as signposts
now seem inapplicable. Religion cannot keep up. Scientific growth is
exponential. It feeds on itself like a virus. Every new breakthrough opens
doors for new breakthroughs. Mankind took thousands of years to progress from
the wheel to the car. Yet only decades from the car into space. Now we measure
scientific progress in weeks. We are spinning out of control. The rift between
us grows deeper and deeper, and as religion is left behind, people find
themselves in a spiritual void. We cry out for meaning. And believe me, we do
cry out. We see UFOs, engage in channeling, spirit contact, out of body
experiences, mindquestsall these eccentric ideas have a scientific veneer, but
they are unashamedly irrational. They are the desperate cry of the modern soul,
lonely and tormented, crippled by its own enlightenment and its inability to
accept meaning in anything removed from technology.
Mortati could
feel himself leaning forward in his seat. He and the other cardinals and people
around the world were hanging on this priests every utterance. The camerlegno
spoke with no rhetoric or vitriol. No references to scripture or Jesus Christ.
He spoke in modern terms, unadorned and pure. Somehow, as though the words were
flowing from God himself, he spoke the modern language . . . delivering the
ancient message. In that moment, Mortati saw one of the reasons the late Pope
held this young man so dear. In a world of apathy, cynicism, and technological
deification, men like the camerlegno, realists who could speak to our souls
like this man just had, were the churchs only hope.
The camerlegno
was talking more forcefully now. Science, you say, will save us. Science, I
say, has destroyed us. Since the days of Galileo, the church has tried to slow
the relentless march of science, sometimes with misguided means, but always
with benevolent intention. Even so, the temptations are too great for man to
resist. I warn you, look around yourselves. The promises of science have not
been kept. Promises of efficiency and simplicity have bred nothing but
pollution and chaos. We are a fractured and frantic species . . . moving down a
path of destruction.
The camerlegno
paused a long moment and then sharpened his eyes on the camera.
Who is this God
science? Who is the God who offers his people power but no moral framework to
tell you how to use that power? What kind of God gives a child fire but does
not warn the child of its dangers? The language of science comes with no
signposts about good and bad. Science textbooks tell us how to create a nuclear
reaction, and yet they contain no chapter asking us if it is a good or a bad
idea.
To science, I
say this. The church is tired. We are exhausted from trying to be your
signposts. Our resources are drying up from our campaign to be the voice of
balance as you plow blindly on in your quest for smaller chips and larger
profits. We ask not why you will not govern yourselves, but how can you? Your
world moves so fast that if you stop even for an instant to consider the
implications of your actions, someone more efficient will whip past you in a
blur. So you move on. You proliferate weapons of mass destruction, but it is
the Pope who travels the world beseeching leaders to use restraint. You clone
living creatures, but it is the church reminding us to consider the moral
implications of our actions. You encourage people to interact on phones, video
screens, and computers, but it is the church who opens its doors and reminds us
to commune in person as we were meant to do. You even murder unborn babies in
the name of research that will save lives. Again, it is the church who points
out the fallacy of this reasoning.
And all the
while, you proclaim the church is ignorant. But who is more ignorant? The man
who cannot define lightning, or the man who does not respect its awesome power?
This church is reaching out to you. Reaching out to everyone. And yet the more
we reach, the more you push us away. Show me proof there is a God, you say. I
say use your telescopes to look to the heavens, and tell me how there could not
be a God! The camerlegno had tears in his eyes now. You ask what does God
look like. I say, where did that question come from? The answers are one and
the same. Do you not see God in your science? How can you miss Him! You
proclaim that even the slightest change in the force of gravity or the weight
of an atom would have rendered our universe a lifeless mist rather than our
magnificent sea of heavenly bodies, and yet you fail to see Gods hand in this
? Is it really so much easier to believe that we simply chose the right card
from a deck of billions? Have we become so spiritually bankrupt that we would rather
believe in mathematical impossibility than in a power greater than us?
Whether or not
you believe in God, the camerlegno said, his voice deepening with
deliberation, you must believe this. When we as a species abandon our trust in
the power greater than us, we abandon our sense of accountability. Faith . . .
all faiths . . . are admonitions that there is something we cannot understand,
something to which we are accountable . . . With faith we are accountable to
each other, to ourselves, and to a higher truth. Religion is flawed, but only
because man is flawed. If the outside world could see this church as I do . . .
looking beyond the ritual of these walls . . . they would see a modern miracle
. . . a brotherhood of imperfect, simple souls wanting only to be a voice of
compassion in a world spinning out of control.
The camerlegno
motioned out over the College of Cardinals, and the BBC camerawoman
instinctively followed, panning the crowd.
Are we
obsolete? the camerlegno asked. Are these men dino saurs? Am I? Does the
world really need a voice for the poor, the weak, the oppressed, the unborn
child? Do we really need souls like these who, though imperfect, spend their
lives imploring each of us to read the signposts of morality and not lose our
way?
Mortati now
realized that the camerlegno, whether consciously or not, was making a
brilliant move. By showing the cardinals, he was personalizing the church.
Vatican City was no longer a building, it was people people like the
camerlegno who had spent their lives in the service of goodness.
Tonight we are
perched on a precipice, the camerlegno said. None of us can afford to be
apathetic. Whether you see this evil as Satan, corruption, or immorality . . .
the dark force is alive and growing every day. Do not ignore it. The
camerlegno lowered his voice to a whisper, and the camera moved in. The force,
though mighty, is not invincible. Goodness can prevail. Listen to your hearts.
Listen to God. Together we can step back from this abyss.
Now Mortati understood.
This was the reason. Conclave had been violated, but this was the only way. It
was a dramatic and desperate plea for help. The camerlegno was speaking to both
his enemy and his friends now. He was entreating anyone, friend or foe, to see
the light and stop this madness. Certainly someone listening would realize the
insanity of this plot and come forward.
The camerlegno
knelt at the altar. Pray with me.
The College of
Cardinals dropped to their knees to join him in prayer. Outside in St. Peters
Square and around the globe . . . a stunned world knelt with them.
95
The Hassassin lay
his unconscious trophy in the rear of the van and took a moment to admire her
sprawled body. She was not as beautiful as the women he bought, and yet she had
an animal strength that excited him. Her body was radiant, dewy with
perspiration. She smelled of musk.
As the Hassasin
stood there savoring his prize, he ignored the throb in his arm. The bruise
from the falling sarcophagus, although painful, was insignificant . . . well
worth the compensation that lay before him. He took consolation in knowing the
American who had done this to him was probably dead by now.
Gazing down at
his incapacitated prisoner, the Hassassin visualized what lay ahead. He ran a
palm up beneath her shirt. Her breasts felt perfect beneath her bra. Yes, he
smiled. You are more than worthy. Fighting the urge to take her right there, he
closed the door and drove off into the night.
There was no need
to alert the press about this killing . . . the flames would do that for him.
At CERN, Sylvie
sat stunned by the camerlegnos address. Never before had she felt so proud to
be a Catholic and so ashamed to work at CERN. As she left the recreational
wing, the mood in every single viewing room was dazed and somber. When she got
back to Kohlers office, all seven phone lines were ringing. Media inquiries
were never routed to Kohlers office, so the incoming calls could only be one
thing.
Geld. Money
calls.
Antimatter
technology already had some takers.
Inside the
Vatican, Gunther Glick was walking on air as he followed the camerlegno from
the Sistine Chapel. Glick and Macri had just made the live transmission of the
decade. And what a transmission it had been. The camerlegno had been
spellbinding.
Now out in the
hallway, the camerlegno turned to Glick and Macri. I have asked the Swiss
Guard to assemble photos for youphotos of the branded cardinals as well as one
of His late Holiness. I must warn you, these are not pleasant pictures. Ghastly
burns. Blackened tongues. But I would like you to broadcast them to the world.
Glick decided it
must be perpetual Christmas inside Vatican City. He wants me to broadcast an
exclusive photo of the dead Pope? Are you sure? Glick asked, trying to keep
the excitement from his voice.
The camerlegno
nodded. The Swiss Guard will also provide you a live video feed of the
antimatter canister as it counts down.
Glick stared.
Christmas. Christmas. Christmas!
The Illuminati
are about to find out, the camerlegno declared, that they have grossly
overplayed their hand.
96
Like a recurring
theme in some demonic symphony, the suffocating darkness had returned.
No light. No air.
No exit.
Langdon lay
trapped beneath the overturned sarcophagus and felt his mind careening dangerously
close to the brink. Trying to drive his thoughts in any direction other than
the crushing space around him, Langdon urged his mind toward some logical
process . . . mathematics, music, anything. But there was no room for calming
thoughts. I cant move! I cant breathe!
The pinched
sleeve of his jacket had thankfully come free when the casket fell, leaving
Langdon now with two mobile arms. Even so, as he pressed upward on the ceiling
of his tiny cell, he found it immovable. Oddly, he wished his sleeve were still
caught. At least it might create a crack for some air.
As Langdon pushed
against the roof above, his sleeve fell back to reveal the faint glow of an old
friend. Mickey. The greenish cartoon face seemed mocking now.
Langdon probed
the blackness for any other sign of light, but the casket rim was flush against
the floor. Goddamn Italian perfectionists, he cursed, now imperiled by the same
artistic excellence he taught his students to revere . . . impeccable edges,
faultless parallels, and of course, use only of the most seamless and resilient
Carrara marble.
Precision can be
suffocating.
Lift the damn
thing, he said aloud, pressing harder through the tangle of bones. The box
shifted slightly. Setting his jaw, he heaved again. The box felt like a boulder,
but this time it raised a quarter of an inch. A fleeting glimmer of light
surrounded him, and then the casket thudded back down. Langdon lay panting in
the dark. He tried to use his legs to lift as he had before, but now that the
sarcophagus had fallen flat, there was no room even to straighten his knees.
As the
claustrophobic panic closed in, Langdon was overcome by images of the
sarcophagus shrinking around him. Squeezed by delirium, he fought the illusion
with every logical shred of intellect he had.
Sarcophagus, he
stated aloud, with as much academic sterility as he could muster. But even
erudition seemed to be his enemy today. Sarcophagus is from the Greek
sarx"meaning flesh, and phagein meaning to eat. Im trapped in a
box literally designed to eat flesh.
Images of flesh
eaten from bone only served as a grim reminder that Langdon lay covered in
human remains. The notion brought nausea and chills. But it also brought an
idea.
Fumbling blindly
around the coffin, Langdon found a shard of bone. A rib maybe? He didnt care.
All he wanted was a wedge. If he could lift the box, even a crack, and slide
the bone fragment beneath the rim, then maybe enough air could . . .
Reaching across
his body and wedging the tapered end of the bone into the crack between the
floor and the coffin, Langdon reached up with his other hand and heaved
skyward. The box did not move. Not even slightly. He tried again. For a moment,
it seemed to tremble slightly, but that was all.
With the fetid
stench and lack of oxygen choking the strength from his body, Langdon realized
he only had time for one more effort. He also knew he would need both arms.
Regrouping, he
placed the tapered edge of the bone against the crack, and shifting his body,
he wedged the bone against his shoulder, pinning it in place. Careful not to
dislodge it, he raised both hands above him. As the stifling confine began to
smother him, he felt a welling of intensified panic. It was the second time
today he had been trapped with no air. Hollering aloud, Langdon thrust upward
in one explosive motion. The casket jostled off the floor for an instant. But
long enough. The bone shard he had braced against his shoulder slipped outward
into the widening crack. When the casket fell again, the bone shattered. But
this time Langdon could see the casket was propped up. A tiny slit of light
showed beneath the rim.
Exhausted,
Langdon collapsed. Hoping the strangling sensation in his throat would pass, he
waited. But it only worsened as the seconds passed. Whatever air was coming
through the slit seemed imperceptible. Langdon wondered if it would be enough
to keep him alive. And if so, for how long? If he passed out, who would know he
was even in there?
With arms like
lead, Langdon raised his watch again: 10:12 P.M. Fighting trembling fingers, he
fumbled with the watch and made his final play. He twisted one of the tiny
dials and pressed a button.
As consciousness
faded, and the walls squeezed closer, Langdon felt the old fears sweep over
him. He tried to imagine, as he had so many times, that he was in an open
field. The image he conjured, however, was no help. The nightmare that had
haunted him since his youth came crashing back . . .
The flowers here
are like paintings, the child thought, laughing as he ran across the meadow. He
wished his parents had come along. But his parents were busy pitching camp.
Dont explore
too far, his mother had said.
He had pretended
not to hear as he bounded off into the woods.
Now, traversing
this glorious field, the boy came across a pile of fieldstones. He figured it
must be the foundation of an old homestead. He would not go near it. He knew
better. Besides, his eyes had been drawn to something elsea brilliant ladys
slipperthe rarest and most beautiful flower in New Hampshire. He had only ever
seen them in books.
Excited, the boy
moved toward the flower. He knelt down. The ground beneath him felt mulchy and
hollow. He realized his flower had found an extra fertile spot. It was growing
from a patch of rotting wood.
Thrilled by the
thought of taking home his prize, the boy reached out . . . fingers extending
toward the stem.
He never reached
it.
With a sickening
crack, the earth gave way.
In the three
seconds of dizzying terror as he fell, the boy knew he would die. Plummeting
downward, he braced for the bone crushing collision. When it came, there was no
pain. Only softness.
And cold.
He hit the deep
liquid face first, plunging into a narrow blackness. Spinning disoriented
somersaults, he groped the sheer walls thatenclosed him on all sides. Somehow,
as if by instinct, he sputtered to the surface.
Light.
Faint. Above him.
Miles above him, it seemed.
His arms clawed
at the water, searching the walls of the hollow for something to grab onto.
Only smooth stone. He had fallen through an abandoned well covering. He
screamed for help, but his cries reverberated in the tight shaft. He called out
again and again. Above him, the tattered hole grew dim.
Night fell.
Time seemed to
contort in the darkness. Numbness set in as he treaded water in the depths of
the chasm, calling, crying out. He was tormented by visions of the walls
collapsing in, burying him alive. His arms ached with fatigue. A few times he
thought he heard voices. He shouted out, but his own voice was muted . . . like
a dream.
As the night wore
on, the shaft deepened. The walls inched quietly inward. The boy pressed out
against the enclosure, pushing it away. Exhausted, he wanted to give up. And
yet he felt the water buoy him, cooling his burning fears until he was numb.
When the rescue
team arrived, they found the boy barely conscious. He had been treading water
for five hours. Two days later, the Boston Globe ran a front page story called
The Little Swimmer That Could.
97
The Hassassin
smiled as he pulled his van into the mammoth stone structure overlooking the
Tiber River. He carried his prize up and up . . . spiraling higher in the stone
tunnel, grateful his load was slender.
He arrived at the
door.
The Church of
Illumination, he gloated. The ancient Illuminati meeting room. Who would have
imagined it to be here?
Inside, he lay
her on a plush divan. Then he expertly bound her arms behind her back and tied
her feet. He knew that what he longed for would have to wait until his final
task was finished. Water.
Still, he
thought, he had a moment for indulgence. Kneeling beside her, he ran his hand
along her thigh. It was smooth. Higher. His dark fingers snaked beneath the
cuff of her shorts. Higher.
He stopped.
Patience, he told himself, feeling aroused. There is work to be done.
He walked for a
moment out onto the chambers high stone balcony. The evening breeze slowly
cooled his ardor. Far below the Tiber raged. He raised his eyes to the dome of
St. Peters, three quarters of a mile away, naked under the glare of hundreds
of press lights.
Your final
hour, he said aloud, picturing the thousands of Muslims slaughtered during the
Crusades. At midnight you will meet your God.
Behind him, the
woman stirred. The Hassassin turned. He considered letting her wake up. Seeing
terror in a womans eyes was his ultimate aphrodisiac.
He opted for
prudence. It would be better if she remained unconscious while he was gone.
Although she was tied and would never escape, the Hassassin did not want to
return and find her exhausted from struggling. I want your strength preserved .
. . for me.
Lifting her head
slightly, he placed his palm beneath her neck and found the hollow directly
beneath her skull. The crown/meridian pressure point was one he had used
countless times. With crushing force, he drove his thumb into the soft
cartilage and felt it depress. The woman slumped instantly. Twenty minutes, he
thought. She would be a tantalizing end to a perfect day. After she had served
him and died doing it, he would stand on the balcony and watch the midnight
Vatican fireworks.
Leaving his prize
unconscious on the couch, the Hassassin went downstairs into a torchlit
dungeon. The final task. He walked to the table and revered the sacred, metal
forms that had been left there for him.
Water. It was his
last.
Removing a torch
from the wall as he had done three times already, he began heating the end.
When the end of the object was white hot, he carried it to the cell.
Inside, a single
man stood in silence. Old and alone.
Cardinal
Baggia, the killer hissed. Have you prayed yet?
The Italians
eyes were fearless. Only for your soul.
98
The six pompieri
firemen who responded to the fire at the Church of Santa Maria Della Vittoria
extinguished the bonfire with blasts of Halon gas. Water was cheaper, but the
steam it created would have ruined the frescoes in the chapel, and the Vatican
paid Roman pompieri a healthy stipend for swift and prudent service in all
Vatican owned buildings.
Pompieri, by the
nature of their work, witnessed tragedy almost daily, but the execution in this
church was something none of them would ever forget. Part crucifixion, part
hanging, part burning at the stake, the scene was something dredged from a
Gothic nightmare.
Unfortunately,
the press, as usual, had arrived before the fire department. Theyd shot plenty
of video before the pompieri cleared the church. When the firemen finally cut
the victim down and lay him on the floor, there was no doubt who the man was.
Cardinale
Guidera, one whispered. Di Barcellona.
The victim was
nude. The lower half of his body was crimson black, blood oozing through gaping
cracks in his thighs. His shinbones were exposed. One fireman vomited. Another
went outside to breathe.
The true horror,
though, was the symbol seared on the cardinals chest. The squad chief circled
the corpse in awestruck dread. Lavoro del diavolo, he said to himself. Satan
himself did this. He crossed himself for the first time since childhood.
Un altro corpo!
someone yelled. One of the firemen had found another body.
The second victim
was a man the chief recognized immediately. The austere commander of the Swiss
Guard was a man for whom few public law enforcement officials had any
affection. The chief called the Vatican, but all the circuits were busy. He
knew it didnt matter. The Swiss Guard would hear about this on television in a
matter of minutes.
As the chief
surveyed the damage, trying to recreate what possibly could have gone on here,
he saw a niche riddled with bullet holes. A coffin had been rolled off its
supports and fallen upside down in an apparent struggle. It was a mess. Thats
for the police and Holy See to deal with, the chief thought, turning away.
As he turned,
though, he stopped. Coming from the coffin he heard a sound. It was not a sound
any fireman ever liked to hear.
Bomba! he cried
out. Tutti fuori!
When the bomb
squad rolled the coffin over, they discovered the source of the electronic
beeping. They stared, confused.
Mèdico!
one finally screamed. Mèdico!
99
Any word from
Olivetti? the camerlegno asked, looking drained as Rocher escorted him back
from the Sistine Chapel to the Popes office.
No, signore. I
am fearing the worst.
When they reached
the Popes office, the camerlegnos voice was heavy. Captain, there is nothing
more I can do here tonight. I fear I have done too much already. I am going
into this office to pray. I do not wish to be disturbed. The rest is in Gods
hands.
Yes, signore.
The hour is
late, Captain. Find that canister.
Our search
continues. Rocher hesitated. The weapon proves to be too well hidden.
The camerlegno
winced, as if he could not think of it. Yes. At exactly 11:15 P.M . . . if the
church is still in peril, I want you to evacuate the cardinals. I am putting
their safety in your hands. I ask only one thing. Let these men proceed from
this place with dignity. Let them exit into St. Peters Square and stand side
by side with the rest of the world. I do not want the last image of this church
to be frightened old men sneaking out a back door.
Very good,
signore. And you? Shall I come for you at 11:15 as well?
There will be no
need.
Signore?
I will leave
when the spirit moves me.
Rocher wondered
if the camerlegno intended to go down with the ship.
The camerlegno
opened the door to the Popes office and entered. Actually . . . he said,
turning. There is one thing.
Signore?
There seems to
be a chill in this office tonight. I am trembling.
The electric
heat is out. Let me lay you a fire.
The camerlegno
smiled tiredly. Thank you. Thank you, very much.
Rocher exited the
Popes office where he had left the camerlegno praying by firelight in front of
a small statue of the Blessed Mother Mary. It was an eerie sight. A black
shadow kneeling in the flickering glow. As Rocher headed down the hall, a guard
appeared, running toward him. Even by candlelight Rocher recognized Lieutenant
Chartrand. Young, green, and eager.
Captain,
Chartrand called, holding out a cellular phone. I think the camerlegnos
address may have worked. Weve got a caller here who says he has information
that can help us. He phoned on one of the Vaticans private extensions. I have
no idea how he got the number.
Rocher stopped.
What?
He will only
speak to the ranking officer.
Any word from
Olivetti?
No, sir.
He took the
receiver. This is Captain Rocher. I am ranking officer here.
Rocher, the
voice said. I will explain to you who I am. Then I will tell you what you are
going to do next.
When the caller
stopped talking and hung up, Rocher stood stunned. He now knew from whom he was
taking orders.
Back at CERN,
Sylvie Baudeloque was frantically trying to keep track of all the licensing
inquiries coming in on Kohlers voice mail. When the private line on the
directors desk began to ring, Sylvie jumped. Nobody had that number. She
answered.
Yes?
Ms. Baudeloque?
This is Director Kohler. Contact my pilot. My jet is to be ready in five
minutes.
100
Robert Langdon
had no idea where he was or how long he had been unconscious when he opened his
eyes and found himself staring up at the underside of a baroque, frescoed
cupola. Smoke drifted overhead. Something was covering his mouth. An oxygen
mask. He pulled it off. There was a terrible smell in the roomlike burning
flesh.
Langdon winced at
the pounding in his head. He tried to sit up. A man in white was kneeling
beside him.
Riposati! the
man said, easing Langdon onto his back again. Sono il paramédico.
Langdon
succumbed, his head spiraling like the smoke overhead. What the hell happened?
Wispy feelings of panic sifted through his mind.
Sórcio
salvatore, the paramedic said. Mouse . . . savior.
Langdon felt even
more lost. Mouse savior?
The man motioned
to the Mickey Mouse watch on Langdons wrist. Langdons thoughts began to
clear. He remembered setting the alarm. As he stared absently at the watch
face, Langdon also noted the hour. 10:28 P.M.
He sat bolt
upright.
Then, it all came
back.
Langdon stood
near the main altar with the fire chief and a few of his men. They had been
rattling him with questions. Langdon wasnt listening. He had questions of his
own. His whole body ached, but he knew he needed to act immediately.
A pompiero
approached Langdon across the church. I checked again, sir. The only bodies we
found are Cardinal Guidera and the Swiss Guard commander. Theres no sign of a
woman here.
Grazie, Langdon
said, unsure whether he was relieved or horrified. He knew he had seen Vittoria
unconscious on the floor. Now she was gone. The only explanation he came up
with was not a comforting one. The killer had not been subtle on the phone. A
woman of spirit. I am aroused. Perhaps before this night is over, I will find
you. And when I do . . .
Langdon looked
around. Where is the Swiss Guard?
Still no
contact. Vatican lines are jammed.
Langdon felt
overwhelmed and alone. Olivetti was dead. The cardinal was dead. Vittoria was
missing. A half hour of his life had disappeared in a blink.
Outside, Langdon
could hear the press swarming. He suspected footage of the third cardinals
horrific death would no doubt air soon, if it hadnt already. Langdon hoped the
camerlegno had long since assumed the worst and taken action. Evacuate the damn
Vatican! Enough games! We lose!
Langdon suddenly
realized that all of the catalysts that had been driving himhelping to save
Vatican City, rescuing the four cardinals, coming face to face with the
brotherhood he had studied for yearsall of these things had evaporated from
his mind. The war was lost. A new compulsion had ignited within him. It was
simple. Stark. Primal.
Find Vittoria.
He felt an
unexpected emptiness inside. Langdon had often heard that intense situations
could unite two people in ways that decades together often did not. He now
believed it. In Vittorias absence he felt something he had not felt in years.
Loneliness. The pain gave him strength.
Pushing all else
from his mind, Langdon mustered his concentration. He prayed that the Hassassin
would take care of business before pleasure. Otherwise, Langdon knew he was
already too late. No, he told himself, you have time. Vittorias captor still
had work to do. He had to surface one last time before disappearing forever.
The last altar of
science, Langdon thought. The killer had one final task. Earth. Air. Fire.
Water.
He looked at his
watch. Thirty minutes. Langdon moved past the firemen toward Berninis Ecstasy
of St. Teresa. This time, as he stared at Berninis marker, Langdon had no
doubt what he was looking for.
Let angels guide
you on your lofty quest . . .
Directly over the
recumbent saint, against a backdrop of gilded flame, hovered Berninis angel.
The angels hand clutched a pointed spear of fire. Langdons eyes followed the
direction of the shaft, arching toward the right side of the church. His eyes hit
the wall. He scanned the spot where the spear was pointing. There was nothing
there. Langdon knew, of course, the spear was pointing far beyond the wall,
into the night, somewhere across Rome.
What direction
is that? Langdon asked, turning and addressing the chief with a newfound
determination.
Direction? The
chief glanced where Langdon was pointing. He sounded confused. I dont know .
. . west, I think.
What churches
are in that direction?
The chiefs
puzzlement seemed to deepen. Dozens. Why?
Langdon frowned.
Of course there were dozens. I need a city map. Right away.
The chief sent
someone running out to the fire truck for a map. Langdon turned back to the
statue. Earth . . . Air . . . Fire . . . VITTORIA.
The final marker
is Water, he told himself. Berninis Water. It was in a church out there
somewhere. A needle in a haystack. He spurred his mind through all the Bernini
works he could recall. I need a tribute to Water!
Langdon flashed
on Berninis statue of Triton the Greek God of the sea. Then he realized it
was located in the square outside this very church, in entirely the wrong
direction. He forced himself to think. What figure would Bernini have carved as
a glorification of water? Neptune and Apollo? Unfortunately that statue was in
Londons Victoria & Albert Museum.
Signore? A
fireman ran in with a map.
Langdon thanked
him and spread it out on the altar. He immediately realized he had asked the
right people; the fire departments map of Rome was as detailed as any Langdon
had ever seen. Where are we now?
The man pointed.
Next to Piazza Barberini.
Langdon looked at
the angels spear again to get his bearings. The chief had estimated correctly.
According to the map, the spear was pointing west. Langdon traced a line from
his current location west across the map. Almost instantly his hopes began to
sink. It seemed that with every inch his finger traveled, he passed yet another
building marked by a tiny black cross. Churches. The city was riddled with
them. Finally, Langdons finger ran out of churches and trailed off into the
suburbs of Rome. He exhaled and stepped back from the map. Damn.
Surveying the
whole of Rome, Langdons eyes touched down on the three churches where the
first three cardinals had been killed. The Chigi Chapel . . . St. Peters . . .
here . . .
Seeing them all
laid out before him now, Langdon noted an oddity in their locations. Somehow he
had imagined the churches would be scattered randomly across Rome. But they
most definitely were not. Improbably, the three churches seemed to be separated
systematically, in an enormous city wide triangle. Langdon double checked. He
was not imagining things. Penna, he said suddenly, without looking up.
Someone handed
him a ballpoint pen.
Langdon circled
the three churches. His pulse quickened. He triple checked his markings. A
symmetrical triangle!
Langdons first
thought was for the Great Seal on the one dollar billthe triangle containing
the all seeing eye. But it didnt make sense. He had marked only three points.
There were supposed to be four in all.
So where the hell
is Water? Langdon knew that anywhere he placed the fourth point, the triangle
would be destroyed. The only option to retain the symmetry was to place the
fourth marker inside the triangle, at the center. He looked at the spot on the
map. Nothing. The idea bothered him anyway. The four elements of science were
considered equal. Water was not special; Water would not be at the center of
the others.
Still, his
instinct told him the systematic arrangement could not possibly be accidental.
Im not yet seeing the whole picture. There was only one alternative. The four
points did not make a triangle; they made some other shape.
Langdon looked at
the map. A square, perhaps? Although a square made no symbolic sense, squares
were symmetrical at least. Langdon put his finger on the map at one of the
points that would turn the triangle into a square. He saw immediately that a
perfect square was impossible. The angles of the original triangle were oblique
and created more of a distorted quadrilateral.
As he studied the
other possible points around the triangle, something unexpected happened. He
noticed that the line he had drawn earlier to indicate the direction of the
angels spear passed perfectly through one of the possibilities. Stupefied,
Langdon circled that point. He was now looking at four ink marks on the map,
arranged in somewhat of an awkward, kitelike diamond.
He frowned.
Diamonds were not an Illuminati symbol either. He paused. Then again . . .
For an instant
Langdon flashed on the famed Illuminati Diamond. The thought, of course, was
ridiculous. He dismissed it. Besides, this diamond was oblonglike a
kitehardly an example of the flawless symmetry for which the Illuminati
Diamond was revered.
When he leaned in
to examine where he had placed the final mark, Langdon was surprised to find
that the fourth point lay dead center of Romes famed Piazza Navona. He knew
the piazza contained a major church, but he had already traced his finger
through that piazza and considered the church there. To the best of his
knowledge it contained no Bernini works. The church was called Saint Agnes in
Agony, named for St. Agnes, a ravishing teenage virgin banished to a life of
sexual slavery for refusing to renounce her faith.
There must be
something in that church! Langdon racked his brain, picturing the inside of the
church. He could think of no Bernini works at all inside, much less anything to
do with water. The arrangement on the map was bothering him too. A diamond. It
was far too accurate to be coincidence, but it was not accurate enough to make
any sense. A kite? Langdon wondered if he had chosen the wrong point. What am I
missing!
The answer took
another thirty seconds to hit him, but when it did, Langdon felt an
exhilaration like nothing he had ever experienced in his academic career.
The Illuminati
genius, it seemed, would never cease.
The shape he was
looking at was not intended as a diamond at all. The four points only formed a
diamond because Langdon had connected adjacent points. The Illuminati believe
in opposites! Connecting opposite vertices with his pen, Langdons fingers were
trembling. There before him on the map was a giant cruciform. Its a cross! The
four elements of science unfolded before his eyes . . . sprawled across Rome in
an enormous, city wide cross.
As he stared in
wonder, a line of poetry rang in his mind . . . like an old friend with a new
face.
Cross Rome the
mystic elements unfold . . .
Cross Rome . . .
The fog began to
clear. Langdon saw that the answer had been in front of him all night! The
Illuminati poem had been telling him how the altars were laid out. A cross!
Cross Rome the
mystic elements unfold!
It was cunning
wordplay. Langdon had originally read the wordCross as an abbreviation of
Across. He assumed it was poetic license intended to retain the meter of the
poem. But it was so much more than that! Another hidden clue.
The cruciform on
the map, Langdon realized, was the ultimate Illuminati duality. It was a
religious symbol formed by elements of science. Galileos path of Illumination
was a tribute to both science and God!
The rest of the
puzzle fell into place almost immediately.
Piazza Navona.
Dead center of
Piazza Navona, outside the church of St. Agnes in Agony, Bernini had forged one
of his most celebrated sculptures. Everyone who came to Rome went to see it.
The Fountain of
the Four Rivers!
A flawless
tribute to water, Berninis Fountain of the Four Rivers glorified the four
major rivers of the Old WorldThe Nile, Ganges, Danube, and Rio Plata.
Water, Langdon
thought. The final marker. It was perfect.
And even more
perfect, Langdon realized, the cherry on the cake, was that high atop Berninis
fountain stood a towering obelisk.
Leaving confused
firemen in his wake, Langdon ran across the church in the direction of
Olivettis lifeless body.
10:31 P.M . . .
he thought. Plenty of time. It was the first instant all day that Langdon felt
ahead of the game.
Kneeling beside
Olivetti, out of sight behind some pews, Langdon discreetly took possession of
the commanders semiautomatic and walkie talkie. Langdon knew he would call for
help, but this was not the place to do it. The final altar of science needed to
remain a secret for now. The media and fire department racing with sirens
blaring to Piazza Navona would be no help at all.
Without a word,
Langdon slipped out the door and skirted the press, who were now entering the
church in droves. He crossed Piazza Barberini. In the shadows he turned on the walkie
talkie. He tried to hail Vatican City but heard nothing but static. He was
either out of range or the transmitter needed some kind of authorization code.
Langdon adjusted the complex dials and buttons to no avail. Abruptly, he
realized his plan to get help was not going to work. He spun, looking for a pay
phone. None. Vatican circuits were jammed anyway.
He was alone.
Feeling his
initial surge of confidence decay, Langdon stood a moment and took stock of his
pitiful statecovered in bone dust, cut, deliriously exhausted, and hungry.
Langdon glanced
back at the church. Smoke spiraled over the cupola, lit by the media lights and
fire trucks. He wondered if he should go back and get help. Instinct warned him
however that extra help, especially untrained help, would be nothing but a
liability. If the Hassassin sees us coming . . . He thought of Vittoria and
knew this would be his final chance to face her captor.
Piazza Navona, he
thought, knowing he could get there in plenty of time and stake it out. He scanned
the area for a taxi, but the streets were almost entirely deserted. Even the
taxi drivers, it seemed, had dropped everything to find a television. Piazza
Navona was only about a mile away, but Langdon had no intention of wasting
precious energy on foot. He glanced back at the church, wondering if he could
borrow a vehicle from someone.
A fire truck? A
press van? Be serious.
Sensing options
and minutes slipping away, Langdon made his decision. Pulling the gun from his
pocket, he committed an act so out of character that he suspected his soul must
now be possessed. Running over to a lone Citroën sedan idling at a
stoplight, Langdon pointed the weapon through the drivers open window. Fuori!
he yelled.
The trembling man
got out.
Langdon jumped
behind the wheel and hit the gas.
101
Gunther Glick sat
on a bench in a holding tank inside the office of the Swiss Guard. He prayed to
every god he could think of. Please let this NOT be a dream. It had been the
scoop of his life. The scoop of anyones life. Every reporter on earth wished he
were Glick right now. You are awake, he told himself. And you are a star. Dan
Rather is crying right now.
Macri was beside
him, looking a little bit stunned. Glick didnt blame her. In addition to
exclusively broadcasting the camerlegnos address, she and Glick had provided
the world with gruesome photos of the cardinals and of the Popethat tongue
!as well as a live video feed of the antimatter canister counting down.
Incredible!
Of course, all of
that had all been at the camerlegnos behest, so that was not the reason Glick
and Macri were now locked in a Swiss Guard holding tank. It had been Glicks
daring addendum to their coverage that the guards had not appreciated. Glick
knew the conversation on which he had just reported was not intended for his ears,
but this was his moment in the sun. Another Glick scoop !
The 11th Hour
Samaritan? Macri groaned on the bench beside him, clearly unimpressed.
Glick smiled.
Brilliant, wasnt it?
Brilliantly
dumb.
Shes just
jealous, Glick knew. Shortly after the camerlegnos address, Glick had again,
by chance, been in the right place at the right time. Hed overheard Rocher
giving new orders to his men. Apparently Rocher had received a phone call from
a mysterious individual who Rocher claimed had critical information regarding
the current crisis. Rocher was talking as if this man could help them and was
advising his guards to prepare for the guests arrival.
Although the
information was clearly private, Glick had acted as any dedicated reporter
wouldwithout honor. Hed found a dark corner, ordered Macri to fire up her
remote camera, and hed reported the news.
Shocking new
developments in Gods city, he had announced, squinting his eyes for added
intensity. Then hed gone on to say that a mystery guest was coming to Vatican
City to save the day. The 11th Hour Samaritan, Glick had called hima perfect
name for the faceless man appearing at the last moment to do a good deed. The
other networks had picked up the catchy sound bite, and Glick was yet again
immortalized.
Im brilliant, he
mused. Peter Jennings just jumped off a bridge.
Of course Glick
had not stopped there. While he had the worlds attention, he had thrown in a
little of his own conspiracy theory for good measure.
Brilliant.
Utterly brilliant.
You screwed us,
Macri said. You totally blew it.
What do you
mean? I was great!
Macri stared
disbelievingly. Former President George Bush? An Illuminatus?
Glick smiled. How
much more obvious could it be? George Bush was a well documented, 33rd degree
Mason, and he was the head of the CIA when the agency closed their Illuminati
investigation for lack of evidence. And all those speeches about a thousand
points of light and a New World Order" . . . Bush was obviously
Illuminati.
And that bit
about CERN? Macri chided. You are going to have a very big line of lawyers
outside your door tomorrow.
CERN? Oh come
on! Its so obvious! Think about it! The Illuminati disappear off the face of
the earth in the 1950s at about the same time CERN is founded. CERN is a haven
for the most enlightened people on earth. Tons of private funding. They build a
weapon that can destroy the church, and oops! . . . they lose it!
So you tell the
world that CERN is the new home base of the Illuminati?
Obviously!
Brotherhoods dont just disappear. The Illuminati had to go somewhere. CERN is
a perfect place for them to hide. Im not saying everyone at CERN is
Illuminati. Its probably like a huge Masonic lodge, where most people are
innocent, but the upper echelons
Have you ever
heard of slander, Glick? Liability?
Have you ever
heard of real journalism!
Journalism? You
were pulling bullshit out of thin air! I should have turned off the camera! And
what the hell was that crap about CERNs corporate logo? Satanic symbology? Have
you lost your mind?
Glick smiled.
Macris jealousy was definitely showing. The CERN logo had been the most
brilliant coup of all. Ever since the camerlegnos address, all the networks
were talking about CERN and antimatter. Some stations were showing the CERN
corporate logo as a backdrop. The logo seemed standard enoughtwo intersecting
circles representing two particle accelerators, and five tangential lines
representing particle injection tubes. The whole world was staring at this
logo, but it had been Glick, a bit of a symbologist himself, who had first seen
the Illuminati symbology hidden in it.
Youre not a
symbologist, Macri chided, youre just one lucky ass reporter. You should
have left the symbology to the Harvard guy.
The Harvard guy
missed it, Glick said.
The Illuminati
significance in this logo is so obvious!
He was beaming
inside. Although CERN had lots of accelerators, their logo showed only two. Two
is the Illuminati number of duality. Although most accelerators had only one
injection tube, the logo showed five. Five is the number of the Illuminati
pentagram. Then had come the coupthe most brilliant point of all. Glick
pointed out that the logo contained a large numeral 6clearly formed by one of
the lines and circlesand when the logo was rotated, another six appeared . . .
and then another. The logo contained three sixes! 666! The devils number! The
mark of the beast!
Glick was a
genius.
Macri looked
ready to slug him.
The jealousy
would pass, Glick knew, his mind now wandering to another thought. If CERN was
Illuminati headquarters, was CERN where the Illuminati kept their infamous
Illuminati Diamond? Glick had read about it on the Interneta flawless
diamond, born of the ancient elements with such perfection that all those who
saw it could only stand in wonder.
Glick wondered if
the secret whereabouts of the Illuminati Diamond might be yet another mystery
he could unveil tonight.
102
Piazza Navona.
Fountain of the Four Rivers.
Nights in Rome,
like those in the desert, can be surprisingly cool, even after a warm day.
Langdon was huddled now on the fringes of Piazza Navona, pulling his jacket
around him. Like the distant white noise of traffic, a cacophony of news reports
echoed across the city. He checked his watch. Fifteen minutes. He was grateful
for a few moments of rest.
The piazza was
deserted. Berninis masterful fountain sizzled before him with a fearful
sorcery. The foaming pool sent a magical mist upward, lit from beneath by
underwater floodlights. Langdon sensed a cool electricity in the air.
The fountains
most arresting quality was its height. The central core alone was over twenty
feet talla rugged mountain of travertine marble riddled with caves and grottoes
through which the water churned. The entire mound was draped with pagan
figures. Atop this stood an obelisk that climbed another forty feet. Langdon
let his eyes climb. On the obelisks tip, a faint shadow blotted the sky, a
lone pigeon perched silently.
A cross, Langdon
thought, still amazed by the arrangement of the markers across Rome. Berninis
Fountain of the Four Rivers was the last altar of science. Only hours ago
Langdon had been standing in the Pantheon convinced the Path of Illumination
had been broken and he would never get this far. It had been a foolish blunder.
In fact, the entire path was intact. Earth, Air, Fire, Water. And Langdon had
followed it . . . from beginning to end.
Not quite to the
end, he reminded himself. The path had five stops, not four. This fourth marker
fountain somehow pointed to the ultimate destinythe Illuminatis sacred
lairthe Church of Illumination. Langdon wondered if the lair were still
standing. He wondered if that was where the Hassassin had taken Vittoria.
Langdon found his
eyes probing the figures in the fountain, looking for any clue as to the
direction of the lair. Let angels guide you on your lofty quest. Almost
immediately, though, he was overcome by an unsettling awareness. This fountain
contained no angels whatsoever. It certainly contained none Langdon could see
from where he was standing . . . and none he had ever seen in the past. The
Fountain of the Four Rivers was a pagan work. The carvings were all
profanehumans, animals, even an awkward armadillo. An angel here would stick
out like a sore thumb.
Is this the wrong
place? He considered the cruciform arrangement of the four obelisks. He
clenched his fists. This fountain is perfect.
It was only 10:46
P.M. when a black van emerged from the alleyway on the far side of the piazza.
Langdon would not have given it a second look except that the van drove with no
headlights. Like a shark patrolling a moonlit bay, the vehicle circled the
perimeter of the piazza.
Langdon hunkered
lower, crouched in the shadows beside the huge stairway leading up to the
Church of St. Agnes in Agony. He gazed out at the piazza, his pulse climbing.
After making two
complete circuits, the van banked inward toward Berninis fountain. It pulled
abreast of the basin, moving laterally along the rim until its side was flush
with the fountain. Then it parked, its sliding door positioned only inches
above the churning water.
Mist billowed.
Langdon felt an
uneasy premonition. Had the Hassassin arrived early? Had he come in a van?
Langdon had imagined the killer escorting his last victim across the piazza on
foot, like he had at St. Peters, giving Langdon an open shot. But if the
Hassassin had arrived in a van, the rules had just changed.
Suddenly, the
vans side door slid open.
On the floor of
the van, contorted in agony, lay a naked man. The man was wrapped in yards of
heavy chains. He thrashed against the iron links, but the chains were too
heavy. One of the links bisected the mans mouth like a horses bit, stifling
his cries for help. It was then that Langdon saw the second figure, moving
around behind the prisoner in the dark, as though making final preparations.
Langdon knew he
had only seconds to act.
Taking the gun,
he slipped off his jacket and dropped it on the ground. He didnt want the
added encumbrance of a tweed jacket, nor did he have any intention of taking
Galileos Diagramma anywhere near the water. The document would stay here where
it was safe and dry.
Langdon scrambled
to his right. Circling the perimeter of the fountain, he positioned himself
directly opposite the van. The fountains massive centerpiece obscured his
view. Standing, he ran directly toward the basin. He hoped the thundering water
was drowning his footsteps. When he reached the fountain, he climbed over the rim
and dropped into the foaming pool.
The water was
waist deep and like ice. Langdon grit his teeth and plowed through the water.
The bottom was slippery, made doubly treacherous by a stratum of coins thrown
for good luck. Langdon sensed he would need more than good luck. As the mist
rose all around him, he wondered if it was the cold or the fear that was
causing the gun in his hand to shake.
He reached the
interior of the fountain and circled back to his left. He waded hard, clinging
to the cover of the marble forms. Hiding himself behind the huge carved form of
a horse, Langdon peered out. The van was only fifteen feet away. The Hassassin
was crouched on the floor of the van, hands planted on the cardinals chain
clad body, preparing to roll him out the open door into the fountain.
Waist deep in
water, Robert Langdon raised his gun and stepped out of the mist, feeling like
some sort of aquatic cowboy making a final stand. Dont move. His voice was
steadier than the gun.
The Hassassin
looked up. For a moment he seemed confused, as though he had seen a ghost. Then
his lips curled into an evil smile. He raised his arms in submission. And so
it goes.
Get out of the
van.
You look wet.
Youre early.
I am eager to
return to my prize.
Langdon leveled
the gun. I wont hesitate to shoot.
Youve already
hesitated.
Langdon felt his
finger tighten on the trigger. The cardinal lay motionless now. He looked
exhausted, moribund. Untie him.
Forget him.
Youve come for the woman. Do not pretend otherwise.
Langdon fought
the urge to end it right there. Where is she?
Somewhere safe.
Awaiting my return.
Shes alive.
Langdon felt a ray of hope. At the Church of Illumination?
The killer
smiled. You will never find its location.
Langdon was
incredulous. The lair is still standing. He aimed the gun. Where?
The location has
remained secret for centuries. Even to me it was only revealed recently. I
would die before I break that trust.
I can find it
without you.
An arrogant
thought.
Langdon motioned
to the fountain. Ive come this far.
So have many.
The final step is the hardest.
Langdon stepped
closer, his footing tentative beneath the water. The Hassassin looked
remarkably calm, squatting there in the back of the van with his arms raised
over his head. Langdon aimed at his chest, wondering if he should simply shoot
and be done with it. No. He knows where Vittoria is. He knows where the
antimatter is. I need information!
From the darkness
of the van the Hassassin gazed out at his aggressor and couldnt help but feel
an amused pity. The American was brave, that he had proven. But he was also
untrained. That he had also proven. Valor without expertise was suicide. There
were rules of survival. Ancient rules. And the American was breaking all of
them.
You had the
advantagethe element of surprise. You squandered it.
The American was
indecisive . . . hoping for backup most likely . . . or perhaps a slip of the
tongue that would reveal critical information.
Never interrogate
before you disable your prey. A cornered enemy is a deadly enemy.
The American was
talking again. Probing. Maneuvering.
The killer almost
laughed aloud. This is not one of your Hollywood movies . . . there will be no
long discussions at gunpoint before the final shoot out. This is the end. Now.
Without breaking
eye contact, the killer inched his hands across the ceiling of the van until he
found what he was looking for. Staring dead ahead, he grasped it.
Then he made his
play.
The motion was
utterly unexpected. For an instant, Langdon thought the laws of physics had
ceased to exist. The killer seemed to hang weightless in the air as his legs
shot out from beneath him, his boots driving into the cardinals side and
launching the chain laden body out the door. The cardinal splashed down,
sending up a sheet of spray.
Water dousing his
face, Langdon realized too late what had happened. The killer had grasped one
of the vans roll bars and used it to swing outward. Now the Hassassin was
sailing toward him, feet first through the spray.
Langdon pulled
the trigger, and the silencer spat. The bullet exploded through the toe of the
Hassassins left boot. Instantly Langdon felt the soles of the Hassassins
boots connect with his chest, driving him back with a crushing kick.
The two men
splashed down in a spray of blood and water.
As the icy liquid
engulfed Langdons body, his first cognition was pain. Survival instinct came
next. He realized he was no longer holding his weapon. It had been knocked
away. Diving deep, he groped along the slimy bottom. His hand gripped metal. A
handful of coins. He dropped them. Opening his eyes, Langdon scanned the
glowing basin. The water churned around him like a frigid Jacuzzi.
Despite the
instinct to breathe, fear kept him on the bottom. Always moving. He did not
know from where the next assault would come. He needed to find the gun! His
hands groped desperately in front of him.
You have the
advantage, he told himself. You are in your element. Even in a soaked
turtleneck Langdon was an agile swimmer. Water is your element.
When Langdons
fingers found metal a second time, he was certain his luck had changed. The
object in his hand was no handful of coins. He gripped it and tried to pull it
toward him, but when he did, he found himself gliding through the water. The
object was stationary.
Langdon realized
even before he coasted over the cardinals writhing body that he had grasped
part of the metal chain that was weighing the man down. Langdon hovered a
moment, immobilized by the sight of the terrified face staring up at him from
the floor of the fountain.
Jolted by the
life in the mans eyes, Langdon reached down and grabbed the chains, trying to
heave him toward the surface. The body came slowly . . . like an anchor.
Langdon pulled harder. When the cardinals head broke the surface, the old man
gasped a few sucking, desperate breaths. Then, violently, his body rolled,
causing Langdon to lose his grip on the slippery chains. Like a stone, Baggia
went down again and disappeared beneath the foaming water.
Langdon dove,
eyes wide in the liquid murkiness. He found the cardinal. This time, when
Langdon grabbed on, the chains across Baggias chest shifted . . . parting to
reveal a further wickedness . . . a word stamped in seared flesh.
An instant later,
two boots strode into view. One was gushing blood.
103
As a water polo
player, Robert Langdon had endured more than his fair share of underwater
battles. The competitive savagery that raged beneath the surface of a water
polo pool, away from the eyes of the referees, could rival even the ugliest wrestling
match. Langdon had been kicked, scratched, held, and even bitten once by a
frustrated defenseman from whom Langdon had continuously twisted away.
Now, though,
thrashing in the frigid water of Berninis fountain, Langdon knew he was a long
way from the Harvard pool. He was fighting not for a game, but for his life.
This was the second time they had battled. No referees here. No rematches. The
arms driving his face toward the bottom of the basin thrust with a force that
left no doubt that it intended to kill.
Langdon
instinctively spun like a torpedo. Break the hold! But the grip torqued him
back, his attacker enjoying an advantage no water polo defenseman ever hadtwo
feet on solid ground. Langdon contorted, trying to get his own feet beneath
him. The Hassassin seemed to be favoring one arm . . . but nonetheless, his
grip held firm.
It was then that
Langdon knew he was not coming up. He did the only thing he could think of to
do. He stopped trying to surface. If you cant go north, go east. Marshalling the
last of his strength, Langdon dolphin kicked his legs and pulled his arms
beneath him in an awkward butterfly stroke. His body lurched forward.
The sudden switch
in direction seemed to take the Hassassin off guard. Langdons lateral motion
dragged his captors arms sideways, compromising his balance. The mans grip
faltered, and Langdon kicked again. The sensation felt like a towline had
snapped. Suddenly Langdon was free. Blowing the stale air from his lungs,
Langdon clawed for the surface. A single breath was all he got. With crashing
force the Hassassin was on top of him again, palms on his shoulders, all of his
weight bearing down. Langdon scrambled to plant his feet beneath him but the
Hassassins leg swung out, cutting Langdon down.
He went under again.
Langdons muscles
burned as he twisted beneath the water. This time his maneuvers were in vain.
Through the bubbling water, Langdon scanned the bottom, looking for the gun.
Everything was blurred. The bubbles were denser here. A blinding light flashed
in his face as the killer wrestled him deeper, toward a submerged spotlight
bolted on the floor of the fountain. Langdon reached out, grabbing the
canister. It was hot. Langdon tried to pull himself free, but the contraption
was mounted on hinges and pivoted in his hand. His leverage was instantly lost.
The Hassassin
drove him deeper still.
It was then
Langdon saw it. Poking out from under the coins directly beneath his face. A
narrow, black cylinder. The silencer of Olivettis gun! Langdon reached out, but
as his fingers wrapped around the cylinder, he did not feel metal, he felt
plastic. When he pulled, the flexible rubber hose came flopping toward him like
a flimsy snake. It was about two feet long with a jet of bubbles surging from
the end. Langdon had not found the gun at all. It was one of the fountains
many harmless spumanti . . . bubble makers.
Only a few feet
away, Cardinal Baggia felt his soul straining to leave his body. Although he
had prepared for this moment his entire life, he had never imagined the end
would be like this. His physical shell was in agony . . . burned, bruised, and
held underwater by an immovable weight. He reminded himself that this suffering
was nothing compared to what Jesus had endured.
He died for my
sins . . .
Baggia could hear
the thrashing of a battle raging nearby. He could not bear the thought of it.
His captor was about to extinguish yet another life . . . the man with kind
eyes, the man who had tried to help.
As the pain
mounted, Baggia lay on his back and stared up through the water at the black
sky above him. For a moment he thought he saw stars.
It was time.
Releasing all
fear and doubt, Baggia opened his mouth and expelled what he knew would be his
final breath. He watched his spirit gurgle heavenward in a burst of transparent
bubbles. Then, reflexively, he gasped. The water poured in like icy daggers to
his sides. The pain lasted only a few seconds.
Then . . . peace.
The Hassassin
ignored the burning in his foot and focused on the drowning American, whom he
now held pinned beneath him in the churning water. Finish it fully. He
tightened his grip, knowing this time Robert Langdon would not survive. As he
predicted, his victims struggling became weaker and weaker.
Suddenly
Langdons body went rigid. He began to shake wildly.
Yes, the
Hassassin mused. The rigors. When the water first hits the lungs. The rigors,
he knew, would last about five seconds.
They lasted six.
Then, exactly as
the Hassassin expected, his victim went suddenly flaccid. Like a great deflating
balloon, Robert Langdon fell limp. It was over. The Hassassin held him down for
another thirty seconds to let the water flood all of his pulmonary tissue.
Gradually, he felt Langdons body sink, on its own accord, to the bottom.
Finally, the Hassassin let go. The media would find a double surprise in the
Fountain of the Four Rivers.
Tabban! the
Hassassin swore, clambering out of the fountain and looking at his bleeding
toe. The tip of his boot was shredded, and the front of his big toe had been
sheared off. Angry at his own carelessness, he tore the cuff from his pant leg
and rammed the fabric into the toe of his boot. Pain shot up his leg. Ibn al
kalb! He clenched his fists and rammed the cloth deeper. The bleeding slowed
until it was only a trickle.
Turning his
thoughts from pain to pleasure, the Hassassin got into his van. His work in
Rome was done. He knew exactly what would soothe his discomfort. Vittoria Vetra
was bound and waiting. The Hassassin, even cold and wet, felt himself stiffen.
I have earned my
reward.
Across town
Vittoria awoke in pain. She was on her back. All of her muscles felt like
stone. Tight. Brittle. Her arms hurt. When she tried to move, she felt spasms
in her shoulders. It took her a moment to comprehend her hands were tied behind
her back. Her initial reaction was confusion. Am I dreaming? But when she tried
to lift her head, the pain at the base of her skull informed her of her
wakefulness.
Confusion
transforming to fear, she scanned her surroundings. She was in a crude, stone
roomlarge and well furnished, lit by torches. Some kind of ancient meeting
hall. Old fashioned benches sat in a circle nearby.
Vittoria felt a
breeze, cold now on her skin. Nearby, a set of double doors stood open, beyond
them a balcony. Through the slits in the balustrade, Vittoria could have sworn
she saw the Vatican.
104
Robert Langdon
lay on a bed of coins at the bottom of the Fountain of the Four Rivers. His
mouth was still wrapped around the plastic hose. The air being pumped through
the spumanti tube to froth the fountain had been polluted by the pump, and his
throat burned. He was not complaining, though. He was alive.
He was not sure
how accurate his imitation of a drowning man had been, but having been around
water his entire life, Langdon had certainly heard accounts. He had done his
best. Near the end, he had even blown all the air from his lungs and stopped
breathing so that his muscle mass would carry his body to the floor.
Thankfully, the
Hassassin had bought it and let go.
Now, resting on
the bottom of the fountain, Langdon had waited as long as he could wait. He was
about to start choking. He wondered if the Hassassin was still out there.
Taking an acrid breath from the tube, Langdon let go and swam across the bottom
of the fountain until he found the smooth swell of the central core. Silently,
he followed it upward, surfacing out of sight, in the shadows beneath the huge
marble figures.
The van was gone.
That was all
Langdon needed to see. Pulling a long breath of fresh air back into his lungs,
he scrambled back toward where Cardinal Baggia had gone down. Langdon knew the
man would be unconscious now, and chances of revival were slim, but he had to
try. When Langdon found the body, he planted his feet on either side, reached
down, and grabbed the chains wrapped around the cardinal. Then Langdon pulled.
When the cardinal broke water, Langdon could see the eyes were already rolled
upward, bulging. Not a good sign. There was no breath or pulse.
Knowing he could
never get the body up and over the fountain rim, Langdon lugged Cardinal Baggia
through the water and into the hollow beneath the central mound of marble. Here
the water became shallow, and there was an inclined ledge. Langdon dragged the
naked body up onto the ledge as far as he could. Not far.
Then he went to
work. Compressing the cardinals chain clad chest, Langdon pumped the water
from his lungs. Then he began CPR. Counting carefully. Deliberately. Resisting
the instinct to blow too hard and too fast. For three minutes Langdon tried to
revive the old man. After five minutes, Langdon knew it was over.
Il preferito. The
man who would be Pope. Lying dead before him.
Somehow, even
now, prostrate in the shadows on the semisubmerged ledge, Cardinal Baggia
retained an air of quiet dignity. The water lapped softly across his chest,
seeming almost remorseful . . . as if asking forgiveness for being the mans
ultimate killer . . . as if trying to cleanse the scalded wound that bore its
name.
Gently, Langdon
ran a hand across the mans face and closed his upturned eyes. As he did, he
felt an exhausted shudder of tears well from within. It startled him. Then, for
the first time in years, Langdon cried.
105
The fog of weary
emotion lifted slowly as Langdon waded away from the dead cardinal, back into
deep water. Depleted and alone in the fountain, Langdon half expected to
collapse. But instead, he felt a new compulsion rising within him. Undeniable.
Frantic. He sensed his muscles hardening with an unexpected grit. His mind, as
though ignoring the pain in his heart, forced aside the past and brought into
focus the single, desperate task ahead.
Find the
Illuminati lair. Help Vittoria.
Turning now to
the mountainous core of Berninis fountain, Langdon summoned hope and launched
himself into his quest for the final Illuminati marker. He knew somewhere on
this gnarled mass of figures was a clue that pointed to the lair. As Langdon scanned
the fountain, though, his hope withered quickly. The words of the segno seemed
to gurgle mockingly all around him. Let angels guide you on your lofty quest.
Langdon glared at the carved forms before him. The fountain is pagan! It has no
damn angels anywhere!
When Langdon
completed his fruitless search of the core, his eyes instinctively climbed the
towering stone pillar. Four markers, he thought, spread across Rome in a giant
cross.
Scanning the
hieroglyphics covering the obelisk, he wondered if perhaps there were a clue
hidden in the Egyptian symbology. He immediately dismissed the idea. The
hieroglyphs predated Bernini by centuries, and hieroglyphs had not even been
decipherable until the Rosetta Stone was discovered. Still, Langdon ventured,
maybe Bernini had carved an additional symbol? One that would go unnoticed
among all the hieroglyphs?
Feeling a shimmer
of hope, Langdon circumnavigated the fountain one more time and studied all
four façades of the obelisk. It took him two minutes, and when he reached
the end of the final face, his hopes sank. Nothing in the hieroglyphs stood out
as any kind of addition. Certainly no angels.
Langdon checked
his watch. It was eleven on the dot. He couldnt tell whether time was flying
or crawling. Images of Vittoria and the Hassassin started to swirl hauntingly
as Langdon clambered his way around the fountain, the frustration mounting as
he frantically completed yet another fruitless circle. Beaten and exhausted,
Langdon felt ready to collapse. He threw back his head to scream into the
night.
The sound jammed
in his throat.
Langdon was
staring straight up the obelisk. The object perched at the very top was one he
had seen earlier and ignored. Now, however, it stopped him short. It was not an
angel. Far from it. In fact, he had not even perceived it as part of Berninis
fountain. He thought it was a living creature, another one of the citys
scavengers perched on a lofty tower.
A pigeon.
Langdon squinted
skyward at the object, his vision blurred by the glowing mist around him. It
was a pigeon, wasnt it? He could clearly see the head and beak silhouetted
against a cluster of stars. And yet the bird had not budged since Langdons
arrival, even with the battle below. The bird sat now exactly as it had been
when Langdon entered the square. It was perched high atop the obelisk, gazing
calmly westward.
Langdon stared at
it a moment and then plunged his hand into the fountain and grabbed a fistful
of coins. He hurled the coins skyward. They clattered across the upper levels of
the granite obelisk. The bird did not budge. He tried again. This time, one of
the coins hit the mark. A faint sound of metal on metal clanged across the
square.
The damned pigeon
was bronze.
Youre looking
for an angel, not a pigeon, a voice reminded him. But it was too late. Langdon
had made the connection. He realized the bird was not a pigeon at all.
It was a dove.
Barely aware of
his own actions, Langdon splashed toward the center of the fountain and began
scrambling up the travertine mountain, clambering over huge arms and heads,
pulling himself higher. Halfway to the base of the obelisk, he emerged from the
mist and could see the head of the bird more clearly.
There was no
doubt. It was a dove. The birds deceptively dark color was the result of Romes
pollution tarnishing the original bronze. Then the significance hit him. He had
seen a pair of doves earlier today at the Pantheon. A pair of doves carried no
meaning. This dove, however, was alone.
The lone dove is
the pagan symbol for the Angel of Peace.
The truth almost
lifted Langdon the rest of the way to the obelisk. Bernini had chosen the pagan
symbol for the angel so he could disguise it in a pagan fountain. Let angels
guide you on your lofty quest. The dove is the angel! Langdon could think of no
more lofty perch for the Illuminatis final marker than atop this obelisk.
The bird was
looking west. Langdon tried to follow its gaze, but he could not see over the
buildings. He climbed higher. A quote from St. Gregory of Nyssa emerged from
his memory most unexpectedly. As the soul becomes enlightened . . . it takes
the beautiful shape of the dove.
Langdon rose
heavenward. Toward the dove. He was almost flying now. He reached the platform
from which the obelisk rose and could climb no higher. With one look around,
though, he knew he didnt have to. All of Rome spread out before him. The view
was stunning.
To his left, the
chaotic media lights surrounding St. Peters. To his right, the smoking cupola
of Santa Maria della Vittoria. In front of him in the distance, Piazza del
Popolo. Beneath him, the fourth and final point. A giant cross of obelisks.
Trembling,
Langdon looked to the dove overhead. He turned and faced the proper direction,
and then he lowered his eyes to the skyline.
In an instant he
saw it.
So obvious. So
clear. So deviously simple.
Staring at it
now, Langdon could not believe the Illuminati lair had stayed hidden for so
many years. The entire city seemed to fade away as he looked out at the
monstrous stone structure across the river in front of him. The building was as
famous as any in Rome. It stood on the banks of the Tiber River diagonally
adjacent to the Vatican. The buildings geometry was starka circular castle,
within a square fortress, and then, outside its walls, surrounding the entire
structure, a park in the shape of a pentagram.
The ancient stone
ramparts before him were dramatically lit by soft floodlights. High atop the
castle stood the mammoth bronze angel. The angel pointed his sword downward at
the exact center of the castle. And as if that were not enough, leading solely
and directly to the castles main entrance stood the famous Bridge of Angels .
. . a dramatic approachway adorned by twelve towering angels carved by none
other than Bernini himself.
In a final
breathtaking revelation, Langdon realized Berninis city wide cross of obelisks
marked the fortress in perfect Illuminati fashion; the crosss central arm
passed directly through the center of the castles bridge, dividing it into two
equal halves.
Langdon retrieved
his tweed coat, holding it away from his dripping body. Then he jumped into the
stolen sedan and rammed his soggy shoe into the accelerator, speeding off into
the night.
106
It was 11:07 P.M.
Langdons car raced through the Roman night. Speeding down Lungotevere Tor Di
Nona, parallel with the river, Langdon could now see his destination rising
like a mountain to his right.
Castel Sant
Angelo. Castle of the Angel.
Without warning,
the turnoff to the narrow Bridge of AngelsPonte Sant Angeloappeared
suddenly. Langdon slammed on his brakes and swerved. He turned in time, but the
bridge was barricaded. He skidded ten feet and collided with a series of short
cement pillars blocking his way. Langdon lurched forward as the vehicle stalled,
wheezing and shuddering. He had forgotten the Bridge of Angels, in order to
preserve it, was now zoned pedestrians only.
Shaken, Langdon
staggered from the crumpled car, wishing now he had chosen one of the other
routes. He felt chilled, shivering from the fountain. He donned his Harris
tweed over his damp shirt, grateful for Harriss trademark double lining. The
Diagramma folio would remain dry. Before him, across the bridge, the stone
fortress rose like a mountain. Aching and depleted, Langdon broke into a loping
run.
On both sides of
him now, like a gauntlet of escorts, a procession of Bernini angels whipped
past, funneling him toward his final destination. Let angels guide you on your
lofty quest. The castle seemed to rise as he advanced, an unscalable peak, more
intimidating to him even than St. Peters. He sprinted toward the bastion,
running on fumes, gazing upward at the citadels circular core as it shot
skyward to a gargantuan, sword wielding angel.
The castle
appeared deserted.
Langdon knew through
the centuries the building had been used by the Vatican as a tomb, a fortress,
a papal hideout, a prison for enemies of the church, and a museum. Apparently,
the castle had other tenants as wellthe Illuminati. Somehow it made eerie
sense. Although the castle was property of the Vatican, it was used only
sporadically, and Bernini had made numerous renovations to it over the years.
The building was now rumored to be honeycombed with secret entries,
passageways, and hidden chambers. Langdon had little doubt that the angel and
surrounding pentagonal park were Berninis doing as well.
Arriving at the
castles elephantine double doors, Langdon shoved them hard. Not surprisingly,
they were immovable. Two iron knockers hung at eye level. Langdon didnt
bother. He stepped back, his eyes climbing the sheer outer wall. These ramparts
had fended off armies of Berbers, heathens, and Moors. Somehow he sensed his
chances of breaking in were slim.
Vittoria, Langdon
thought. Are you in there?
Langdon hurried
around the outer wall. There must be another entrance!
Rounding the
second bulwark to the west, Langdon arrived breathless in a small parking area
off Lungotere Angelo. On this wall he found a second castle entrance, a
drawbridge type ingress, raised and sealed shut. Langdon gazed upward again.
The only lights
on the castle were exterior floods illuminating the façade. All the tiny
windows inside seemed black. Langdons eyes climbed higher. At the very peak of
the central tower, a hundred feet above, directly beneath the angels sword, a
single balcony protruded. The marble parapet seemed to shimmer slightly, as if
the room beyond it were aglow with torchlight. Langdon paused, his soaked body
shivering suddenly. A shadow? He waited, straining. Then he saw it again. His spine
prickled. Someone is up there!
Vittoria! he
called out, unable to help himself, but his voice was swallowed by the raging
Tiber behind him. He wheeled in circles, wondering where the hell the Swiss
Guard were. Had they even heard his transmission?
Across the lot a
large media truck was parked. Langdon ran toward it. A paunchy man in
headphones sat in the cabin adjusting levers. Langdon rapped on the side of the
truck. The man jumped, saw Langdons dripping clothes, and yanked off his
headset.
Whats the
worry, mate? His accent was Australian.
I need your
phone. Langdon was frenzied.
The man shrugged.
No dial tone. Been trying all night. Circuits are packed.
Langdon swore
aloud. Have you seen anyone go in there? He pointed to the drawbridge.
Actually, yeah.
A black vans been going in and out all night.
Langdon felt a
brick hit the bottom of his stomach.
Lucky bastard,
the Aussie said, gazing up at the tower, and then frowning at his obstructed
view of the Vatican. I bet the view from up there is perfect. I couldnt get
through the traffic in St. Peters, so Im shooting from here.
Langdon wasnt
listening. He was looking for options.
What do you
say? the Australian said. This 11th Hour Samaritan for real?
Langdon turned.
The what?
You didnt hear?
The Captain of the Swiss Guard got a call from somebody who claims to have some
primo info. The guys flying in right now. All I know is if he saves the day .
. . there go the ratings! The man laughed.
Langdon was
suddenly confused. A good Samaritan flying in to help? Did the person somehow
know where the antimatter was? Then why didnt he just tell the Swiss Guard?
Why was he coming in person? Something was odd, but Langdon didnt have time to
figure out what.
Hey, the Aussie
said, studying Langdon more closely. Aint you that guy I saw on TV? Trying to
save that cardinal in St. Peters Square?
Langdon did not
answer. His eyes had suddenly locked on a contraption attached to the top of
the trucka satellite dish on a collapsible appendage. Langdon looked at the
castle again. The outer rampart was fifty feet tall. The inner fortress climbed
farther still. A shelled defense. The top was impossibly high from here, but
maybe if he could clear the first wall . . .
Langdon spun to
the newsman and pointed to the satellite arm. How high does that go?
Huh? The man
looked confused. Fifteen meters. Why?
Move the truck.
Park next to the wall. I need help.
What are you
talking about?
Langdon
explained.
The Aussies eyes
went wide. Are you insane? Thats a two
hundred thousand
dollar telescoping extension. Not a ladder!
You want
ratings? Ive got information that will make your day. Langdon was desperate.
Information
worth two hundred grand?
Langdon told him
what he would reveal in exchange for the favor.
Ninety seconds
later, Robert Langdon was gripping the top of the satellite arm wavering in the
breeze fifty feet off the ground. Leaning out, he grabbed the top of the first
bulwark, dragged himself onto the wall, and dropped onto the castles lower
bastion.
Now keep your
bargain! the Aussie called up. Where is he?
Langdon felt
guilt ridden for revealing this information, but a deal was a deal. Besides,
the Hassassin would probably call the press anyway. Piazza Navona, Langdon
shouted. Hes in the fountain.
The Aussie
lowered his satellite dish and peeled out after the scoop of his career.
In a stone
chamber high above the city, the Hassassin removed his soaking boots and
bandaged his wounded toe. There was pain, but not so much that he couldnt
enjoy himself.
He turned to his
prize.
She was in the
corner of the room, on her back on a rudimentary divan, hands tied behind her,
mouth gagged. The Hassassin moved toward her. She was awake now. This pleased
him. Surprisingly, in her eyes, he saw fire instead of fear.
The fear will
come.
107
Robert Langdon
dashed around the outer bulwark of the castle, grateful for the glow of the
floodlights. As he circled the wall, the courtyard beneath him looked like a
museum of ancient warfarecatapults, stacks of marble cannonballs, and an
arsenal of fearful contraptions. Parts of the castle were open to tourists
during the day, and the courtyard had been partially restored to its original
state.
Langdons eyes
crossed the courtyard to the central core of the fortress. The circular citadel
shot skyward 107 feet to the bronze angel above. The balcony at the top still
glowed from within. Langdon wanted to call out but knew better. He would have
to find a way in.
He checked his
watch.
11:12 P.M.
Dashing down the
stone ramp that hugged the inside of the wall, Langdon descended to the
courtyard. Back on ground level, he ran through shadows, clockwise around the
fort. He passed three porticos, but all of them were permanently sealed. How
did the Hassassin get in? Langdon pushed on. He passed two modern entrances,
but they were padlocked from the outside. Not here. He kept running.
Langdon had
circled almost the entire building when he saw a gravel drive cutting across
the courtyard in front of him. At one end, on the outer wall of the castle, he
saw the back of the gated drawbridge leading back outside. At the other end,
the drive disappeared into the fortress. The drive seemed to enter a kind of
tunnela gaping entry in the central core. Il traforo! Langdon had read about
this castles traforo, a giant spiral ramp that circled up inside the fort,
used by commanders on horseback to ride from top to bottom rapidly. The
Hassassin drove up! The gate blocking the tunnel was raised, ushering Langdon
in. He felt almost exuberant as he ran toward the tunnel. But as he reached the
opening, his excitement disappeared.
The tunnel
spiraled down.
The wrong way.
This section of the traforo apparently descended to the dungeons, not to the
top.
Standing at the
mouth of a dark bore that seemed to twist endlessly deeper into the earth,
Langdon hesitated, looking up again at the balcony. He could swear he saw
motion up there. Decide! With no other options, he dashed down into the tunnel.
High overhead,
the Hassassin stood over his prey. He ran a hand across her arm. Her skin was
like cream. The anticipation of exploring her bodily treasures was inebriating.
How many ways could he violate her?
The Hassassin
knew he deserved this woman. He had served Janus well. She was a spoil of war,
and when he was finished with her, he would pull her from the divan and force
her to her knees. She would service him again. The ultimate submission. Then,
at the moment of his own climax, he would slit her throat.
Ghayat assaadah,
they called it. The ultimate pleasure.
Afterward,
basking in his glory, he would stand on the balcony and savor the culmination
of the Illuminati triumph . . . a revenge desired by so many for so long.
The tunnel grew
darker. Langdon descended.
After one
complete turn into the earth, the light was all but gone. The tunnel leveled out,
and Langdon slowed, sensing by the echo of his footfalls that he had just
entered a larger chamber. Before him in the murkiness, he thought he saw
glimmers of light . . . fuzzy reflections in the ambient gleam. He moved
forward, reaching out his hand. He found smooth surfaces. Chrome and glass. It
was a vehicle. He groped the surface, found a door, and opened it.
The vehicles
interior dome light flashed on. He stepped back and recognized the black van
immediately. Feeling a surge of loathing, he stared a moment, then he dove in,
rooting around in hopes of finding a weapon to replace the one hed lost in the
fountain. He found none. He did, however, find Vittorias cell phone. It was
shattered and useless. The sight of it filled Langdon with fear. He prayed he
was not too late.
He reached up and
turned on the vans headlights. The room around him blazed into existence,
harsh shadows in a simple chamber. Langdon guessed the room was once used for
horses and ammunition. It was also a dead end.
No exit. I came
the wrong way!
At the end of his
rope, Langdon jumped from the van and scanned the walls around him. No
doorways. No gates. He thought of the angel over the tunnel entrance and
wondered if it had been a coincidence. No! He thought of the killers words at
the fountain. She is in the Church of Illumination . . . awaiting my return.
Langdon had come too far to fail now. His heart was pounding. Frustration and
hatred were starting to cripple his senses.
When he saw the
blood on the floor, Langdons first thought was for Vittoria. But as his eyes
followed the stains, he realized they were bloody footprints. The strides were
long. The splotches of blood were only on the left foot. The Hassassin!
Langdon followed
the footprints toward the corner of the room, his sprawling shadow growing
fainter. He felt more and more puzzled with every step. The bloody prints
looked as though they walked directly into the corner of the room and then
disappeared.
When Langdon
arrived in the corner, he could not believe his eyes. The granite block in the
floor here was not a square like the others. He was looking at another
signpost. The block was carved into a perfect pentagram, arranged with the tip
pointing into the corner. Ingeniously concealed by overlapping walls, a narrow
slit in the stone served as an exit. Langdon slid through. He was in a passage.
In front of him were the remains of a wooden barrier that had once been
blocking this tunnel.
Beyond it there
was light.
Langdon was
running now. He clambered over the wood and headed for the light. The passage
quickly opened into another, larger chamber. Here a single torch flickered on
the wall. Langdon was in a section of the castle that had no electricity . . .
a section no tourists would ever see. The room would have been frightful in
daylight, but the torch made it even more gruesome.
Il prigione.
There were a
dozen tiny jail cells, the iron bars on most eroded away. One of the larger
cells, however, remained intact, and on the floor Langdon saw something that
almost stopped his heart. Black robes and red sashes on the floor. This is
where he held the cardinals!
Near the cell was
an iron doorway in the wall. The door was ajar and beyond it Langdon could see
some sort of passage. He ran toward it. But Langdon stopped before he got
there. The trail of blood did not enter the passage. When Langdon saw the words
carved over the archway, he knew why.
Il Passetto.
He was stunned.
He had heard of this tunnel many times, never knowing where exactly the
entrance was. Il Passetto The Little Passagewas a slender, three quarter mile
tunnel built between Castle St. Angelo and the Vatican. It had been used by
various Popes to escape to safety during sieges of the Vatican . . . as well as
by a few less pious Popes to secretly visit mistresses or oversee the torture
of their enemies. Nowadays both ends of the tunnel were supposedly sealed with
impenetrable locks whose keys were kept in some Vatican vault. Langdon suddenly
feared he knew how the Illuminati had been moving in and out of the Vatican. He
found himself wondering who on the inside had betrayed the church and coughed
up the keys. Olivetti? One of the Swiss Guard? None of it mattered anymore.
The blood on the
floor led to the opposite end of the prison. Langdon followed. Here, a rusty
gate hung draped with chains. The lock had been removed and the gate stood
ajar. Beyond the gate was a steep ascension of spiral stairs. The floor here
was also marked with a pentagramal block. Langdon stared at the block,
trembling, wondering if Bernini himself had held the chisel that had shaped
these chunks. Overhead, the archway was adorned with a tiny carved cherub. This
was it.
The trail of
blood curved up the stairs.
Before ascending,
Langdon knew he needed a weapon, any weapon. He found a four foot section of
iron bar near one of the cells. It had a sharp, splintered end. Although
absurdly heavy, it was the best he could do. He hoped the element of surprise,
combined with the Hassassins wound, would be enough to tip the scales in his
advantage. Most of all, though, he hoped he was not too late.
The staircases
spiral treads were worn and twisted steeply upward. Langdon ascended, listening
for sounds. None. As he climbed, the light from the prison area faded away. He
ascended into the total darkness, keeping one hand on the wall. Higher. In the
blackness, Langdon sensed the ghost of Galileo, climbing these very stairs,
eager to share his visions of heaven with other men of science and faith.
Langdon was still
in a state of shock over the location of the lair. The Illuminati meeting hall
was in a building owned by the Vatican. No doubt while the Vatican guards were
out searching basements and homes of well known scientists, the Illuminati were
meeting here . . . right under the Vaticans nose. It suddenly seemed so
perfect. Bernini, as head architect of renovations here, would have had
unlimited access to this structure . . . remodeling it to his own
specifications with no questions asked. How many secret entries had Bernini
added? How many subtle embellishments pointing the way?
The Church of
Illumination. Langdon knew he was close.
As the stairs
began narrowing, Langdon felt the passage closing around him. The shadows of
history were whispering in the dark, but he moved on. When he saw the
horizontal shaft of light before him, he realized he was standing a few steps
beneath a landing, where the glow of torchlight spilled out beneath the
threshold of a door in front of him. Silently he moved up.
Langdon had no
idea where in the castle he was right now, but he knew he had climbed far
enough to be near the peak. He pictured the mammoth angel atop the castle and
suspected it was directly overhead.
Watch over me,
angel, he thought, gripping the bar. Then, silently, he reached for the door.
On the divan,
Vittorias arms ached. When she had first awoken to find them tied behind her
back, shed thought she might be able to relax and work her hands free. But
time had run out. The beast had returned. Now he was standing over her, his
chest bare and powerful, scarred from battles he had endured. His eyes looked
like two black slits as he stared down at her body. Vittoria sensed he was
imagining the deeds he was about to perform. Slowly, as if to taunt her, the
Hassassin removed his soaking belt and dropped it on the floor.
Vittoria felt a
loathing horror. She closed her eyes. When she opened them again, the Hassassin
had produced a switchblade knife. He snapped it open directly in front of her
face.
Vittoria saw her
own terrified reflection in the steel.
The Hassassin
turned the blade over and ran the back of it across her belly. The icy metal
gave her chills. With a contemptuous stare, he slipped the blade below the
waistline of her shorts. She inhaled. He moved back and forth, slowly,
dangerously . . . lower. Then he leaned forward, his hot breath whispering in
her ear.
This blade cut
out your fathers eye.
Vittoria knew in
that instant that she was capable of killing.
The Hassassin
turned the blade again and began sawing upward through the fabric of her khaki
shorts. Suddenly, he stopped, looking up. Someone was in the room.
Get away from
her, a deep voice growled from the doorway.
Vittoria could not
see who had spoken, but she recognized the voice. Robert! Hes alive!
The Hassassin
looked as if he had seen a ghost. Mr. Langdon, you must have a guardian
angel.
108
In the split
second it took Langdon to take in his surroundings, he realized he was in a
sacred place. The embellishments in the oblong room, though old and faded, were
replete with familiar symbology. Pentagram tiles. Planet frescoes. Doves.
Pyramids.
The Church of
Illumination. Simple and pure. He had arrived.
Directly in front
of him, framed in the opening of the balcony, stood the Hassassin. He was bare
chested, standing over Vittoria, who lay bound but very much alive. Langdon
felt a wave of relief to see her. For an instant, their eyes met, and a torrent
of emotions flowedgratitude, desperation, and regret.
So we meet yet
again, the Hassassin said. He looked at the bar in Langdons hand and laughed
out loud. And this time you come for me with that ?
Untie her.
The Hassassin put
the knife to Vittorias throat. I will kill her.
Langdon had no
doubt the Hassassin was capable of such an act. He forced a calm into his
voice. I imagine she would welcome it . . . considering the alternative.
The Hassassin
smiled at the insult. Youre right. She has much to offer. It would be a
waste.
Langdon stepped
forward, grasping the rusted bar, and aimed the splintered end directly at the
Hassassin. The cut on his hand bit sharply. Let her go.
The Hassassin
seemed for a moment to be considering it. Exhaling, he dropped his shoulders.
It was a clear motion of surrender, and yet at that exact instant the
Hassassins arm seemed to accelerate unexpectedly. There was a blur of dark
muscle, and a blade suddenly came tearing through the air toward Langdons
chest.
Whether it was
instinct or exhaustion that buckled Langdons knees at that moment, he didnt
know, but the knife sailed past his left ear and clattered to the floor behind
him. The Hassassin seemed unfazed. He smiled at Langdon, who was kneeling now,
holding the metal bar. The killer stepped away from Vittoria and moved toward
Langdon like a stalking lion.
As Langdon
scrambled to his feet, lifting the bar again, his wet turtleneck and pants felt
suddenly more restrictive. The Hassassin, half clothed, seemed to move much
faster, the wound on his foot apparently not slowing him at all. Langdon sensed
this was a man accustomed to pain. For the first time in his life, Langdon
wished he were holding a very big gun.
The Hassassin circled
slowly, as if enjoying himself, always just out of reach, moving toward the
knife on the floor. Langdon cut him off. Then the killer moved back toward
Vittoria. Again Langdon cut him off.
Theres still
time, Langdon ventured. Tell me where the canister is. The Vatican will pay
more than the Illuminati ever could.
You are naive.
Langdon jabbed
with the bar. The Hassassin dodged. He navigated around a bench, holding the
weapon in front of him, trying to corner the Hassassin in the oval room. This
damn room has no corners! Oddly, the Hassassin did not seem interested in
attacking or fleeing. He was simply playing Langdons game. Coolly waiting.
Waiting for what?
The killer kept circling, a master at positioning himself. It was like an
endless game of chess. The weapon in Langdons hand was getting heavy, and he
suddenly sensed he knew what the Hassassin was waiting for. Hes tiring me out.
It was working, too. Langdon was hit by a surge of weariness, the adrenaline
alone no longer enough to keep him alert. He knew he had to make a move.
The Hassassin
seemed to read Langdons mind, shifting again, as if intentionally leading
Langdon toward a table in the middle of the room. Langdon could tell there was
something on the table. Something glinted in the torchlight. A weapon? Langdon
kept his eyes focused on the Hassassin and maneuvered himself closer to the
table. When the Hassassin cast a long, guileless glance at the table, Langdon
tried to fight the obvious bait. But instinct overruled. He stole a glance. The
damage was done.
It was not a
weapon at all. The sight momentarily riveted him.
On the table lay
a rudimentary copper chest, crusted with ancient patina. The chest was a
pentagon. The lid lay open. Arranged inside in five padded compartments were five
brands. The brands were forged of ironlarge embossing tools with stout handles
of wood. Langdon had no doubt what they said.
Illuminati,
Earth, Air, Fire, Water.
Langdon snapped
his head back up, fearing the Hassassin would lunge. He did not. The killer was
waiting, almost as if he were refreshed by the game. Langdon fought to recover
his focus, locking eyes again with his quarry, thrusting with the pipe. But the
image of the box hung in his mind. Although the brands themselves were
mesmerizingartifacts few Illuminati scholars even believed existedLangdon
suddenly realized there had been something else about the box that had ignited
a wave of foreboding within. As the Hassassin maneuvered again, Langdon stole
another glance downward.
My God!
In the chest, the
five brands sat in compartments around the outer edge. But in the center, there
was another compartment. This partition was empty, but it clearly was intended
to hold another brand . . . a brand much larger than the others, and perfectly
square.
The attack was a
blur.
The Hassassin
swooped toward him like a bird of prey. Langdon, his concentration having been
masterfully diverted, tried to counter, but the pipe felt like a tree trunk in
his hands. His parry was too slow. The Hassassin dodged. As Langdon tried to
retract the bar, the Hassassins hands shot out and grabbed it. The mans grip
was strong, his injured arm seeming no longer to affect him. Violently, the two
men struggled. Langdon felt the bar ripped away, and a searing pain shot through
his palm. An instant later, Langdon was staring into the splintered point of
the weapon. The hunter had become the hunted.
Langdon felt like
hed been hit by a cyclone. The Hassassin circled, smiling now, backing Langdon
against the wall. What is your American adágio ? he chided. Something
about curiosity and the cat?
Langdon could
barely focus. He cursed his carelessness as the Hassassin moved in. Nothing was
making sense. A sixth Illuminati brand? In frustration he blurted, Ive never
read anything about a sixth Illuminati brand!
I think you
probably have. The killer chuckled as he herded Langdon around the oval wall.
Langdon was lost.
He most certainly had not. There were five Illuminati brands. He backed up,
searching the room for any weapon at all.
A perfect union
of the ancient elements, the Hassassin said. The final brand is the most
brilliant of all. Im afraid you will never see it, though.
Langdon sensed he
would not be seeing much of anything in a moment. He kept backing up, searching
the room for an option. And youve seen this final brand? Langdon demanded,
trying to buy time.
Someday perhaps
they will honor me. As I prove myself. He jabbed at Langdon, as if enjoying a
game.
Langdon slid
backward again. He had the feeling the Hassassin was directing him around the
wall toward some unseen destination. Where? Langdon could not afford to look
behind him. The brand? he demanded. Where is it?
Not here. Janus
is apparently the only one who holds it.
Janus? Langdon
did not recognize the name.
The Illuminati
leader. He is arriving shortly.
The Illuminati
leader is coming here ?
To perform the
final branding.
Langdon shot a
frightened glance to Vittoria. She looked strangely calm, her eyes closed to
the world around her, her lungs pulling slowly . . . deeply. Was she the final
victim? Was he?
Such conceit,
the Hassassin sneered, watching Langdons eyes. The two of you are nothing.
You will die, of course, that is for certain. But the final victim of whom I
speak is a truly dangerous enemy.
Langdon tried to
make sense of the Hassassins words. A dangerous enemy? The top cardinals were
all dead. The Pope was dead. The Illuminati had wiped them all out. Langdon
found the answer in the vacuum of the Hassassins eyes.
The camerlegno.
Camerlegno
Ventresca was the one man who had been a beacon of hope for the world through
this entire tribulation. The camerlegno had done more to condemn the Illuminati
tonight than decades of conspiracy theorists. Apparently he would pay the
price. He was the Illuminatis final target.
Youll never get
to him, Langdon challenged.
Not I, the
Hassassin replied, forcing Langdon farther back around the wall. That honor is
reserved for Janus himself.
The Illuminati
leader himself intends to brand the camerlegno?
Power has its
privileges.
But no one could
possibly get into Vatican City right now!
The Hassassin
looked smug. Not unless he had an appointment.
Langdon was
confused. The only person expected at the Vatican right now was the person the
press was calling the 11th Hour Samaritanthe person Rocher said had
information that could save
Langdon stopped
short. Good God!
The Hassassin
smirked, clearly enjoying Langdons sickening cognition. I too wondered how
Janus would gain entrance. Then in the van I heard the radioa report about an
11th hour Samaritan. He smiled. The Vatican will welcome Janus with open
arms.
Langdon almost
stumbled backward. Janus is the Samaritan! It was an unthinkable deception. The
Illuminati leader would get a royal escort directly to the camerlegnos
chambers. But how did Janus fool Rocher? Or was Rocher somehow involved?
Langdon felt a chill. Ever since he had almost suffocated in the secret
archives, Langdon had not entirely trusted Rocher.
The Hassassin
jabbed suddenly, nicking Langdon in the side.
Langdon jumped
back, his temper flaring. Janus will never get out alive!
The Hassassin
shrugged. Some causes are worth dying for.
Langdon sensed
the killer was serious. Janus coming to Vatican City on a suicide mission? A
question of honor? For an instant, Langdons mind took in the entire terrifying
cycle. The Illuminati plot had come full circle. The priest whom the Illuminati
had inadvertently brought to power by killing the Pope had emerged as a worthy
adversary. In a final act of defiance, the Illuminati leader would destroy him.
Suddenly, Langdon
felt the wall behind him disappear. There was a rush of cool air, and he
staggered backward into the night. The balcony! He now realized what the
Hassassin had in mind.
Langdon
immediately sensed the precipice behind hima hundred foot drop to the
courtyard below. He had seen it on his way in. The Hassassin wasted no time.
With a violent surge, he lunged. The spear sliced toward Langdons midsection.
Langdon skidded back, and the point came up short, catching only his shirt.
Again the point came at him. Langdon slid farther back, feeling the banister
right behind him. Certain the next jab would kill him, Langdon attempted the
absurd. Spinning to one side, he reached out and grabbed the shaft, sending a
jolt of pain through his palm. Langdon held on.
The Hassassin
seemed unfazed. They strained for a moment against one another, face to face,
the Hassassins breath fetid in Langdons nostrils. The bar began to slip. The
Hassassin was too strong. In a final act of desperation, Langdon stretched out
his leg, dangerously off balance as he tried to ram his foot down on the
Hassassins injured toe. But the man was a professional and adjusted to protect
his weakness.
Langdon had just
played his final card. And he knew he had lost the hand.
The Hassassins
arms exploded upward, driving Langdon back against the railing. Langdon sensed
nothing but empty space behind him as the railing hit just beneath his
buttocks. The Hassassin held the bar crosswise and drove it into Langdons
chest. Langdons back arched over the chasm.
Maassalamah,
the Hassassin sneered. Good bye.
With a merciless
glare, the Hassassin gave a final shove. Langdons center of gravity shifted,
and his feet swung up off the floor. With only one hope of survival, Langdon
grabbed on to the railing as he went over. His left hand slipped, but his right
hand held on. He ended up hanging upside down by his legs and one hand . . .
straining to hold on.
Looming over him,
the Hassassin raised the bar overhead, preparing to bring it crashing down. As
the bar began to accelerate, Langdon saw a vision. Perhaps it was the imminence
of death or simply blind fear, but in that moment, he sensed a sudden aura
surrounding the Hassassin. A glowing effulgence seemed to swell out of nothing
behind him . . . like an incoming fireball.
Halfway through
his swing, the Hassassin dropped the bar and screamed in agony.
The iron bar
clattered past Langdon out into the night. The Hassassin spun away from him,
and Langdon saw a blistering torch burn on the killers back. Langdon pulled
himself up to see Vittoria, eyes flaring, now facing the Hassassin.
Vittoria waved a
torch in front of her, the vengeance in her face resplendent in the flames. How
she had escaped, Langdon did not know or care. He began scrambling back up over
the banister.
The battle would
be short. The Hassassin was a deadly match. Screaming with rage, the killer
lunged for her. She tried to dodge, but the man was on her, holding the torch
and about to wrestle it away. Langdon did not wait. Leaping off the banister,
Langdon jabbed his clenched fist into the blistered burn on the Hassassins
back.
The scream seemed
to echo all the way to the Vatican.
The Hassassin
froze a moment, his back arched in anguish. He let go of the torch, and
Vittoria thrust it hard into his face. There was a hiss of flesh as his left
eye sizzled. He screamed again, raising his hands to his face.
Eye for an eye,
Vittoria hissed. This time she swung the torch like a bat, and when it
connected, the Hassassin stumbled back against the railing. Langdon and
Vittoria went for him at the same instant, both heaving and pushing. The
Hassassins body sailed backward over the banister into the night. There was no
scream. The only sound was the crack of his spine as he landed spread eagle on
a pile of cannonballs far below.
Langdon turned
and stared at Vittoria in bewilderment. Slackened ropes hung off her midsection
and shoulders. Her eyes blazed like an inferno.
Houdini knew
yoga.
109
Meanwhile, in St.
Peters Square, the wall of Swiss Guards yelled orders and fanned outward,
trying to push the crowds back to a safer distance. It was no use. The crowd
was too dense and seemed far more interested in the Vaticans impending doom
than in their own safety. The towering media screens in the square were now
transmitting a live countdown of the antimatter canistera direct feed from the
Swiss Guard security monitorcompliments of the camerlegno. Unfortunately, the
image of the canister counting down was doing nothing to repel the crowds. The
people in the square apparently looked at the tiny droplet of liquid suspended
in the canister and decided it was not as menacing as they had thought. They
could also see the countdown clock nowa little under forty five minutes until
detonation. Plenty of time to stay and watch.
Nonetheless, the
Swiss Guards unanimously agreed that the camerlegnos bold decision to address
the world with the truth and then provide the media with actual visuals of
Illuminati treachery had been a savvy maneuver. The Illuminati had no doubt
expected the Vatican to be their usual reticent selves in the face of
adversity. Not tonight. Camerlegno Carlo Ventresca had proven himself a
commanding foe.
Inside the
Sistine Chapel, Cardinal Mortati was getting restless. It was past 11:15 P.M.
Many of the cardinals were continuing to pray, but others had clustered around
the exit, clearly unsettled by the hour. Some of the cardinals began pounding
on the door with their fists.
Outside the door
Lieutenant Chartrand heard the pounding and didnt know what to do. He checked
his watch. It was time. Captain Rocher had given strict orders that the
cardinals were not to be let out until he gave the word. The pounding on the
door became more intense, and Chartrand felt uneasy. He wondered if the captain
had simply forgotten. The captain had been acting very erratic since his
mysterious phone call.
Chartrand pulled
out his walkie talkie. Captain? Chartrand here. It is past time. Should I open
the Sistine?
That door stays
shut. I believe I already gave you that order.
Yes, sir, I
just
Our guest is
arriving shortly. Take a few men upstairs, and guard the door of the Popes
office. The camerlegno is not to go anywhere.
Im sorry, sir?
What is it that
you dont understand, Lieutenant?
Nothing, sir. I
am on my way.
Upstairs in the
Office of the Pope, the camerlegno stared in quiet meditation at the fire. Give
me strength, God. Bring us a miracle. He poked at the coals, wondering if he
would survive the night.
110
Eleven twenty
three P.M.
Vittoria stood
trembling on the balcony of Castle St. Angelo, staring out across Rome, her
eyes moist with tears. She wanted badly to embrace Robert Langdon, but she
could not. Her body felt anesthetized. Readjusting. Taking stock. The man who
had killed her father lay far below, dead, and she had almost been a victim as
well.
When Langdons
hand touched her shoulder, the infusion of warmth seemed to magically shatter
the ice. Her body shuddered back to life. The fog lifted, and she turned.
Robert looked like hellwet and mattedhe had obviously been through purgatory
to come rescue her.
Thank you . . .
she whispered.
Langdon gave an
exhausted smile and reminded her that it was she who deserved thanksher
ability to practically dislocate her shoulders had just saved them both.
Vittoria wiped her eyes. She could have stood there forever with him, but the
reprieve was short lived.
We need to get
out of here, Langdon said.
Vittorias mind
was elsewhere. She was staring out toward the Vatican. The worlds smallest
country looked unsettlingly close, glowing white under a barrage of media
lights. To her shock, much of St. Peters Square was still packed with people!
The Swiss Guard had apparently been able to clear only about a hundred and
fifty feet backthe area directly in front of the basilicaless than one third
of the square. The shell of congestion encompassing the square was compacted
now, those at the safer distances pressing for a closer look, trapping the
others inside. They are too close! Vittoria thought. Much too close!
Im going back
in, Langdon said flatly.
Vittoria turned,
incredulous. Into the Vatican ?
Langdon told her
about the Samaritan, and how it was a ploy. The Illuminati leader, a man named
Janus, was actually coming himself to brand the camerlegno. A final Illuminati
act of domination.
Nobody in
Vatican City knows, Langdon said. I have no way to contact them, and this guy
is arriving any minute. I have to warn the guards before they let him in.
But youll never
get through the crowd!
Langdons voice
was confident. Theres a way. Trust me.
Vittoria sensed
once again that the historian knew something she did not. Im coming.
No. Why risk
both
I have to find a
way to get those people out of there! Theyre in incredible dange
Just then, the
balcony they were standing on began to shake. A deafening rumble shook the
whole castle. Then a white light from the direction of St. Peters blinded
them. Vittoria had only one thought. Oh my God! The antimatter annihilated
early!
But instead of an
explosion, a huge cheer went up from the crowd. Vittoria squinted into the
light. It was a barrage of media lights from the square, now trained, it
seemed, on them! Everyone was turned their way, hollering and pointing. The
rumble grew louder. The air in the square seemed suddenly joyous.
Langdon looked
baffled. What the devil
The sky overhead
roared.
Emerging from
behind the tower, without warning, came the papal helicopter. It thundered
fifty feet above them, on a beeline for Vatican City. As it passed overhead,
radiant in the media lights, the castle trembled. The lights followed the
helicopter as it passed by, and Langdon and Vittoria were suddenly again in the
dark.
Vittoria had the
uneasy feeling they were too late as they watched the mammoth machine slow to a
stop over St. Peters Square. Kicking up a cloud of dust, the chopper dropped
onto the open portion of the square between the crowd and the basilica,
touching down at the bottom of the basilicas staircase.
Talk about an
entrance, Vittoria said. Against the white marble, she could see a tiny speck
of a person emerge from the Vatican and move toward the chopper. She would
never have recognized the figure except for the bright red beret on his head.
Red carpet greeting. Thats Rocher.
Langdon pounded
his fist on the banister. Somebodys got to warn them! He turned to go.
Vittoria caught
his arm. Wait! She had just seen something else, something her eyes refused
to believe. Fingers trembling, she pointed toward the chopper. Even from this
distance, there was no mistaking. Descending the gangplank was another figure .
. . a figure who moved so uniquely that it could only be one man. Although the
figure was seated, he accelerated across the open square with effortless
control and startling speed.
A king on an
electric throne.
It was Maximilian
Kohler.
111
Kohler was
sickened by the opulence of the Hallway of the Belvedere. The gold leaf in the
ceiling alone probably could have funded a years worth of cancer research.
Rocher led Kohler up a handicapped ramp on a circuitous route into the
Apostolic Palace.
No elevator?
Kohler demanded.
No power.
Rocher motioned to the candles burning around them in the darkened building.
Part of our search tactic.
Tactics which no
doubt failed.
Rocher nodded.
Kohler broke into
another coughing fit and knew it might be one of his last. It was not an
entirely unwelcome thought.
When they reached
the top floor and started down the hallway toward the Popes office, four Swiss
Guards ran toward them, looking troubled. Captain, what are you doing up here?
I thought this man had information that
He will only
speak to the camerlegno.
The guards
recoiled, looking suspicious.
Tell the
camerlegno, Rocher said forcefully, that the director of CERN, Maximilian
Kohler, is here to see him. Immediately.
Yes, sir! One
of the guards ran off in the direction of the camerlegnos office. The others
stood their ground. They studied Rocher, looking uneasy. Just one moment,
captain. We will announce your guest.
Kohler, however,
did not stop. He turned sharply and maneuvered his chair around the sentinels.
The guards spun
and broke into a jog beside him. Fermati! Sir! Stop!
Kohler felt
repugnance for them. Not even the most elite security force in the world was
immune to the pity everyone felt for cripples. Had Kohler been a healthy man,
the guards would have tackled him. Cripples are powerless, Kohler thought. Or
so the world believes.
Kohler knew he
had very little time to accomplish what he had come for. He also knew he might
die here tonight. He was surprised how little he cared. Death was a price he
was ready to pay. He had endured too much in his life to have his work
destroyed by someone like Camerlegno Ventresca.
Signore! the
guards shouted, running ahead and forming a line across the hallway. You must
stop! One of them pulled a sidearm and aimed it at Kohler.
Kohler stopped.
Rocher stepped
in, looking contrite. Mr. Kohler, please. It will only be a moment. No one
enters the Office of the Pope unannounced.
Kohler could see
in Rochers eyes that he had no choice but to wait. Fine, Kohler thought. We
wait.
The guards,
cruelly it seemed, had stopped Kohler next to a full length gilded mirror. The
sight of his own twisted form repulsed Kohler. The ancient rage brimmed yet
again to the surface. It empowered him. He was among the enemy now. These were
the people who had robbed him of his dignity. These were the people. Because of
them he had never felt the touch of a woman . . . had never stood tall to
accept an award. What truth do these people possess? What proof, damn it! A book
of ancient fables? Promises of miracles to come? Science creates miracles every
day!
Kohler stared a
moment into his own stony eyes. Tonight I may die at the hands of religion, he
thought. But it will not be the first time.
For a moment, he
was eleven years old again, lying in his bed in his parents Frankfurt mansion.
The sheets beneath him were Europes finest linen, but they were soaked with
sweat. Young Max felt like he was on fire, the pain wracking his body
unimaginable. Kneeling beside his bed, where they had been for two days, were
his mother and father. They were praying.
In the shadows
stood three of Frankfurts best doctors.
I urge you to
reconsider! one of the doctors said. Look at the boy! His fever is
increasing. He is in terrible pain. And danger!
But Max knew his
mothers reply before she even said it. Gott wird ihn beschuetzen.
Yes, Max thought.
God will protect me. The conviction in his mothers voice gave him strength.
God will protect me.
An hour later,
Max felt like his whole body was being crushed beneath a car. He could not even
breathe to cry.
Your son is in
great suffering, another doctor said. Let me at least ease his pain. I have
in my bag a simple injection of
Ruhe, bitte!
Maxs father silenced the doctor without ever opening his eyes. He simply kept
praying.
Father, please!
Max wanted to scream. Let them stop the pain! But his words were lost in a
spasm of coughing.
An hour later,
the pain had worsened.
Your son could
become paralyzed, one of the doctors scolded. Or even die! We have medicines
that will help!
Frau and Herr
Kohler would not allow it. They did not believe in medicine. Who were they to
interfere with Gods master plan? They prayed harder. After all, God had
blessed them with this boy, why would God take the child away? His mother
whispered to Max to be strong. She explained that God was testing him . . .
like the Bible story of Abraham . . . a test of his faith.
Max tried to have
faith, but the pain was excruciating.
I cannot watch
this! one of the doctors finally said, running from the room.
By dawn, Max was
barely conscious. Every muscle in his body spasmed in agony. Where is Jesus? he
wondered. Doesnt he love me? Max felt the life slipping from his body.
His mother had
fallen asleep at the bedside, her hands still clasped over him. Maxs father
stood across the room at the window staring out at the dawn. He seemed to be in
a trance. Max could hear the low mumble of his ceaseless prayers for mercy.
It was then that
Max sensed the figure hovering over him. An angel? Max could barely see. His
eyes were swollen shut. The figure whispered in his ear, but it was not the
voice of an angel. Max recognized it as one of the doctors . . . the one who
had sat in the corner for two days, never leaving, begging Maxs parents to let
him administer some new drug from England.
I will never
forgive myself, the doctor whispered, if I do not do this. Then the doctor
gently took Maxs frail arm. I wish I had done it sooner.
Max felt a tiny
prick in his armbarely discernible through the pain.
Then the doctor
quietly packed his things. Before he left, he put a hand on Maxs forehead.
This will save your life. I have great faith in the power of medicine.
Within minutes,
Max felt as if some sort of magic spirit were flowing through his veins. The
warmth spread through his body numbing his pain. Finally, for the first time in
days, Max slept.
When the fever
broke, his mother and father proclaimed a miracle of God. But when it became
evident that their son was crippled, they became despondent. They wheeled their
son into the church and begged the priest for counseling.
It was only by
the grace of God, the priest told them, that this boy survived.
Max listened,
saying nothing.
But our son
cannot walk! Frau Kohler was weeping.
The priest nodded
sadly. Yes. It seems God has punished him for not having enough faith.
Mr. Kohler? It
was the Swiss Guard who had run ahead. The camerlegno says he will grant you
audience.
Kohler grunted,
accelerating again down the hall.
He is surprised
by your visit, the guard said.
Im sure.
Kohler rolled on. I would like to see him alone.
Impossible, the
guard said. No one
Lieutenant,
Rocher barked. The meeting will be as Mr. Kohler wishes.
The guard stared
in obvious disbelief.
Outside the door
to the Popes office, Rocher allowed his guards to take standard precautions
before letting Kohler in. Their handheld metal detector was rendered worthless
by the myriad of electronic devices on Kohlers wheelchair. The guards frisked
him but were obviously too ashamed of his disability to do it properly. They
never found the revolver affixed beneath his chair. Nor did they relieve him of
the other object . . . the one that Kohler knew would bring unforgettable
closure to this evenings chain of events.
When Kohler
entered the Popes office, Camerlegno Ventresca was alone, kneeling in prayer
beside a dying fire. He did not open his eyes.
Mr. Kohler, the
camerlegno said. Have you come to make me a martyr?
112
All the while,
the narrow tunnel called Il Passetto stretched out before Langdon and Vittoria
as they dashed toward Vatican City. The torch in Langdons hand threw only
enough light to see a few yards ahead. The walls were close on either side, and
the ceiling low. The air smelled dank. Langdon raced on into the darkness with
Vittoria close at his heels.
The tunnel
inclined steeply as it left the Castle St. Angelo, proceeding upward into the
underside of a stone bastion that looked like a Roman aqueduct. There, the
tunnel leveled out and began its secret course toward Vatican City.
As Langdon ran,
his thoughts turned over and over in a kaleidoscope of confounding
imagesKohler, Janus, the Hassassin, Rocher . . . a sixth brand? Im sure
youve heard about the sixth brand, the killer had said. The most brilliant of
all. Langdon was quite certain he had not. Even in conspiracy theory lore,
Langdon could think of no references to any sixth brand. Real or imagined.
There were rumors of a gold bullion and a flawless Illuminati Diamond but never
any mention of a sixth brand.
Kohler cant be
Janus! Vittoria declared as they ran down the interior of the dike. Its
impossible!
Impossible was
one word Langdon had stopped using tonight. I dont know, Langdon yelled as
they ran. Kohler has a serious grudge, and he also has some serious
influence.
This crisis has
made CERN look like monsters! Max would never do anything to damage CERNs
reputation!
On one count,
Langdon knew CERN had taken a public beating tonight, all because of the Illuminatis
insistence on making this a public spectacle. And yet, he wondered how much
CERN had really been damaged. Criticism from the church was nothing new for
CERN. In fact, the more Langdon thought about it, the more he wondered if this
crisis might actually benefit CERN. If publicity were the game, then antimatter
was the jackpot winner tonight. The entire planet was talking about it.
You know what
promoter P. T. Barnum said, Langdon called over his shoulder. 'I dont care
what you say about me, just spell my name right! I bet people are already
secretly lining up to license antimatter technology. And after they see its
true power at midnight tonight . . .
Illogical,
Vittoria said. Publicizing scientific breakthroughs is not about showing
destructive power! This is terrible for antimatter, trust me!
Langdons torch
was fading now. Then maybe its all much simpler than that. Maybe Kohler
gambled that the Vatican would keep the antimatter a secretrefusing to empower
the Illuminati by confirming the weapons existence. Kohler expected the
Vatican to be their usual tight lipped selves about the threat, but the
camerlegno changed the rules.
Vittoria was
silent as they dashed down the tunnel.
Suddenly the
scenario was making more sense to Langdon. Yes! Kohler never counted on the
camerlegnos reaction. The camerlegno broke the Vatican tradition of secrecy
and went public about the crisis. He was dead honest. He put the antimatter on
TV, for Gods sake. It was a brilliant response, and Kohler never expected it.
And the irony of the whole thing is that the Illuminati attack backfired. It
inadvertently produced a new church leader in the camerlegno. And now Kohler is
coming to kill him!
Max is a
bastard, Vittoria declared, but he is not a murderer. And he would never have
been involved in my fathers assassination.
In Langdons
mind, it was Kohlers voice that answered. Leonardo was considered dangerous by
many purists at CERN. Fusing science and God is the ultimate scientific
blasphemy. Maybe Kohler found out about the antimatter project weeks ago and
didnt like the religious implications.
So he killed my
father over it? Ridiculous! Besides, Max Kohler would never have known the
project existed.
While you were
gone, maybe your father broke down and consulted Kohler, asking for guidance.
You yourself said your father was concerned about the moral implications of
creating such a deadly substance.
Asking moral
guidance from Maximilian Kohler? Vittoria snorted. I dont think so!
The tunnel banked
slightly westward. The faster they ran, the dimmer Langdons torch became. He
began to fear what the place would look like if the light went out. Black.
Besides,
Vittoria argued, why would Kohler have bothered to call you in this morning
and ask for help if he is behind the whole thing?
Langdon had
already considered it. By calling me, Kohler covered his bases. He made sure
no one would accuse him of nonaction in the face of crisis. He probably never
expected us to get this far.
The thought of
being used by Kohler incensed Langdon. Langdons involvement had given the
Illuminati a level of credibility. His credentials and publications had been
quoted all night by the media, and as ridiculous as it was, the presence of a
Harvard professor in Vatican City had somehow raised the whole emergency beyond
the scope of paranoid delusion and convinced skeptics around the world that the
Illuminati brotherhood was not only a historical fact, but a force to be
reckoned with.
That BBC
reporter, Langdon said, thinks CERN is the new Illuminati lair.
What! Vittoria
stumbled behind him. She pulled herself up and ran on. He said that!?
On air. He
likened CERN to the Masonic lodgesan innocent organization unknowingly
harboring the Illuminati brotherhood within.
My God, this is
going to destroy CERN.
Langdon was not
so sure. Either way, the theory suddenly seemed less far fetched. CERN was the
ultimate scientific haven. It was home to scientists from over a dozen
countries. They seemed to have endless private funding. And Maximilian Kohler
was their director.
Kohler is Janus.
If Kohlers not
involved, Langdon challenged, then what is he doing here?
Probably trying
to stop this madness. Show support. Maybe he really is acting as the Samaritan!
He could have found out who knew about the antimatter project and has come to
share information.
The killer said
he was coming to brand the camerlegno.
Listen to
yourself! It would be a suicide mission. Max would never get out alive.
Langdon considered
it. Maybe that was the point.
The outline of a
steel gate loomed ahead, blocking their progress down the tunnel. Langdons
heart almost stopped. When they approached, however, they found the ancient
lock hanging open. The gate swung freely.
Langdon breathed
a sigh of relief, realizing as he had suspected, that the ancient tunnel was in
use. Recently. As in today. He now had little doubt that four terrified
cardinals had been secreted through here earlier.
They ran on.
Langdon could now hear the sounds of chaos to his left. It was St. Peters
Square. They were getting close.
They hit another
gate, this one heavier. It too was unlocked. The sound of St. Peters Square
faded behind them now, and Langdon sensed they had passed through the outer
wall of Vatican City. He wondered where inside the Vatican this ancient passage
would conclude. In the gardens? In the basilica? In the papal residence?
Then, without
warning, the tunnel ended.
The cumbrous door
blocking their way was a thick wall of riveted iron. Even by the last flickers
of his torch, Langdon could see that the portal was perfectly smoothno
handles, no knobs, no keyholes, no hinges. No entry.
He felt a surge
of panic. In architect speak, this rare kind of door was called a senza chiave
a one way portal, used for security, and only operable from one sidethe other
side. Langdons hope dimmed to black . . . along with the torch in his hand.
He looked at his
watch. Mickey glowed.
11:29 P.M.
With a scream of
frustration, Langdon swung the torch and started pounding on the door.
113
Something was
wrong.
Lieutenant
Chartrand stood outside the Popes office and sensed in the uneasy stance of
the soldier standing with him that they shared the same anxiety. The private
meeting they were shielding, Rocher had said, could save the Vatican from
destruction. So Chartrand wondered why his protective instincts were tingling.
And why was Rocher acting so strangely?
Something
definitely was awry.
Captain Rocher
stood to Chartrands right, staring dead ahead, his sharp gaze
uncharacteristically distant. Chartrand barely recognized the captain. Rocher
had not been himself in the last hour. His decisions made no sense.
Someone should be
present inside this meeting! Chartrand thought. He had heard Maximilian Kohler
bolt the door after he entered. Why had Rocher permitted this?
But there was so
much more bothering Chartrand. The cardinals. The cardinals were still locked
in the Sistine Chapel. This was absolute insanity. The camerlegno had wanted
them evacuated fifteen minutes ago! Rocher had overruled the decision and not
informed the camerlegno. Chartrand had expressed concern, and Rocher had almost
taken off his head. Chain of command was never questioned in the Swiss Guard,
and Rocher was now top dog.
Half an hour,
Rocher thought, discreetly checking his Swiss chronometer in the dim light of
the candelabra lighting the hall. Please hurry.
Chartrand wished
he could hear what was happening on the other side of the doors. Still, he knew
there was no one he would rather have handling this crisis than the camerlegno.
The man had been tested beyond reason tonight, and he had not flinched. He had
confronted the problem head on . . . truthful, candid, shining like an example
to all. Chartrand felt proud right now to be a Catholic. The Illuminati had
made a mistake when they challenged Camerlegno Ventresca.
At that moment,
however, Chartrands thoughts were jolted by an unexpected sound. A banging. It
was coming from down the hall. The pounding was distant and muffled, but
incessant. Rocher looked up. The captain turned to Chartrand and motioned down
the hall. Chartrand understood. He turned on his flashlight and took off to
investigate.
The banging was
more desperate now. Chartrand ran thirty yards down the corridor to an
intersection. The noise seemed to be coming from around the corner, beyond the
Sala Clementina. Chartrand felt perplexed. There was only one room back
therethe Popes private library. His Holinesss private library had been
locked since the Popes death. Nobody could possibly be in there!
Chartrand hurried
down the second corridor, turned another corner, and rushed to the library
door. The wooden portico was diminutive, but it stood in the dark like a dour
sentinel. The banging was coming from somewhere inside. Chartrand hesitated. He
had never been inside the private library. Few had. No one was allowed in
without an escort by the Pope himself.
Tentatively,
Chartrand reached for the doorknob and turned. As he had imagined, the door was
locked. He put his ear to the door. The banging was louder. Then he heard
something else. Voices! Someone calling out!
He could not make
out the words, but he could hear the panic in their shouts. Was someone trapped
in the library? Had the Swiss Guard not properly evacuated the building?
Chartrand hesitated, wondering if he should go back and consult Rocher. The
hell with that. Chartrand had been trained to make decisions, and he would make
one now. He pulled out his side arm and fired a single shot into the door
latch. The wood exploded, and the door swung open.
Beyond the
threshold Chartrand saw nothing but blackness. He shone his flashlight. The
room was rectangularoriental carpets, high oak shelves packed with books, a
stitched leather couch, and a marble fireplace. Chartrand had heard stories of
this placethree thousand ancient volumes side by side with hundreds of current
magazines and periodicals, anything His Holiness requested. The coffee table
was covered with journals of science and politics.
The banging was
clearer now. Chartrand shone his light across the room toward the sound. On the
far wall, beyond the sitting area, was a huge door made of iron. It looked
impenetrable as a vault. It had four mammoth locks. The tiny etched letters
dead center of the door took Chartrands breath away.
IL PASSETTO
Chartrand stared.
The Popes secret escape route! Chartrand had certainly heard of Il Passetto,
and he had even heard rumors that it had once had an entrance here in the
library, but the tunnel had not been used in ages! Who could be banging on the
other side?
Chartrand took
his flashlight and rapped on the door. There was a muffled exultation from the
other side. The banging stopped, and the voices yelled louder. Chartrand could
barely make out their words through the barricade.
. . . Kohler . .
. lie . . . camerlegno . . .
Who is that?
Chartrand yelled.
. . . ert
Langdon . . . Vittoria Ve . . .
Chartrand
understood enough to be confused. I thought you were dead!
. . . the door,
the voices yelled. Open . . . !
Chartrand looked
at the iron barrier and knew he would need dynamite to get through there.
Impossible! he yelled. Too thick!
. . . meeting .
. . stop . . . erlegno . . . danger . . .
Despite his
training on the hazards of panic, Chartrand felt a sudden rush of fear at the
last few words. Had he understood correctly? Heart pounding, he turned to run
back to the office. As he turned, though, he stalled. His gaze had fallen to
something on the door . . . something more shocking even than the message
coming from beyond it. Emerging from the keyholes of each of the doors massive
locks were keys. Chartrand stared. The keys were here? He blinked in disbelief.
The keys to this door were supposed to be in a vault someplace! This passage
was never usednot for centuries!
Chartrand dropped
his flashlight on the floor. He grabbed the first key and turned. The mechanism
was rusted and stiff, but it still worked. Someone had opened it recently.
Chartrand worked the next lock. And the next. When the last bolt slid aside,
Chartrand pulled. The slab of iron creaked open. He grabbed his light and shone
it into the passage.
Robert Langdon
and Vittoria Vetra looked like apparitions as they staggered into the library.
Both were ragged and tired, but they were very much alive.
What is this!
Chartrand demanded. Whats going on! Where did you come from?
Wheres Max
Kohler? Langdon demanded.
Chartrand
pointed. In a private meeting with the camer
Langdon and
Vittoria pushed past him and ran down the darkened hall. Chartrand turned,
instinctively raising his gun at their backs. He quickly lowered it and ran
after them. Rocher apparently heard them coming, because as they arrived
outside the Popes office, Rocher had spread his legs in a protective stance
and was leveling his gun at them. Alt!
The camerlegno
is in danger! Langdon yelled, raising his arms in surrender as he slid to a
stop. Open the door! Max Kohler is going to kill the camerlegno!
Rocher looked
angry.
Open the door!
Vittoria said. Hurry!
But it was too
late.
From inside the
Popes office came a bloodcurdling scream. It was the camerlegno.
114
The confrontation
lasted only seconds.
Camerlegno
Ventresca was still screaming when Chartrand stepped past Rocher and blew open
the door of the Popes office. The guards dashed in. Langdon and Vittoria ran
in behind them.
The scene before
them was staggering.
The chamber was
lit only by candlelight and a dying fire. Kohler was near the fireplace,
standing awkwardly in front of his wheelchair. He brandished a pistol, aimed at
the camerlegno, who lay on the floor at his feet, writhing in agony. The
camerlegnos cassock was torn open, and his bare chest was seared black.
Langdon could not make out the symbol from across the room, but a large, square
brand lay on the floor near Kohler. The metal still glowed red.
Two of the Swiss
Guards acted without hesitation. They opened fire. The bullets smashed into
Kohlers chest, driving him backward. Kohler collapsed into his wheelchair, his
chest gurgling blood. His gun went skittering across the floor.
Langdon stood
stunned in the doorway.
Vittoria seemed
paralyzed. Max . . . she whispered.
The camerlegno,
still twisting on the floor, rolled toward Rocher, and with the trancelike
terror of the early witch hunts, pointed his index finger at Rocher and yelled
a single word. ILLUMINATUS!
You bastard,
Rocher said, running at him. You sanctimonious bas
This time it was
Chartrand who reacted on instinct, putting three bullets in Rochers back. The
captain fell face first on the tile floor and slid lifeless through his own
blood. Chartrand and the guards dashed immediately to the camerlegno, who lay
clutching himself, convulsing in pain.
Both guards let
out exclamations of horror when they saw the symbol seared on the camerlegnos
chest. The second guard saw the brand upside down and immediately staggered
backward with fear in his eyes. Chartrand, looking equally overwhelmed by the
symbol, pulled the camerlegnos torn cassock up over the burn, shielding it
from view.
Langdon felt
delirious as he moved across the room. Through a mist of insanity and violence,
he tried to make sense of what he was seeing. A crippled scientist, in a final
act of symbolic dominance, had flown into Vatican City and branded the churchs
highest official. Some things are worth dying for, the Hassassin had said.
Langdon wondered how a handicapped man could possibly have overpowered the
camerlegno. Then again, Kohler had a gun. It doesnt matter how he did it!
Kohler accomplished his mission!
Langdon moved
toward the gruesome scene. The camerlegno was being attended, and Langdon felt
himself drawn toward the smoking brand on the floor near Kohlers wheelchair.
The sixth brand? The closer Langdon got, the more confused he became. The brand
seemed to be a perfect square, quite large, and had obviously come from the
sacred center compartment of the chest in the Illuminati Lair. A sixth and
final brand, the Hassassin had said. The most brilliant of all.
Langdon knelt
beside Kohler and reached for the object. The metal still radiated heat.
Grasping the wooden handle, Langdon picked it up. He was not sure what he
expected to see, but it most certainly was not this.
Langdon stared a
long, confused moment. Nothing was making sense. Why had the guards cried out
in horror when they saw this? It was a square of meaningless squiggles. The
most brilliant of all? It was symmetrical, Langdon could tell as he rotated it
in his hand, but it was gibberish.
When he felt a
hand on his shoulder, Langdon looked up, expecting Vittoria. The hand, however,
was covered with blood. It belonged to Maximilian Kohler, who was reaching out
from his wheelchair.
Langdon dropped
the brand and staggered to his feet. Kohlers still alive!
Slumped in his
wheelchair, the dying director was still breathing, albeit barely, sucking in
sputtering gasps. Kohlers eyes met Langdons, and it was the same stony gaze
that had greeted Langdon at CERN earlier that day. The eyes looked even harder
in death, the loathing and enmity rising to the surface.
The scientists
body quivered, and Langdon sensed he was trying to move. Everyone else in the
room was focused on the camerlegno, and Langdon wanted to call out, but he
could not react. He was transfixed by the intensity radiating from Kohler in
these final seconds of his life. The director, with tremulous effort, lifted
his arm and pulled a small device off the arm of his wheelchair. It was the
size of a matchbox. He held it out, quivering. For an instant, Langdon feared
Kohler had a weapon. But it was something else.
G give . . .
Kohlers final words were a gurgling whisper. G give this . . . to the m
media. Kohler collapsed motionless, and the device fell in his lap.
Shocked, Langdon
stared at the device. It was electronic. The words SONY RUVI were printed
across the front. Langdon recognized it as one of those new ultraminiature,
palm held camcorders. The balls on this guy! he thought. Kohler had apparently
recorded some sort of final suicide message he wanted the media to broadcast .
. . no doubt some sermon about the importance of science and the evils of
religion. Langdon decided he had done enough for this mans cause tonight.
Before Chartrand saw Kohlers camcorder, Langdon slipped it into his deepest
jacket pocket. Kohlers final message can rot in hell!
It was the voice
of the camerlegno that broke the silence. He was trying to sit up. The
cardinals, he gasped to Chartrand.
Still in the
Sistine Chapel! Chartrand exclaimed. Captain Rocher ordered
Evacuate . . .
now. Everyone.
Chartrand sent
one of the other guards running off to let the cardinals out.
The camerlegno
grimaced in pain. Helicopter . . . out front . . . get me to a hospital.
115
In St. Peters
Square, the Swiss Guard pilot sat in the cockpit of the parked Vatican
helicopter and rubbed his temples. The chaos in the square around him was so
loud that it drowned out the sound of his idling rotors. This was no solemn
candlelight vigil. He was amazed a riot had not broken out yet.
With less than
twenty five minutes left until midnight, the people were still packed together,
some praying, some weeping for the church, others screaming obscenities and
proclaiming that this was what the church deserved, still others chanting
apocalyptic Bible verses.
The pilots head
pounded as the media lights glinted off his windshield. He squinted out at the
clamorous masses. Banners waved over the crowd.
Antimatter is the
Antichrist!
Scientist=Satanist
Where is your God
now?
The pilot
groaned, his headache worsening. He half considered grabbing the windshields
vinyl covering and putting it up so he wouldnt have to watch, but he knew he
would be airborne in a matter of minutes. Lieutenant Chartrand had just radioed
with terrible news. The camerlegno had been attacked by Maximilian Kohler and
seriously injured. Chartrand, the American, and the woman were carrying the
camerlegno out now so he could be evacuated to a hospital.
The pilot felt
personally responsible for the attack. He reprimanded himself for not acting on
his gut. Earlier, when he had picked up Kohler at the airport, he had sensed
something in the scientists dead eyes. He couldnt place it, but he didnt
like it. Not that it mattered. Rocher was running the show, and Rocher insisted
this was the guy. Rocher had apparently been wrong.
A new clamor
arose from the crowd, and the pilot looked over to see a line of cardinals
processing solemnly out of the Vatican onto St. Peters Square. The cardinals
relief to be leaving ground zero seemed to be quickly overcome by looks of
bewilderment at the spectacle now going on outside the church.
The crowd noise
intensified yet again. The pilots head pounded. He needed an aspirin. Maybe
three. He didnt like to fly on medication, but a few aspirin would certainly
be less debilitating than this raging headache. He reached for the first aid
kit, kept with assorted maps and manuals in a cargo box bolted between the two
front seats. When he tried to open the box, though, he found it locked. He
looked around for the key and then finally gave up. Tonight was clearly not his
lucky night. He went back to massaging his temples.
Inside the
darkened basilica, Langdon, Vittoria, and the two guards strained breathlessly
toward the main exit. Unable to find anything more suitable, the four of them
were transporting the wounded camerlegno on a narrow table, balancing the inert
body between them as though on a stretcher. Outside the doors, the faint roar
of human chaos was now audible. The camerlegno teetered on the brink of
unconsciousness.
Time was running
out.
116
It was 11:39 P.M.
when Langdon stepped with the others from St. Peters Basilica. The glare that
hit his eyes was searing. The media lights shone off the white marble like
sunlight off a snowy tundra. Langdon squinted, trying to find refuge behind the
façades enormous columns, but the light came from all directions. In
front of him, a collage of massive video screens rose above the crowd.
Standing there
atop the magnificent stairs that spilled down to the piazza below, Langdon felt
like a reluctant player on the worlds biggest stage. Somewhere beyond the
glaring lights, Langdon heard an idling helicopter and the roar of a hundred
thousand voices. To their left, a procession of cardinals was now evacuating
onto the square. They all stopped in apparent distress to see the scene now
unfolding on the staircase.
Careful now,
Chartrand urged, sounding focused as the group began descending the stairs
toward the helicopter.
Langdon felt like
they were moving underwater. His arms ached from the weight of the camerlegno
and the table. He wondered how the moment could get much less dignified. Then
he saw the answer. The two BBC reporters had apparently been crossing the open
square on their way back to the press area. But now, with the roar of the
crowd, they had turned. Glick and Macri were now running back toward them.
Macris camera was raised and rolling. Here come the vultures, Langdon thought.
Alt! Chartrand
yelled. Get back!
But the reporters
kept coming. Langdon guessed the other networks would take about six seconds to
pick up this live BBC feed again. He was wrong. They took two. As if connected
by some sort of universal consciousness, every last media screen in the piazza
cut away from their countdown clocks and their Vatican experts and began
transmitting the same picturea jiggling action footage swooping up the Vatican
stairs. Now, everywhere Langdon looked, he saw the camerlegnos limp body in a
Technicolor close up.
This is wrong!
Langdon thought. He wanted to run down the stairs and interfere, but he could
not. It wouldnt have helped anyway. Whether it was the roar of the crowd or
the cool night air that caused it, Langdon would never know, but at that
moment, the inconceivable occurred.
Like a man
awakening from a nightmare, the camerlegnos eyes shot open and he sat bolt
upright. Taken entirely by surprise, Langdon and the others fumbled with the
shifting weight. The front of the table dipped. The camerlegno began to slide.
They tried to recover by setting the table down, but it was too late. The camerlegno
slid off the front. Incredibly, he did not fall. His feet hit the marble, and
he swayed upright. He stood a moment, looking disoriented, and then, before
anyone could stop him, he lurched forward, staggering down the stairs toward
Macri.
No! Langdon
screamed.
Chartrand rushed
forward, trying to reign in the camerlegno. But the camerlegno turned on him,
wild eyed, crazed. Leave me!
Chartrand jumped
back.
The scene went
from bad to worse. The camerlegnos torn cassock, having been only laid over
his chest by Chartrand, began to slip lower. For a moment, Langdon thought the
garment might hold, but that moment passed. The cassock let go, sliding off his
shoulders down around his waist.
The gasp that
went up from the crowd seemed to travel around the globe and back in an
instant. Cameras rolled, flashbulbs exploded. On media screens everywhere, the
image of the camerlegnos branded chest was projected, towering and in grisly
detail. Some screens were even freezing the image and rotating it 180 degrees.
The ultimate
Illuminati victory.
Langdon stared at
the brand on the screens. Although it was the imprint of the square brand he
had held earlier, the symbol now made sense. Perfect sense. The markings
awesome power hit Langdon like a train.
Orientation.
Langdon had forgotten the first rule of symbology. When is a square not a
square? He had also forgotten that iron brands, just like rubber stamps, never
looked like their imprints. They were in reverse. Langdon had been looking at
the brands negative !
As the chaos
grew, an old Illuminati quote echoed with new meaning: A flawless diamond,
born of the ancient elements with such perfection that all those who saw it
could only stare in wonder.
Langdon knew now
the myth was true.
Earth, Air, Fire,
Water.
The Illuminati
Diamond.
117
Robert Langdon
had little doubt that the chaos and hysteria coursing through St. Peters
Square at this very instant exceeded anything Vatican Hill had ever witnessed.
No battle, no crucifixion, no pilgrimage, no mystical vision . . . nothing in
the shrines 2,000 year history could possibly match the scope and drama of
this very moment.
As the tragedy
unfolded, Langdon felt oddly separate, as if hovering there beside Vittoria at
the top of the stairs. The action seemed to distend, as if in a time warp, all
the insanity slowing to a crawl . . .
The branded
camerlegno . . . raving for the world to see . . .
The Illuminati
Diamond . . . unveiled in its diabolical genius . . .
The countdown
clock registering the final twenty minutes of Vatican history . . .
The drama,
however, had only just begun.
The camerlegno,
as if in some sort of post traumatic trance, seemed suddenly puissant,
possessed by demons. He began babbling, whispering to unseen spirits, looking
up at the sky and raising his arms to God.
Speak! the
camerlegno yelled to the heavens. Yes, I hear you!
In that moment,
Langdon understood. His heart dropped like a rock.
Vittoria
apparently understood too. She went white. Hes in shock, she said. Hes
hallucinating. He thinks hes talking to God!
Somebodys got to
stop this, Langdon thought. It was a wretched and embarrassing end. Get this
man to a hospital!
Below them on the
stairs, Chinita Macri was poised and filming, apparently having located her
ideal vantage point. The images she filmed appeared instantly across the square
behind her on media screens . . . like endless drive in movies all playing the
same grisly tragedy.
The whole scene
felt epic. The camerlegno, in his torn cassock, with the scorched brand on his
chest, looked like some sort of battered champion who had overcome the rings of
hell for this one moment of revelation. He bellowed to the heavens.
Ti sento, Dio! I
hear you, God!
Chartrand backed
off, a look of awe on his face.
The hush that
fell across the crowd was instant and absolute. For a moment it was as if the
silence had fallen across the entire planet . . . everyone in front of their
TVs rigid, a communal holding of breath.
The camerlegno
stood on the stairs, before the world, and held out his arms. He looked almost
Christlike, bare and wounded before the world. He raised his arms to the
heavens and, looking up, exclaimed, Grazie! Grazie, Dio!
The silence of
the masses never broke.
Grazie, Dio!
the camerlegno cried out again. Like the sun breaking through a stormy sky, a
look of joy spread across his face. Grazie, Dio!
Thank you, God?
Langdon stared in wonder.
The camerlegno
was radiant now, his eerie transformation complete. He looked up at the sky,
still nodding furiously. He shouted to the heavens, Upon this rock I will
build my church!
Langdon knew the
words, but he had no idea why the camerlegno could possibly be shouting them.
The camerlegno
turned back to the crowd and bellowed again into the night. Upon this rock I
will build my church! Then he raised his hands to the sky and laughed out
loud. Grazie, Dio! Grazie!
The man had
clearly gone mad.
The world
watched, spellbound.
The culmination,
however, was something no one expected.
With a final
joyous exultation, the camerlegno turned and dashed back into St. Peters
Basilica.
118
Eleven forty two
P.M.
The frenzied
convoy that plunged back into the basilica to retrieve the camerlegno was not
one Langdon had ever imagined he would be part of . . . much less leading. But
he had been closest to the door and had acted on instinct.
Hell die in
here, Langdon thought, sprinting over the threshold into the darkened void.
Camerlegno! Stop!
The wall of
blackness that hit Langdon was absolute. His pupils were contracted from the
glare outside, and his field of vision now extended no farther than a few feet
before his face. He skidded to a stop. Somewhere in the blackness ahead, he
heard the camerlegnos cassock rustle as the priest ran blindly into the abyss.
Vittoria and the
guards arrived immediately. Flashlights came on, but the lights were almost
dead now and did not even begin to probe the depths of the basilica before
them. The beams swept back and forth, revealing only columns and bare floor.
The camerlegno was nowhere to be seen.
Camerlegno!
Chartrand yelled, fear in his voice. Wait! Signore!
A commotion in
the doorway behind them caused everyone to turn. Chinita Macris large frame
lurched through the entry. Her camera was shouldered, and the glowing red light
on top revealed that it was still transmitting. Glick was running behind her,
microphone in hand, yelling for her to slow down.
Langdon could not
believe these two. This is not the time!
Out! Chartrand
snapped. This is not for your eyes!
But Macri and
Glick kept coming.
Chinita! Glick
sounded fearful now. This is suicide! Im not coming!
Macri ignored
him. She threw a switch on her camera. The spotlight on top glared to life,
blinding everyone.
Langdon shielded
his face and turned away in pain. Damn it! When he looked up, though, the
church around them was illuminated for thirty yards.
At that moment
the camerlegnos voice echoed somewhere in the distance. Upon this rock I will
build my church!
Macri wheeled her
camera toward the sound. Far off, in the grayness at the end of the spotlights
reach, black fabric billowed, revealing a familiar form running down the main
aisle of the basilica.
There was a
fleeting instant of hesitation as everyones eyes took in the bizarre image.
Then the dam broke. Chartrand pushed past Langdon and sprinted after the
camerlegno. Langdon took off next. Then the guards and Vittoria.
Macri brought up
the rear, lighting everyones way and transmitting the sepulchral chase to the
world. An unwilling Glick cursed aloud as he tagged along, fumbling through a
terrified blow by blow commentary.
The main aisle of
St. Peters Basilica, Lieutenant Chartrand had once figured out, was longer
than an Olympic soccer field. Tonight, however, it felt like twice that. As the
guard sprinted after the camerlegno, he wondered where the man was headed. The
camerlegno was clearly in shock, delirious no doubt from his physical trauma
and bearing witness to the horrific massacre in the Popes office.
Somewhere up
ahead, beyond the reach of the BBC spotlight, the camerlegnos voice rang out
joyously. Upon this rock I will build my church!
Chartrand knew
the man was shouting ScriptureMatthew 16:18, if Chartrand recalled correctly.
Upon this rock I will build my church. It was an almost cruelly inapt
inspirationthe church was about to be destroyed. Surely the camerlegno had
gone mad.
Or had he?
For a fleeting
instant, Chartrands soul fluttered. Holy visions and divine messages had
always seemed like wishful delusions to himthe product of overzealous minds
hearing what they wanted to hearGod did not interact directly !
A moment later,
though, as if the Holy Spirit Himself had descended to persuade Chartrand of
His power, Chartrand had a vision.
Fifty yards
ahead, in the center of the church, a ghost appeared . . . a diaphanous,
glowing outline. The pale shape was that of the half naked camerlegno. The
specter seemed transparent, radiating light. Chartrand staggered to a stop,
feeling a knot tighten in his chest. The camerlegno is glowing! The body seemed
to shine brighter now. Then, it began to sink . . . deeper and deeper, until it
disappeared as if by magic into the blackness of the floor.
Langdon had seen
the phantom also. For a moment, he too thought he had witnessed a magical
vision. But as he passed the stunned Chartrand and ran toward the spot where
the camerlegno had disappeared, he realized what had just happened. The
camerlegno had arrived at the Niche of the Palliumsthe sunken chamber lit by
ninety nine oil lamps. The lamps in the niche shone up from beneath,
illuminating him like a ghost. Then, as the camerlegno descended the stairs
into the light, he had seemed to disappear beneath the floor.
Langdon arrived
breathless at the rim overlooking the sunken room. He peered down the stairs.
At the bottom, lit by the golden glow of oil lamps, the camerlegno dashed
across the marble chamber toward the set of glass doors that led to the room
holding the famous golden box.
What is he doing?
Langdon wondered. Certainly he cant think the golden box
The camerlegno
yanked open the doors and ran inside. Oddly though, he totally ignored the
golden box, rushing right past it. Five feet beyond the box, he dropped to his
knees and began struggling to lift an iron grate embedded in the floor.
Langdon watched
in horror, now realizing where the camerlegno was headed. Good God, no! He
dashed down the stairs after him. Father! Dont!
As Langdon opened
the glass doors and ran toward the camerlegno, he saw the camerlegno heave on
the grate. The hinged, iron bulkhead fell open with a deafening crash,
revealing a narrow shaft and a steep stairway that dropped into nothingness. As
the camerlegno moved toward the hole, Langdon grabbed his bare shoulders and
pulled him back. The mans skin was slippery with sweat, but Langdon held on.
The camerlegno
wheeled, obviously startled. What are you doing!
Langdon was
surprised when their eyes met. The camerlegno no longer had the glazed look of
a man in a trance. His eyes were keen, glistening with a lucid determination.
The brand on his chest looked excruciating.
Father, Langdon
urged, as calmly as possible, you cant go down there. We need to evacuate.
My son, the
camerlegno said, his voice eerily sane. I have just had a message. I know
Camerlegno! It
was Chartrand and the others. They came dashing down the stairs into the room,
lit by Macris camera.
When Chartrand
saw the open grate in the floor, his eyes filled with dread. He crossed himself
and shot Langdon a thankful look for having stopped the camerlegno. Langdon
understood; had read enough about Vatican architecture to know what lay beneath
that grate. It was the most sacred place in all of Christendom. Terra Santa.
Holy Ground. Some called it the Necropolis. Some called it the Catacombs.
According to accounts from the select few clergy who had descended over the
years, the Necropolis was a dark maze of subterranean crypts that could swallow
a visitor whole if he lost his way. It was not the kind of place through which
they wanted to be chasing the camerlegno.
Signore,
Chartrand pleaded. Youre in shock. We need to leave this place. You cannot go
down there. Its suicide.
The camerlegno
seemed suddenly stoic. He reached out and put a quiet hand on Chartrands
shoulder. Thank you for your concern and service. I cannot tell you how. I
cannot tell you I understand. But I have had a revelation. I know where the
antimatter is.
Everyone stared.
The camerlegno
turned to the group. Upon this rock I will build my church. That was the
message. The meaning is clear.
Langdon was still
unable to comprehend the camerlegnos conviction that he had spoken to God,
much less that he had deciphered the message. Upon this rock I will build my
church? They were the words spoken by Jesus when he chose Peter as his first
apostle. What did they have to do with anything?
Macri moved in
for a closer shot. Glick was mute, as if shell shocked.
The camerlegno
spoke quickly now. The Illuminati have placed their tool of destruction on the
very cornerstone of this church. At the foundation. He motioned down the
stairs. On the very rock upon which this church was built. And I know where
that rock is.
Langdon was
certain the time had come to overpower the camerlegno and carry him off. As
lucid as he seemed, the priest was talking nonsense. A rock? The cornerstone in
the foundation? The stairway before them didnt lead to the foundation, it led
to the necropolis! The quote is a metaphor, Father! There is no actual rock !
The camerlegno
looked strangely sad. There is a rock, my son. He pointed into the hole.
Pietro è la pietra.
Langdon froze. In
an instant it all came clear.
The austere
simplicity of it gave him chills. As Langdon stood there with the others,
staring down the long staircase, he realized that there was indeed a rock
buried in the darkness beneath this church.
Pietro è
la pietra. Peter is the rock.
Peters faith in
God was so steadfast that Jesus called Peter the rockthe unwavering disciple
on whose shoulders Jesus would build his church. On this very location, Langdon
realizedVatican HillPeter had been crucified and buried. The early Christians
built a small shrine over his tomb. As Christianity spread, the shrine got bigger,
layer upon layer, culminating in this colossal basilica. The entire Catholic
faith had been built, quite literally, upon St. Peter. The rock.
The antimatter
is on St. Peters tomb, the camerlegno said, his voice crystalline.
Despite the
seemingly supernatural origin of the information, Langdon sensed a stark logic
in it. Placing the antimatter on St. Peters tomb seemed painfully obvious now.
The Illuminati, in an act of symbolic defiance, had located the antimatter at
the core of Christendom, both literally and figuratively. The ultimate
infiltration.
And if you all
need worldly proof, the camerlegno said, sounding impatient now, I just found
that grate unlocked. He pointed to the open bulkhead in the floor. It is
never unlocked. Someone has been down there . . . recently.
Everyone stared
into the hole.
An instant later,
with deceptive agility, the camerlegno spun, grabbed an oil lamp, and headed
for the opening.
119
The stone steps
declined steeply into the earth.
Im going to die
down here, Vittoria thought, gripping the heavy rope banister as she bounded
down the cramped passageway behind the others. Although Langdon had made a move
to stop the camerlegno from entering the shaft, Chartrand had intervened,
grabbing Langdon and holding on. Apparently, the young guard was now convinced
the camerlegno knew what he was doing.
After a brief
scuffle, Langdon had freed himself and pursued the camerlegno with Chartrand
close on his heels. Instinctively, Vittoria had dashed after them.
Now she was
racing headlong down a precipitous grade where any misplaced step could mean a
deadly fall. Far below, she could see the golden glow of the camerlegnos oil
lamp. Behind her, Vittoria could hear the BBC reporters hurrying to keep up.
The camera spotlight threw gnarled shadows beyond her down the shaft,
illuminating Chartrand and Langdon. Vittoria could scarcely believe the world
was bearing witness to this insanity. Turn off the damn camera! Then again, she
knew the light was the only reason any of them could see where they were going.
As the bizarre
chase continued, Vittorias thoughts whipped like a tempest. What could the
camerlegno possibly do down here? Even if he found the antimatter? There was no
time!
Vittoria was
surprised to find her intuition now telling her the camerlegno was probably
right. Placing the antimatter three stories beneath the earth seemed an almost
noble and merciful choice. Deep undergroundmuch as in Z laban antimatter
annihilation would be partially contained. There would be no heat blast, no
flying shrapnel to injure onlookers, just a biblical opening of the earth and a
towering basilica crumbling into a crater.
Was this Kohlers
one act of decency? Sparing lives? Vittoria still could not fathom the directors
involvement. She could accept his hatred of religion . . . but this awesome
conspiracy seemed beyond him. Was Kohlers loathing really this profound?
Destruction of the Vatican? Hiring an assassin? The murders of her father, the
Pope, and four cardinals? It seemed unthinkable. And how had Kohler managed all
this treachery within the Vatican walls? Rocher was Kohlers inside man,
Vittoria told herself. Rocher was an Illuminatus. No doubt Captain Rocher had
keys to everythingthe Popes chambers, Il Passetto, the Necropolis, St.
Peters tomb, all of it. He could have placed the antimatter on St. Peters
tomba highly restricted localeand then commanded his guards not to waste time
searching the Vaticans restricted areas. Rocher knew nobody would ever find
the canister.
But Rocher never
counted on the camerlegnos message from above.
The message. This
was the leap of faith Vittoria was still struggling to accept. Had God actually
communicated with the camerlegno? Vittorias gut said no, and yet hers was the
science of entanglement physicsthe study of interconnectedness. She witnessed
miraculous communications every daytwin sea turtle eggs separated and placed
in labs thousands of miles apart hatching at the same instant . . . acres of
jellyfish pulsating in perfect rhythm as if of a single mind. There are
invisible lines of communication everywhere, she thought.
But between God
and man?
Vittoria wished
her father were there to give her faith. He had once explained divine
communication to her in scientific terms, and he had made her believe. She
still remembered the day she had seen him praying and asked him, Father, why
do you bother to pray? God cannot answer you.
Leonardo Vetra
had looked up from his meditations with a paternal smile. My daughter the skeptic.
So you dont believe God speaks to man? Let me put it in your language. He
took a model of the human brain down from a shelf and set it in front of her.
As you probably know, Vittoria, human beings normally use a very small
percentage of their brain power. However, if you put them in emotionally
charged situationslike physical trauma, extreme joy or fear, deep
meditationall of a sudden their neurons start firing like crazy, resulting in
massively enhanced mental clarity.
So what?
Vittoria said. Just because you think clearly doesnt mean you talk to God.
Aha! Vetra
exclaimed. And yet remarkable solutions to seemingly impossible problems often
occur in these moments of clarity. Its what gurus call higher consciousness.
Biologists call it altered states. Psychologists call it super sentience. He
paused. And Christians call it answered prayer. Smiling broadly, he added,
Sometimes, divine revelation simply means adjusting your brain to hear what
your heart already knows.
Now, as she dashed
down, headlong into the dark, Vittoria sensed perhaps her father was right. Was
it so hard to believe that the camerlegnos trauma had put his mind in a state
where he had simply realized the antimatters location?
Each of us is a
God, Buddha had said. Each of us knows all. We need only open our minds to hear
our own wisdom.
It was in that
moment of clarity, as Vittoria plunged deeper into the earth, that she felt her
own mind open . . . her own wisdom surface. She sensed now without a doubt what
the camerlegnos intentions were. Her awareness brought with it a fear like
nothing she had ever known.
Camerlegno, no!
she shouted down the passage. You dont understand! Vittoria pictured the
multitudes of people surrounding Vatican City, and her blood ran cold. If you
bring the antimatter up . . . everyone will die !
Langdon was
leaping three steps at a time now, gaining ground. The passage was cramped, but
he felt no claustrophobia. His once debilitating fear was overshadowed by a far
deeper dread.
Camerlegno!
Langdon felt himself closing the gap on the lanterns glow. You must leave the
antimatter where it is! Theres no other choice!
Even as Langdon
spoke the words, he could not believe them. Not only had he accepted the
camerlegnos divine revelation of the antimatters location, but he was
lobbying for the destruction of St. Peters Basilicaone of the greatest
architectural feats on earth . . . as well as all of the art inside.
But the people
outside . . . its the only way.
It seemed a cruel
irony that the only way to save the people now was to destroy the church.
Langdon figured the Illuminati were amused by the symbolism.
The air coming up
from the bottom of the tunnel was cool and dank. Somewhere down here was the
sacred necropolis . . . burial place of St. Peter and countless other early
Christians. Langdon felt a chill, hoping this was not a suicide mission.
Suddenly, the
camerlegnos lantern seemed to halt. Langdon closed on him fast.
The end of the
stairs loomed abruptly from out of the shadows. A wrought iron gate with three
embossed skulls blocked the bottom of the stairs. The camerlegno was there,
pulling the gate open. Langdon leapt, pushing the gate shut, blocking the
camerlegnos way. The others came thundering down the stairs, everyone ghostly
white in the BBC spotlight . . . especially Glick, who was looking more pasty
with every step.
Chartrand grabbed
Langdon. Let the camerlegno pass!
No! Vittoria
said from above, breathless. We must evacuate right now! You cannot take the
antimatter out of here! If you bring it up, everyone outside will die !
The camerlegnos
voice was remarkably calm. All of you . . . we must trust. We have little
time.
You dont
understand, Vittoria said. An explosion at ground level will be much worse
than one down here!
The camerlegno
looked at her, his green eyes resplendently sane. Who said anything about an
explosion at ground level?
Vittoria stared.
Youre leaving it down here?
The camerlegnos
certitude was hypnotic. There will be no more death tonight.
Father, but
Please . . .
some faith. The camerlegnos voice plunged to a compelling hush. I am not
asking anyone to join me. You are all free to go. All I am asking is that you
not interfere with His bidding. Let me do what I have been called to do. The
camerlegnos stare intensified. I am to save this church. And I can. I swear
on my life.
The silence that
followed might as well have been thunder.
120
Eleven fifty one
P.M.
Necropolis
literally means City of the Dead.
Nothing Robert
Langdon had ever read about this place prepared him for the sight of it. The
colossal subterranean hollow was filled with crumbling mausoleums, like small
houses on the floor of a cave. The air smelled lifeless. An awkward grid of
narrow walkways wound between the decaying memorials, most of which were
fractured brick with marble platings. Like columns of dust, countless pillars
of unexcavated earth rose up, supporting a dirt sky, which hung low over the
penumbral hamlet.
City of the dead,
Langdon thought, feeling trapped between academic wonder and raw fear. He and
the others dashed deeper down the winding passages. Did I make the wrong
choice?
Chartrand had
been the first to fall under the camerlegnos spell, yanking open the gate and
declaring his faith in the camerlegno. Glick and Macri, at the camerlegnos
suggestion, had nobly agreed to provide light to the quest, although
considering what accolades awaited them if they got out of here alive, their
motivations were certainly suspect. Vittoria had been the least eager of all,
and Langdon had seen in her eyes a wariness that looked, unsettlingly, a lot
like female intuition.
Its too late
now, he thought, he and Vittoria dashing after the others. Were committed.
Vittoria was
silent, but Langdon knew they were thinking the same thing. Nine minutes is not
enough time to get the hell out of Vatican City if the camerlegno is wrong.
As they ran on
through the mausoleums, Langdon felt his legs tiring, noting to his surprise
that the group was ascending a steady incline. The explanation, when it dawned
on him, sent shivers to his core. The topography beneath his feet was that of
Christs time. He was running up the original Vatican Hill! Langdon had heard Vatican
scholars claim that St. Peters tomb was near the top of Vatican Hill, and he
had always wondered how they knew. Now he understood. The damn hill is still
here!
Langdon felt like
he was running through the pages of history. Somewhere ahead was St. Peters
tombthe Christian relic. It was hard to imagine that the original grave had
been marked only with a modest shrine. Not any more. As Peters eminence
spread, new shrines were built on top of the old, and now, the homage stretched
440 feet overhead to the top of Michelangelos dome, the apex positioned
directly over the original tomb within a fraction of an inch.
They continued
ascending the sinuous passages. Langdon checked his watch. Eight minutes. He
was beginning to wonder if he and Vittoria would be joining the deceased here
permanently.
Look out! Glick
yelled from behind them. Snake holes!
Langdon saw it in
time. A series of small holes riddled the path before them. He leapt, just
clearing them.
Vittoria jumped
too, barely avoiding the narrow hollows. She looked uneasy as they ran on.
Snake holes?
Snack holes,
actually, Langdon corrected. Trust me, you dont want to know. The holes, he
had just realized, were libation tubes. The early Christians had believed in
the resurrection of the flesh, and theyd used the holes to literally feed the
dead by pouring milk and honey into crypts beneath the floor.
The camerlegno
felt weak.
He dashed onward,
his legs finding strength in his duty to God and man. Almost there. He was in
incredible pain. The mind can bring so much more pain than the body. Still he
felt tired. He knew he had precious little time.
I will save your
church, Father. I swear it.
Despite the BBC
lights behind him, for which he was grateful, the camerlegno carried his oil
lamp high. I am a beacon in the darkness. I am the light. The lamp sloshed as
he ran, and for an instant he feared the flammable oil might spill and burn
him. He had experienced enough burned flesh for one evening.
As he approached
the top of the hill, he was drenched in sweat, barely able to breathe. But when
he emerged over the crest, he felt reborn. He staggered onto the flat piece of
earth where he had stood many times. Here the path ended. The necropolis came
to an abrupt halt at a wall of earth. A tiny marker read: Mausoleum S.
La tomba di San
Pietro.
Before him, at
waist level, was an opening in the wall. There was no gilded plaque here. No
fanfare. Just a simple hole in the wall, beyond which lay a small grotto and a
meager, crumbling sarcophagus. The camerlegno gazed into the hole and smiled in
exhaustion. He could hear the others coming up the hill behind him. He set down
his oil lamp and knelt to pray.
Thank you, God.
It is almost over.
Outside in the
square, surrounded by astounded cardinals, Cardinal Mortati stared up at the
media screen and watched the drama unfold in the crypt below. He no longer knew
what to believe. Had the entire world just witnessed what he had seen? Had God
truly spoken to the camerlegno? Was the antimatter really going to appear on
St. Peters
Look! A gasp
went up from the throngs.
There! Everyone
was suddenly pointing at the screen. Its a miracle!
Mortati looked
up. The camera angle was unsteady, but it was clear enough. The image was
unforgettable.
Filmed from
behind, the camerlegno was kneeling in prayer on the earthen floor. In front of
him was a rough hewn hole in the wall. Inside the hollow, among the rubble of
ancient stone, was a terra cotta casket. Although Mortati had seen the coffin
only once in his life, he knew beyond a doubt what it contained.
San Pietro.
Mortati was not
naive enough to think that the shouts of joy and amazement now thundering through
the crowd were exaltations from bearing witness to one of Christianitys most
sacred relics. St. Peters tomb was not what had people falling to their knees
in spontaneous prayer and thanksgiving. It was the object on top of his tomb.
The antimatter
canister. It was there . . . where it had been all day . . . hiding in the
darkness of the Necropolis. Sleek. Relentless. Deadly. The camerlegnos
revelation was correct.
Mortati stared in
wonder at the transparent cylinder. The globule of liquid still hovered at its
core. The grotto around the canister blinked red as the LED counted down into
its final five minutes of life.
Also sitting on
the tomb, inches away from the canister, was the wireless Swiss Guard security
camera that had been pointed at the canister and transmitting all along.
Mortati crossed
himself, certain this was the most frightful image he had seen in his entire
life. He realized, a moment later, however, that it was about to get worse.
The camerlegno
stood suddenly. He grabbed the antimatter in his hands and wheeled toward the
others. His face showing total focus. He pushed past the others and began
descending the Necropolis the way he had come, running down the hill.
The camera caught
Vittoria Vetra, frozen in terror. Where are you going! Camerlegno! I thought
you said
Have faith! he
exclaimed as he ran off.
Vittoria spun
toward Langdon. What do we do?
Robert Langdon
tried to stop the camerlegno, but Chartrand was running interference now,
apparently trusting the camerlegnos conviction.
The picture
coming from the BBC camera was like a roller coaster ride now, winding,
twisting. Fleeting freeze frames of confusion and terror as the chaotic cortege
stumbled through the shadows back toward the Necropolis entrance.
Out in the
square, Mortati let out a fearful gasp. Is he bringing that up here ?
On televisions
all over the world, larger than life, the camerlegno raced upward out of the
Necropolis with the antimatter before him. There will be no more death
tonight!
But the
camerlegno was wrong.
121
The camerlegno
erupted through the doors of St. Peters Basilica at exactly 11:56 P.M. He
staggered into the dazzling glare of the world spotlight, carrying the
antimatter before him like some sort of numinous offering. Through burning eyes
he could see his own form, half naked and wounded, towering like a giant on the
media screens around the square. The roar that went up from the crowd in St.
Peters Square was like none the camerlegno had ever heardcrying, screaming,
chanting, praying . . . a mix of veneration and terror.
Deliver us from
evil, he whispered.
He felt totally
depleted from his race out of the Necropolis. It had almost ended in disaster.
Robert Langdon and Vittoria Vetra had wanted to intercept him, to throw the
canister back into its subterranean hiding place, to run outside for cover.
Blind fools!
The camerlegno
realized now, with fearful clarity, that on any other night, he would never
have won the race. Tonight, however, God again had been with him. Robert
Langdon, on the verge of overtaking the camerlegno, had been grabbed by
Chartrand, ever trusting and dutiful to the camerlegnos demands for faith. The
reporters, of course, were spellbound and lugging too much equipment to
interfere.
The Lord works in
mysterious ways.
The camerlegno
could hear the others behind him now . . . see them on the screens, closing in.
Mustering the last of his physical strength, he raised the antimatter high over
his head. Then, throwing back his bare shoulders in an act of defiance to the
Illuminati brand on his chest, he dashed down the stairs.
There was one
final act.
Godspeed, he
thought. Godspeed.
Four minutes . .
.
Langdon could
barely see as he burst out of the basilica. Again the sea of media lights bore
into his retinas. All he could make out was the murky outline of the
camerlegno, directly ahead of him, running down the stairs. For an instant,
refulgent in his halo of media lights, the camerlegno looked celestial, like
some kind of modern deity. His cassock was at his waist like a shroud. His body
was scarred and wounded by the hands of his enemies, and still he endured. The
camerlegno ran on, standing tall, calling out to the world to have faith,
running toward the masses carrying this weapon of destruction.
Langdon ran down
the stairs after him. What is he doing? He will kill them all!
Satans work,
the camerlegno screamed, has no place in the House of God! He ran on toward a
now terrified crowd.
Father! Langdon
screamed, behind him. Theres nowhere to go!
Look to the
heavens! We forget to look to the heavens!
In that moment,
as Langdon saw where the camerlegno was headed, the glorious truth came
flooding all around him. Although Langdon could not see it on account of the
lights, he knew their salvation was directly overhead.
A star filled Italian
sky. The escape route.
The helicopter
the camerlegno had summoned to take him to the hospital sat dead ahead, pilot
already in the cockpit, blades already humming in neutral. As the camerlegno
ran toward it, Langdon felt a sudden overwhelming exhilaration.
The thoughts that
tore through Langdons mind came as a torrent . . .
First he pictured
the wide open expanse of the Mediterranean Sea. How far was it? Five miles?
Ten? He knew the beach at Fiumocino was only about seven minutes by train. But
by helicopter, 200 miles an hour, no stops . . . If they could fly the canister
far enough out to sea, and drop it . . . There were other options too, he
realized, feeling almost weightless as he ran. La Cava Romana! The marble
quarries north of the city were less than three miles away. How large were
they? Two square miles? Certainly they were deserted at this hour! Dropping the
canister there . . .
Everyone back!
the camerlegno yelled. His chest ached as he ran. Get away! Now!
The Swiss Guard
standing around the chopper stood slack jawed as the camerlegno approached
them.
Back! the
priest screamed.
The guards moved
back.
With the entire
world watching in wonder, the camerlegno ran around the chopper to the pilots
door and yanked it open. Out, son! Now!
The guard jumped
out.
The camerlegno
looked at the high cockpit seat and knew that in his exhausted state, he would
need both hands to pull himself up. He turned to the pilot, trembling beside
him, and thrust the canister into his hands. Hold this. Hand it back when Im
in.
As the camerlegno
pulled himself up, he could hear Robert Langdon yelling excitedly, running
toward the craft. Now you understand, the camerlegno thought. Now you have
faith!
The camerlegno
pulled himself up into the cockpit, adjusted a few familiar levers, and then
turned back to his window for the canister.
But the guard to
whom he had given the canister stood empty handed. He took it! the guard
yelled.
The camerlegno
felt his heart seize. Who!
The guard
pointed. Him!
Robert Langdon
was surprised by how heavy the canister was. He ran to the other side of the
chopper and jumped in the rear compartment where he and Vittoria had sat only
hours ago. He left the door open and buckled himself in. Then he yelled to the
camerlegno in the front seat.
Fly, Father!
The camerlegno
craned back at Langdon, his face bloodless with dread. What are you doing!
You fly! Ill
throw! Langdon barked. Theres no time! Just fly the blessed chopper!
The camerlegno
seemed momentarily paralyzed, the media lights glaring through the cockpit
darkening the creases in his face. I can do this alone, he whispered. I am
supposed to do this alone.
Langdon wasnt
listening. Fly! he heard himself screaming. Now! Im here to help you! Langdon
looked down at the canister and felt his breath catch in his throat when he saw
the numbers. Three minutes, Father! Three!
The number seemed
to stun the camerlegno back to sobriety. Without hesitation, he turned back to
the controls. With a grinding roar, the helicopter lifted off.
Through a swirl
of dust, Langdon could see Vittoria running toward the chopper. Their eyes met,
and then she dropped away like a sinking stone.
122
Inside the
chopper, the whine of the engines and the gale from the open door assaulted
Langdons senses with a deafening chaos. He steadied himself against the
magnified drag of gravity as the camerlegno accelerated the craft straight up.
The glow of St. Peters Square shrank beneath them until it was an amorphous
glowing ellipse radiating in a sea of city lights.
The antimatter
canister felt like deadweight in Langdons hands. He held tighter, his palms
slick now with sweat and blood. Inside the trap, the globule of antimatter
hovered calmly, pulsing red in the glow of the LED countdown clock.
Two minutes!
Langdon yelled, wondering where the camerlegno intended to drop the canister.
The city lights
beneath them spread out in all directions. In the distance to the west, Langdon
could see the twinkling delineation of the Mediterranean coasta jagged border
of luminescence beyond which spread an endless dark expanse of nothingness. The
sea looked farther now than Langdon had imagined. Moreover, the concentration
of lights at the coast was a stark reminder that even far out at sea an
explosion might have devastating effects. Langdon had not even considered the
effects of a ten kiloton tidal wave hitting the coast.
When Langdon
turned and looked straight ahead through the cockpit window, he was more
hopeful. Directly in front of them, the rolling shadows of the Roman foothills
loomed in the night. The hills were spotted with lightsthe villas of the very
wealthybut a mile or so north, the hills grew dark. There were no lights at
alljust a huge pocket of blackness. Nothing.
The quarries!
Langdon thought. La Cava Romana!
Staring intently
at the barren pocket of land, Langdon sensed that it was plenty large enough.
It seemed close, too. Much closer than the ocean. Excitement surged through him.
This was obviously where the camerlegno planned to take the antimatter! The
chopper was pointing directly toward it! The quarries! Oddly, however, as the
engines strained louder and the chopper hurtled through the air, Langdon could
see that the quarries were not getting any closer. Bewildered, he shot a glance
out the side door to get his bearings. What he saw doused his excitement in a
wave of panic. Directly beneath them, thousands of feet straight down, glowed
the media lights in St. Peters Square.
Were still over
the Vatican!
Camerlegno!
Langdon choked. Go forward! Were high enough ! Youve got to start moving
forward! We cant drop the canister back over Vatican City!
The camerlegno
did not reply. He appeared to be concentrating on flying the craft.
Weve got less
than two minutes! Langdon shouted, holding up the canister. I can see them!
La Cava Romana! A couple of miles north! We dont have
No, the
camerlegno said. Its far too dangerous. Im sorry. As the chopper continued
to claw heavenward, the camerlegno turned and gave Langdon a mournful smile. I
wish you had not come, my friend. You have made the ultimate sacrifice.
Langdon looked in
the camerlegnos exhausted eyes and suddenly understood. His blood turned to
ice. But . . . there must be somewhere we can go!
Up, the
camerlegno replied, his voice resigned. Its the only guarantee.
Langdon could
barely think. He had entirely misinterpreted the camerlegnos plan. Look to the
heavens!
Heaven, Langdon
now realized, was literally where he was headed. The camerlegno had never
intended to drop the antimatter. He was simply getting it as far away from
Vatican City as humanly possible.
This was a one
way trip.
123
In St. Peters
Square, Vittoria Vetra stared upward. The helicopter was a speck now, the media
lights no longer reaching it. Even the pounding of the rotors had faded to a
distant hum. It seemed, in that instant, that the entire world was focused
upward, silenced in anticipation, necks craned to the heavens . . . all
peoples, all faiths . . . all hearts beating as one.
Vittorias
emotions were a cyclone of twisting agonies. As the helicopter disappeared from
sight, she pictured Roberts face, rising above her. What had he been thinking?
Didnt he understand?
Around the
square, television cameras probed the darkness, waiting. A sea of faces stared
heavenward, united in a silent countdown. The media screens all flickered the
same tranquil scene . . . a Roman sky illuminated with brilliant stars.
Vittoria felt the tears begin to well.
Behind her on the
marble escarpment, 161 cardinals stared up in silent awe. Some folded their
hands in prayer. Most stood motionless, transfixed. Some wept. The seconds
ticked past.
In homes, bars,
businesses, airports, hospitals around the world, souls were joined in
universal witness. Men and women locked hands. Others held their children. Time
seemed to hover in limbo, souls suspended in unison.
Then, cruelly,
the bells of St. Peters began to toll.
Vittoria let the
tears come.
Then . . . with
the whole world watching . . . time ran out.
The dead silence
of the event was the most terrifying of all.
High above
Vatican City, a pinpoint of light appeared in the sky. For a fleeting instant,
a new heavenly body had been born . . . a speck of light as pure and white as
anyone had ever seen.
Then it happened.
A flash. The
point billowed, as if feeding on itself, unraveling across the sky in a dilating
radius of blinding white. It shot out in all directions, accelerating with
incomprehensible speed, gobbling up the dark. As the sphere of light grew, it
intensified, like a burgeoning fiend preparing to consume the entire sky. It
raced downward, toward them, picking up speed.
Blinded, the
multitudes of starkly lit human faces gasped as one, shielding their eyes,
crying out in strangled fear.
As the light
roared out in all directions, the unimaginable occurred. As if bound by Gods
own will, the surging radius seemed to hit a wall. It was as if the explosion
were contained somehow in a giant glass sphere. The light rebounded inward,
sharpening, rippling across itself. The wave appeared to have reached a
predetermined diameter and hovered there. For that instant, a perfect and
silent sphere of light glowed over Rome. Night had become day.
Then it hit.
The concussion
was deep and hollowa thunderous shock wave from above. It descended on them
like the wrath of hell, shaking the granite foundation of Vatican City,
knocking the breath out of peoples lungs, sending others stumbling backward.
The reverberation circled the colonnade, followed by a sudden torrent of warm
air. The wind tore through the square, letting out a sepulchral moan as it
whistled through the columns and buffeted the walls. Dust swirled overhead as
people huddled . . . witnesses to Armageddon.
Then, as fast as
it appeared, the sphere imploded, sucking back in on itself, crushing inward to
the tiny point of light from which it had come.
124
Never before had
so many been so silent.
The faces in St.
Peters Square, one by one, averted their eyes from the darkening sky and
turned downward, each person in his or her own private moment of wonder. The
media lights followed suit, dropping their beams back to earth as if out of
reverence for the blackness now settling upon them. It seemed for a moment the
entire world was bowing its head in unison.
Cardinal Mortati
knelt to pray, and the other cardinals joined him. The Swiss Guard lowered
their long swords and stood numb. No one spoke. No one moved. Everywhere,
hearts shuddered with spontaneous emotion. Bereavement. Fear. Wonder. Belief.
And a dread filled respect for the new and awesome power they had just
witnessed.
Vittoria Vetra
stood trembling at the foot of the basilicas sweeping stairs. She closed her
eyes. Through the tempest of emotions now coursing through her blood, a single
word tolled like a distant bell. Pristine. Cruel. She forced it away. And yet
the word echoed. Again she drove it back. The pain was too great. She tried to lose
herself in the images that blazed in others minds . . . antimatters mind
boggling power . . . the Vaticans deliverance . . . the camerlegno . . . feats
of bravery . . . miracles . . . selflessness. And still the word echoed . . .
tolling through the chaos with a stinging loneliness.
Robert.
He had come for
her at Castle St. Angelo.
He had saved her.
And now he had
been destroyed by her creation.
As Cardinal
Mortati prayed, he wondered if he too would hear Gods voice as the camerlegno
had. Does one need to believe in miracles to experience them? Mortati was a
modern man in an ancient faith. Miracles had never played a part in his belief.
Certainly his faith spoke of miracles . . . bleeding palms, ascensions from the
dead, imprints on shrouds . . . and yet, Mortatis rational mind had always
justified these accounts as part of the myth. They were simply the result of
mans greatest weaknesshis need for proof. Miracles were nothing but stories
we all clung to because we wished they were true.
And yet . . .
Am I so modern
that I cannot accept what my eyes have just witnessed? It was a miracle, was it
not? Yes! God, with a few whispered words in the camerlegnos ear, had
intervened and saved this church. Why was this so hard to believe? What would
it say about God if God had done nothing? That the Almighty did not care? That
He was powerless to stop it? A miracle was the only possible response!
As Mortati knelt
in wonder, he prayed for the camerlegnos soul. He gave thanks to the young
chamberlain who, even in his youthful years, had opened this old mans eyes to
the miracles of unquestioning faith.
Incredibly,
though, Mortati never suspected the extent to which his faith was about to be
tested . . .
The silence of
St. Peters Square broke with a ripple at first. The ripple grew to a murmur.
And then, suddenly, to a roar. Without warning, the multitudes were crying out
as one.
Look! Look!
Mortati opened
his eyes and turned to the crowd. Everyone was pointing behind him, toward the
front of St. Peters Basilica. Their faces were white. Some fell to their
knees. Some fainted. Some burst into uncontrollable sobs.
Look! Look!
Mortati turned,
bewildered, following their outstretched hands. They were pointing to the
uppermost level of the basilica, the rooftop terrace, where huge statues of
Christ and his apostles watched over the crowd.
There, on the
right of Jesus, arms outstretched to the world . . . stood Camerlegno Carlo
Ventresca.
125
Robert Langdon
was no longer falling.
There was no more
terror. No pain. Not even the sound of the racing wind. There was only the soft
sound of lapping water, as though he were comfortably asleep on a beach.
In a paradox of
self awareness, Langdon sensed this was death. He felt glad for it. He allowed
the drifting numbness to possess him entirely. He let it carry him wherever it
was he would go. His pain and fear had been anesthetized, and he did not wish
it back at any price. His final memory had been one that could only have been
conjured in hell.
Take me. Please .
. .
But the lapping
that lulled in him a far off sense of peace was also pulling him back. It was
trying to awaken him from a dream. No! Let me be! He did not want to awaken. He
sensed demons gathering on the perimeter of his bliss, pounding to shatter his
rapture. Fuzzy images swirled. Voices yelled. Wind churned. No, please! The
more he fought, the more the fury filtered through.
Then, harshly, he
was living it all again . . .
The helicopter
was in a dizzying dead climb. He was trapped inside. Beyond the open door, the
lights of Rome looked farther away with every passing second. His survival
instinct told him to jettison the canister right now. Langdon knew it would
take less than twenty seconds for the canister to fall half a mile. But it
would be falling toward a city of people.
Higher! Higher!
Langdon wondered
how high they were now. Small prop planes, he knew, flew at altitudes of about
four miles. This helicopter had to be at a good fraction of that by now. Two
miles up? Three? There was still a chance. If they timed the drop perfectly,
the canister would fall only partway toward earth, exploding a safe distance
over the ground and away from the chopper. Langdon looked out at the city
sprawling below them.
And if you
calculate incorrectly? the camerlegno said.
Langdon turned,
startled. The camerlegno was not even looking at him, apparently having read
Langdons thoughts from the ghostly reflection in the windshield. Oddly, the
camerlegno was no longer engrossed in his controls. His hands were not even on
the throttle. The chopper, it seemed, was now in some sort of autopilot mode,
locked in a climb. The camerlegno reached above his head, to the ceiling of the
cockpit, fishing behind a cable housing, where he removed a key, taped there
out of view.
Langdon watched
in bewilderment as the camerlegno quickly unlocked the metal cargo box bolted
between the seats. He removed some sort of large, black, nylon pack. He lay it
on the seat next to him. Langdons thoughts churned. The camerlegnos movements
seemed composed, as if he had a solution.
Give me the
canister, the camerlegno said, his tone serene.
Langdon did not
know what to think anymore. He thrust the canister to the camerlegno. Ninety
seconds!
What the
camerlegno did with the antimatter took Langdon totally by surprise. Holding
the canister carefully in his hands, the camerlegno placed it inside the cargo
box. Then he closed the heavy lid and used the key to lock it tight.
What are you
doing! Langdon demanded.
Leading us from
temptation. The camerlegno threw the key out the open window.
As the key
tumbled into the night, Langdon felt his soul falling with it.
The camerlegno
then took the nylon pack and slipped his arms through the straps. He fastened a
waist clamp around his stomach and cinched it all down like a backpack. He
turned to a dumbstruck Robert Langdon.
Im sorry, the
camerlegno said. It wasnt supposed to happen this way. Then he opened his
door and hurled himself into the night.
The image burned
in Langdons unconscious mind, and with it came the pain. Real pain. Physical
pain. Aching. Searing. He begged to be taken, to let it end, but as the water
lapped louder in his ears, new images began to flash. His hell had only just
begun. He saw bits and pieces. Scattered frames of sheer panic. He lay halfway
between death and nightmare, begging for deliverance, but the pictures grew
brighter in his mind.
The antimatter
canister was locked out of reach. It counted relentlessly downward as the
chopper shot upward. Fifty seconds. Higher. Higher. Langdon spun wildly in the
cabin, trying to make sense of what he had just seen. Forty five seconds. He
dug under seats searching for another parachute. Forty seconds. There was none!
There had to be an option! Thirty five seconds. He raced to the open doorway of
the chopper and stood in the raging wind, gazing down at the lights of Rome
below. Thirty two seconds.
And then he made
the choice.
The unbelievable
choice . . .
With no
parachute, Robert Langdon had jumped out the door. As the night swallowed his
tumbling body, the helicopter seemed to rocket off above him, the sound of its
rotors evaporating in the deafening rush of his own free fall.
As he plummeted
toward earth, Robert Langdon felt something he had not experienced since his
years on the high divethe inexorable pull of gravity during a dead drop. The
faster he fell, the harder the earth seemed to pull, sucking him down. This
time, however, the drop was not fifty feet into a pool. The drop was thousands
of feet into a cityan endless expanse of pavement and concrete.
Somewhere in the
torrent of wind and desperation, Kohlers voice echoed from the grave . . .
words he had spoken earlier this morning standing at CERNs free fall tube. One
square yard of drag will slow a falling body almost twenty percent. Twenty
percent, Langdon now realized, was not even close to what one would need to
survive a fall like this. Nonetheless, more out of paralysis than hope, he
clenched in his hands the sole object he had grabbed from the chopper on his
way out the door. It was an odd memento, but it was one that for a fleeting
instant had given him hope.
The windshield
tarp had been lying in the back of the helicopter. It was a concave rectangleabout
four yards by twolike a huge fitted sheet . . . the crudest approximation of a
parachute imaginable. It had no harness, only bungie loops at either end for
fastening it to the curvature of the windshield. Langdon had grabbed it, slid
his hands through the loops, held on, and leapt out into the void.
His last great
act of youthful defiance.
No illusions of
life beyond this moment.
Langdon fell like
a rock. Feet first. Arms raised. His hands gripping the loops. The tarp
billowed like a mushroom overhead. The wind tore past him violently.
As he plummeted
toward earth, there was a deep explosion somewhere above him. It seemed farther
off than he had expected. Almost instantly, the shock wave hit. He felt the
breath crushed from his lungs. There was a sudden warmth in the air all around
him. He fought to hold on. A wall of heat raced down from above. The top of the
tarp began to smolder . . . but held.
Langdon rocketed
downward, on the edge of a billowing shroud of light, feeling like a surfer
trying to outrun a thousand foot tidal wave. Then suddenly, the heat receded.
He was falling
again through the dark coolness.
For an instant,
Langdon felt hope. A moment later, though, that hope faded like the withdrawing
heat above. Despite his straining arms assuring him that the tarp was slowing
his fall, the wind still tore past his body with deafening velocity. Langdon
had no doubt he was still moving too fast to survive the fall. He would be
crushed when he hit the ground.
Mathematical
figures tumbled through his brain, but he was too numb to make sense of them .
. . one square yard of drag . . . 20 percent reduction of speed. All Langdon
could figure was that the tarp over his head was big enough to slow him more
than 20 percent. Unfortunately, though, he could tell from the wind whipping
past him that whatever good the tarp was doing was not enough. He was still
falling fast . . . there would be no surviving the impact on the waiting sea of
concrete.
Beneath him, the
lights of Rome spread out in all directions. The city looked like an enormous
starlit sky that Langdon was falling into. The perfect expanse of stars was
marred only by a dark strip that split the city in twoa wide, unlit ribbon
that wound through the dots of light like a fat snake. Langdon stared down at
the meandering swatch of black.
Suddenly, like
the surging crest of an unexpected wave, hope filled him again.
With almost
maniacal vigor, Langdon yanked down hard with his right hand on the canopy. The
tarp suddenly flapped louder, billowing, cutting right to find the path of
least resistance. Langdon felt himself drifting sideways. He pulled again,
harder, ignoring the pain in his palm. The tarp flared, and Langdon sensed his
body sliding laterally. Not much. But some! He looked beneath him again, to the
sinuous serpent of black. It was off to the right, but he was still pretty
high. Had he waited too long? He pulled with all his might and accepted somehow
that it was now in the hands of God. He focused hard on the widest part of the
serpent and . . . for the first time in his life, prayed for a miracle.
The rest was a
blur.
The darkness
rushing up beneath him . . . the diving instincts coming back . . . the
reflexive locking of his spine and pointing of the toes . . . the inflating of
his lungs to protect his vital organs . . . the flexing of his legs into a
battering ram . . . and finally . . . the thankfulness that the winding Tiber
River was raging . . . making its waters frothy and air filled . . . and three
times softer than standing water.
Then there was
impact . . . and blackness.
It had been the
thundering sound of the flapping canopy that drew the groups eyes away from
the fireball in the sky. The sky above Rome had been filled with sights tonight
. . . a skyrocketing helicopter, an enormous explosion, and now this strange
object that had plummeted into the churning waters of the Tiber River, directly
off the shore of the rivers tiny island, Isola Tiberina.
Ever since the
island had been used to quarantine the sick during the Roman plague of A.D.
1656, it had been thought to have mystic healing properties. For this reason,
the island had later become the site for Romes Hospital Tiberina.
The body was
battered when they pulled it onto shore. The man still had a faint pulse, which
was amazing, they thought. They wondered if it was Isola Tiberinas mythical
reputation for healing that had somehow kept his heart pumping. Minutes later,
when the man began coughing and slowly regained consciousness, the group
decided the island must indeed be magical.
126
Cardinal Mortati
knew there were no words in any language that could have added to the mystery
of this moment. The silence of the vision over St. Peters Square sang louder
than any chorus of angels.
As he stared up
at Camerlegno Ventresca, Mortati felt the paralyzing collision of his heart and
mind. The vision seemed real, tangible. And yet . . . how could it be? Everyone
had seen the camerlegno get in the helicopter. They had all witnessed the ball
of light in the sky. And now, somehow, the camerlegno stood high above them on
the rooftop terrace. Transported by angels? Reincarnated by the hand of God?
This is
impossible . . .
Mortatis heart
wanted nothing more than to believe, but his mind cried out for reason. And yet
all around him, the cardinals stared up, obviously seeing what he was seeing,
paralyzed with wonder.
It was the
camerlegno. There was no doubt. But he looked different somehow. Divine. As if
he had been purified. A spirit? A man? His white flesh shone in the spotlights
with an incorporeal weightlessness.
In the square
there was crying, cheering, spontaneous applause. A group of nuns fell to their
knees and wailed saetas. A pulsing grew from in the crowd. Suddenly, the entire
square was chanting the camerlegnos name. The cardinals, some with tears
rolling down their faces, joined in. Mortati looked around him and tried to
comprehend. Is this really happening?
Camerlegno Carlo
Ventresca stood on the rooftop terrace of St. Peters Basilica and looked down
over the multitudes of people staring up at him. Was he awake or dreaming? He
felt transformed, otherworldly. He wondered if it was his body or just his
spirit that had floated down from heaven toward the soft, darkened expanse of
the Vatican City Gardens . . . alighting like a silent angel on the deserted
lawns, his black parachute shrouded from the madness by the towering shadow of
St. Peters Basilica. He wondered if it was his body or his spirit that had
possessed the strength to climb the ancient Stairway of Medallions to the
rooftop terrace where he now stood.
He felt as light
as a ghost.
Although the
people below were chanting his name, he knew it was not him they were cheering.
They were cheering from impulsive joy, the same kind of joy he felt every day
of his life as he pondered the Almighty. They were experiencing what each of
them had always longed for . . . an assurance of the beyond . . . a
substantiation of the power of the Creator.
Camerlegno
Ventresca had prayed all his life for this moment, and still, even he could not
fathom that God had found a way to make it manifest. He wanted to cry out to
them. Your God is a living God! Behold the miracles all around you!
He stood there a
while, numb and yet feeling more than he had ever felt. When, at last, the
spirit moved him, he bowed his head and stepped back from the edge.
Alone now, he
knelt on the roof, and prayed.
127
The images around
him blurred, drifting in and out. Langdons eyes slowly began to focus. His
legs ached, and his body felt like it had been run over by a truck. He was
lying on his side on the ground. Something stunk, like bile. He could still
hear the incessant sound of lapping water. It no longer sounded peaceful to
him. There were other sounds tootalking close around him. He saw blurry white
forms. Were they all wearing white? Langdon decided he was either in an asylum
or heaven. From the burning in his throat, Langdon decided it could not be
heaven.
Hes finished
vomiting, one man said in Italian. Turn him. The voice was firm and
professional.
Langdon felt
hands slowly rolling him onto his back. His head swam. He tried to sit up, but
the hands gently forced him back down. His body submitted. Then Langdon felt
someone going through his pockets, removing items.
Then he passed
out cold.
Dr. Jacobus was
not a religious man; the science of medicine had bred that from him long ago.
And yet, the events in Vatican City tonight had put his systematic logic to the
test. Now bodies are falling from the sky?
Dr. Jacobus felt
the pulse of the bedraggled man they had just pulled from the Tiber River. The
doctor decided that God himself had hand delivered this one to safety. The
concussion of hitting the water had knocked the victim unconscious, and if it
had not been for Jacobus and his crew standing out on the shore watching the
spectacle in the sky, this falling soul would surely have gone unnoticed and
drowned.
É
Americano, a nurse said, going through the mans wallet after they pulled him
to dry land.
American? Romans
often joked that Americans had gotten so abundant in Rome that hamburgers
should become the official Italian food. But Americans falling from the sky?
Jacobus flicked a penlight in the mans eyes, testing his dilation. Sir? Can
you hear me? Do you know where you are?
The man was
unconscious again. Jacobus was not surprised. The man had vomited a lot of
water after Jacobus had performed CPR.
Si chiama Robert
Langdon, the nurse said, reading the mans drivers license.
The group
assembled on the dock all stopped short.
Impossibile!
Jacobus declared. Robert Langdon was the man from the televisionthe American
professor who had been helping the Vatican. Jacobus had seen Mr. Langdon, only
minutes ago, getting into a helicopter in St. Peters Square and flying miles
up into the air. Jacobus and the others had run out to the dock to witness the
antimatter explosiona tremendous sphere of light like nothing any of them had
ever seen. How could this be the same man!
Its him! the
nurse exclaimed, brushing his soaked hair back. And I recognize his tweed
coat!
Suddenly someone
was yelling from the hospital entryway. It was one of the patients. She was
screaming, going mad, holding her portable radio to the sky and praising God.
Apparently Camerlegno Ventresca had just miraculously appeared on the roof of
the Vatican.
Dr. Jacobus
decided, when his shift got off at 8 A.M . . . he was going straight to church.
The lights over
Langdons head were brighter now, sterile. He was on some kind of examination
table. He smelled astringents, strange chemicals. Someone had just given him an
injection, and they had removed his clothes.
Definitely not
gypsies, he decided in his semiconscious delirium. Aliens, perhaps? Yes, he had
heard about things like this. Fortunately these beings would not harm him. All
they wanted were his
Not on your
life! Langdon sat bolt upright, eyes flying open.
Attento! one of
the creatures yelled, steadying him. His badge read Dr. Jacobus. He looked
remarkably human.
Langdon
stammered, I . . . thought . . .
Easy, Mr.
Langdon. Youre in a hospital.
The fog began to
lift. Langdon felt a wave of relief. He hated hospitals, but they certainly
beat aliens harvesting his testicles.
My name is Dr.
Jacobus, the man said. He explained what had just happened. You are very
lucky to be alive.
Langdon did not
feel lucky. He could barely make sense of his own memories . . . the helicopter
. . . the camerlegno. His body ached everywhere. They gave him some water, and
he rinsed out his mouth. They placed a new gauze on his palm.
Where are my
clothes? Langdon asked. He was wearing a paper robe.
One of the nurses
motioned to a dripping wad of shredded khaki and tweed on the counter. They
were soaked. We had to cut them off you.
Langdon looked at
his shredded Harris tweed and frowned.
You had some
Kleenex in your pocket, the nurse said.
It was then that
Langdon saw the ravaged shreds of parchment clinging all over the lining of his
jacket. The folio from Galileos Diagramma. The last copy on earth had just
dissolved. He was too numb to know how to react. He just stared.
We saved your
personal items. She held up a plastic bin. Wallet, camcorder, and pen. I
dried the camcorder off the best I could.
I dont own a
camcorder.
The nurse frowned
and held out the bin. Langdon looked at the contents. Along with his wallet and
pen was a tiny Sony RUVI camcorder. He recalled it now. Kohler had handed it to
him and asked him to give it to the media.
We found it in
your pocket. I think youll need a new one, though. The nurse flipped open the
two inch screen on the back. Your viewer is cracked. Then she brightened.
The sound still works, though. Barely. She held the device up to her ear.
Keeps playing something over and over. She listened a moment and then
scowled, handing it to Langdon. Two guys arguing, I think.
Puzzled, Langdon
took the camcorder and held it to his ear. The voices were pinched and
metallic, but they were discernible. One close. One far away. Langdon
recognized them both.
Sitting there in
his paper gown, Langdon listened in amazement to the conversation. Although he
couldnt see what was happening, when he heard the shocking finale, he was
thankful he had been spared the visual.
My God!
As the
conversation began playing again from the beginning, Langdon lowered the
camcorder from his ear and sat in appalled mystification. The antimatter . . .
the helicopter . . . Langdons mind now kicked into gear.
But that means .
. .
He wanted to
vomit again. With a rising fury of disorientation and rage, Langdon got off the
table and stood on shaky legs.
Mr. Langdon!
the doctor said, trying to stop him.
I need some
clothes, Langdon demanded, feeling the draft on his rear from the backless
gown.
But, you need to
rest.
Im checking
out. Now. I need some clothes.
But, sir, you
Now!
Everyone
exchanged bewildered looks. We have no clothes, the doctor said. Perhaps
tomorrow a friend could bring you some.
Langdon drew a
slow patient breath and locked eyes with the doctor. Dr. Jacobus, I am walking
out your door right now. I need clothes. I am going to Vatican City. One does
not go to Vatican City with ones ass hanging out. Do I make myself clear?
Dr. Jacobus
swallowed hard. Get this man something to wear.
When Langdon
limped out of Hospital Tiberina, he felt like an overgrown Cub Scout. He was
wearing a blue paramedics jumpsuit that zipped up the front and was adorned
with cloth badges that apparently depicted his numerous qualifications.
The woman
accompanying him was heavyset and wore a similar suit. The doctor had assured
Langdon she would get him to the Vatican in record time.
Molto traffico,
Langdon said, reminding her that the area around the Vatican was packed with
cars and people.
The woman looked
unconcerned. She pointed proudly to one of her patches. Sono conducente di
ambulanza.
Ambulanza? That
explained it. Langdon felt like he could use an ambulance ride.
The woman led him
around the side of the building. On an outcropping over the water was a cement
deck where her vehicle sat waiting. When Langdon saw the vehicle he stopped in
his tracks. It was an aging medevac chopper. The hull read Aero Ambulanza.
He hung his head.
The woman smiled.
Fly Vatican City. Very fast.
128
The College of
Cardinals bristled with ebullience and electricity as they streamed back into
the Sistine Chapel. In contrast, Mortati felt in himself a rising confusion he
thought might lift him off the floor and carry him away. He believed in the
ancient miracles of the Scriptures, and yet what he had just witnessed in
person was something he could not possibly comprehend. After a lifetime of
devotion, seventy nine years, Mortati knew these events should ignite in him a
pious exuberance . . . a fervent and living faith. And yet all he felt was a
growing spectral unease. Something did not feel right.
Signore
Mortati! a Swiss Guard yelled, running down the hall. We have gone to the
roof as you asked. The camerlegno is . . . flesh ! He is a true man! He is not
a spirit! He is exactly as we knew him!
Did he speak to
you?
He kneels in
silent prayer! We are afraid to touch him!
Mortati was at a
loss. Tell him . . . his cardinals await.
Signore, because
he is a man . . . the guard hesitated.
What is it?
His chest . . .
he is burned. Should we bind his wounds? He must be in pain.
Mortati
considered it. Nothing in his lifetime of service to the church had prepared
him for this situation. He is a man, so serve him as a man. Bathe him. Bind
his wounds. Dress him in fresh robes. We await his arrival in the Sistine
Chapel.
The guard ran
off.
Mortati headed
for the chapel. The rest of the cardinals were inside now. As he walked down
the hall, he saw Vittoria Vetra slumped alone on a bench at the foot of the
Royal Staircase. He could see the pain and loneliness of her loss and wanted to
go to her, but he knew it would have to wait. He had work to do . . . although
he had no idea what that work could possibly be.
Mortati entered
the chapel. There was a riotous excitement. He closed the door. God help me.
Hospital
Tiberinas twin rotor Aero Ambulanza circled in behind Vatican City, and
Langdon clenched his teeth, swearing to God this was the very last helicopter
ride of his life.
After convincing
the pilot that the rules governing Vatican airspace were the least of the
Vaticans concerns right now, he guided her in, unseen, over the rear wall, and
landed them on the Vaticans helipad.
Grazie, he
said, lowering himself painfully onto the ground. She blew him a kiss and
quickly took off, disappearing back over the wall and into the night.
Langdon exhaled,
trying to clear his head, hoping to make sense of what he was about to do. With
the camcorder in hand, he boarded the same golf cart he had ridden earlier that
day. It had not been charged, and the battery meter registered close to empty.
Langdon drove without headlights to conserve power.
He also preferred
no one see him coming.
At the back of
the Sistine Chapel, Cardinal Mortati stood in a daze as he watched the
pandemonium before him.
It was a
miracle! one of the cardinals shouted. The work of God!
Yes! others
exclaimed. God has made His will manifest!
The camerlegno
will be our Pope! another shouted. He is not a cardinal, but God has sent a
miraculous sign!
Yes! someone
agreed. The laws of conclave are mans laws. Gods will is before us! I call
for a balloting immediately!
A balloting?
Mortati demanded, moving toward them. I believe that is my job.
Everyone turned.
Mortati could
sense the cardinals studying him. They seemed distant, at a loss, offended by
his sobriety. Mortati longed to feel his heart swept up in the miraculous
exultation he saw in the faces around him. But he was not. He felt an
inexplicable pain in his soul . . . an aching sadness he could not explain. He
had vowed to guide these proceedings with purity of soul, and this hesitancy
was something he could not deny.
My friends,
Mortati said, stepping to the altar. His voice did not seem his own. I suspect
I will struggle for the rest of my days with the meaning of what I have
witnessed tonight. And yet, what you are suggesting regarding the camerlegno .
. . it cannot possibly be Gods will.
The room fell
silent.
How . . . can
you say that? one of the cardinals finally demanded. The camerlegno saved the
church. God spoke to the camerlegno directly! The man survived death itself!
What sign do we need!
The camerlegno
is coming to us now, Mortati said. Let us wait. Let us hear him before we
have a balloting. There may be an explanation.
An explanation?
As your Great
Elector, I have vowed to uphold the laws of conclave. You are no doubt aware
that by Holy Law the camerlegno is ineligible for election to the papacy. He is
not a cardinal. He is a priest . . . a chamberlain. There is also the question
of his inadequate age. Mortati felt the stares hardening. By even allowing a
balloting, I would be requesting that you endorse a man who Vatican Law
proclaims ineligible. I would be asking each of you to break a sacred oath.
But what
happened here tonight, someone stammered, it certainly transcends our laws!
Does it?
Mortati boomed, not even knowing now where his words were coming from. Is it
Gods will that we discard the rules of the church? Is it Gods will that we
abandon reason and give ourselves over to frenzy?
But did you not
see what we saw? another challenged angrily. How can you presume to question
that kind of power!
Mortatis voice
bellowed now with a resonance he had never known. I am not questioning Gods
power! It is God who gave us reason and circumspection! It is God we serve by
exercising prudence!
129
In the hallway
outside the Sistine Chapel, Vittoria Vetra sat benumbed on a bench at the foot
of the Royal Staircase. When she saw the figure coming through the rear door,
she wondered if she were seeing another spirit. He was bandaged, limping, and
wearing some kind of medical suit.
She stood . . .
unable to believe the vision. Ro . . . bert?
He never
answered. He strode directly to her and wrapped her in his arms. When he
pressed his lips to hers, it was an impulsive, longing kiss filled with
thankfulness.
Vittoria felt the
tears coming. Oh, God . . . oh, thank God . . .
He kissed her
again, more passionately, and she pressed against him, losing herself in his
embrace. Their bodies locked, as if they had known each other for years. She
forgot the fear and pain. She closed her eyes, weightless in the moment.
It is Gods
will! someone was yelling, his voice echoing in the Sistine Chapel. Who but
the chosen one could have survived that diabolical explosion?
Me, a voice
reverberated from the back of the chapel.
Mortati and the
others turned in wonder at the bedraggled form coming up the center aisle. Mr
. . . Langdon?
Without a word,
Langdon walked slowly to the front of the chapel. Vittoria Vetra entered too.
Then two guards hurried in, pushing a cart with a large television on it.
Langdon waited while they plugged it in, facing the cardinals. Then Langdon
motioned for the guards to leave. They did, closing the door behind them.
Now it was only
Langdon, Vittoria, and the cardinals. Langdon plugged the Sony RUVIs output
into the television. Then he pressed Play.
The television
blared to life.
The scene that
materialized before the cardinals revealed the Popes office. The video had
been awkwardly filmed, as if by hidden camera. Off center on the screen the
camerlegno stood in the dimness, in front of a fire. Although he appeared to be
talking directly to the camera, it quickly became evident that he was speaking
to someone elsewhoever was making this video. Langdon told them the video was
filmed by Maximilian Kohler, the director of CERN. Only an hour ago Kohler had
secretly recorded his meeting with the camerlegno by using a tiny camcorder
covertly mounted under the arm of his wheelchair.
Mortati and the
cardinals watched in bewilderment. Although the conversation was already in progress,
Langdon did not bother to rewind. Apparently, whatever Langdon wanted the
cardinals to see was coming up . . .
Leonardo Vetra
kept diaries? the camerlegno was saying. I suppose that is good news for
CERN. If the diaries contain his processes for creating antimatter
They dont,
Kohler said. You will be relieved to know those processes died with Leonardo.
However, his diaries spoke of something else. You.
The camerlegno
looked troubled. I dont understand.
They described a
meeting Leonardo had last month. With you.
The camerlegno
hesitated, then looked toward the door. Rocher should not have granted you
access without consulting me. How did you get in here?
Rocher knows the
truth. I called earlier and told him what you have done.
What I have
done? Whatever story you told him, Rocher is a Swiss Guard and far too faithful
to this church to believe a bitter scientist over his camerlegno.
Actually, he is
too faithful not to believe. He is so faithful that despite the evidence that
one of his loyal guards had betrayed the church, he refused to accept it. All
day long he has been searching for another explanation.
So you gave him
one.
The truth.
Shocking as it was.
If Rocher
believed you, he would have arrested me.
No. I wouldnt
let him. I offered him my silence in exchange for this meeting.
The camerlegno
let out an odd laugh. You plan to blackmail the church with a story that no
one will possibly believe?
I have no need
of blackmail. I simply want to hear the truth from your lips. Leonardo Vetra
was a friend.
The camerlegno
said nothing. He simply stared down at Kohler.
Try this,
Kohler snapped. About a month ago, Leonardo Vetra contacted you requesting an
urgent audience with the Popean audience you granted because the Pope was an
admirer of Leonardos work and because Leonardo said it was an emergency.
The camerlegno
turned to the fire. He said nothing.
Leonardo came to
the Vatican in great secrecy. He was betraying his daughters confidence by
coming here, a fact that troubled him deeply, but he felt he had no choice. His
research had left him deeply conflicted and in need of spiritual guidance from
the church. In a private meeting, he told you and the Pope that he had made a
scientific discovery with profound religious implications. He had proved
Genesis was physically possible, and that intense sources of energywhat Vetra
called God could duplicate the moment of Creation.
Silence.
The Pope was
stunned, Kohler continued. He wanted Leonardo to go public. His Holiness
thought this discovery might begin to bridge the gap between science and
religionone of the Popes life dreams. Then Leonardo explained to you the
downsidethe reason he required the churchs guidance. It seemed his Creation
experiment, exactly as your Bible predicts, produced everything in pairs.
Opposites. Light and dark. Vetra found himself, in addition to creating matter,
creating antimatter. Shall I go on?
The camerlegno
was silent. He bent down and stoked the coals.
After Leonardo
Vetra came here, Kohler said, you came to CERN to see his work. Leonardos
diaries said you made a personal trip to his lab.
The camerlegno
looked up.
Kohler went on.
The Pope could not travel without attracting media attention, so he sent you.
Leonardo gave you a secret tour of his lab. He showed you an antimatter
annihilationthe Big Bangthe power of Creation. He also showed you a large
specimen he kept locked away as proof that his new process could produce
antimatter on a large scale. You were in awe. You returned to Vatican City to
report to the Pope what you had witnessed.
The camerlegno
sighed. And what is it that troubles you? That I would respect Leonardos
confidentiality by pretending before the world tonight that I knew nothing of
antimatter?
No! It troubles
me that Leonardo Vetra practically proved the existence of your God, and you
had him murdered!
The camerlegno
turned now, his face revealing nothing.
The only sound
was the crackle of the fire.
Suddenly, the
camera jiggled, and Kohlers arm appeared in the frame. He leaned forward,
seeming to struggle with something affixed beneath his wheelchair. When he sat
back down, he held a pistol out before him. The camera angle was a chilling one
. . . looking from behind . . . down the length of the outstretched gun . . .
directly at the camerlegno.
Kohler said,
Confess your sins, Father. Now.
The camerlegno
looked startled. You will never get out of here alive.
Death would be a
welcome relief from the misery your faith has put me through since I was a
boy. Kohler held the gun with both hands now. I am giving you a choice.
Confess your sins . . . or die right now.
The camerlegno
glanced toward the door.
Rocher is
outside, Kohler challenged. He too is prepared to kill you.
Rocher is a
sworn protector of th
Rocher let me in
here. Armed. He is sickened by your lies. You have a single option. Confess to
me. I have to hear it from your very lips.
The camerlegno
hesitated.
Kohler cocked his
gun. Do you really doubt I will kill you?
No matter what I
tell you, the camerlegno said, a man like you will never understand.
Try me.
The camerlegno
stood still for a moment, a dominant silhouette in the dim light of the fire.
When he spoke, his words echoed with a dignity more suited to the glorious
recounting of altruism than that of a confession.
Since the
beginning of time, the camerlegno said, this church has fought the enemies of
God. Sometimes with words. Sometimes with swords. And we have always survived.
The camerlegno
radiated conviction.
But the demons
of the past, he continued, were demons of fire and abomination . . . they
were enemies we could fightenemies who inspired fear. Yet Satan is shrewd. As
time passed, he cast off his diabolical countenance for a new face . . . the
face of pure reason. Transparent and insidious, but soulless all the same. The
camerlegnos voice flashed sudden angeran almost maniacal transition. Tell
me, Mr. Kohler! How can the church condemn that which makes logical sense to
our minds! How can we decry that which is now the very foundation of our
society! Each time the church raises its voice in warning, you shout back,
calling us ignorant. Paranoid. Controlling! And so your evil grows. Shrouded in
a veil of self righteous intellectualism. It spreads like a cancer. Sanctified
by the miracles of its own technology. Deifying itself! Until we no longer
suspect you are anything but pure goodness. Science has come to save us from
our sickness, hunger, and pain! Behold sciencethe new God of endless miracles,
omnipotent and benevolent! Ignore the weapons and the chaos. Forget the
fractured loneliness and endless peril. Science is here! The camerlegno
stepped toward the gun. But I have seen Satans face lurking . . . I have seen
the peril . . .
What are you
talking about! Vetras science practically proved the existence of your God! He
was your ally!
Ally? Science
and religion are not in this together! We do not seek the same God, you and I!
Who is your God? One of protons, masses, and particle charges? How does your
God inspire ? How does your God reach into the hearts of man and remind him he
is accountable to a greater power! Remind him that he is accountable to his fellow
man! Vetra was misguided. His work was not religious, it was sacrilegious ! Man
cannot put Gods Creation in a test tube and wave it around for the world to
see! This does not glorify God, it demeans God! The camerlegno was clawing at
his body now, his voice manic.
And so you had
Leonardo Vetra killed!
For the church!
For all mankind! The madness of it! Man is not ready to hold the power of
Creation in his hands. God in a test tube? A droplet of liquid that can
vaporize an entire city? He had to be stopped! The camerlegno fell abruptly
silent. He looked away, back toward the fire. He seemed to be contemplating his
options.
Kohlers hands
leveled the gun. You have confessed. You have no escape.
The camerlegno
laughed sadly. Dont you see. Confessing your sins is the escape. He looked
toward the door. When God is on your side, you have options a man like you
could never comprehend. With his words still hanging in the air, the
camerlegno grabbed the neck of his cassock and violently tore it open,
revealing his bare chest.
Kohler jolted,
obviously startled. What are you doing!
The camerlegno
did not reply. He stepped backward, toward the fireplace, and removed an object
from the glowing embers.
Stop! Kohler
demanded, his gun still leveled. What are you doing!
When the
camerlegno turned, he was holding a red hot brand. The Illuminati Diamond. The
mans eyes looked wild suddenly. I had intended to do this all alone. His
voice seethed with a feral intensity. But now . . . I see God meant for you to
be here. You are my salvation.
Before Kohler
could react, the camerlegno closed his eyes, arched his back, and rammed the
red hot brand into the center of his own chest. His flesh hissed. Mother Mary!
Blessed Mother . . . Behold your son! He screamed out in agony.
Kohler lurched
into the frame now . . . standing awkwardly on his feet, gun wavering wildly
before him.
The camerlegno
screamed louder, teetering in shock. He threw the brand at Kohlers feet. Then
the priest collapsed on the floor, writhing in agony.
What happened
next was a blur.
There was a great
flurry onscreen as the Swiss Guard burst into the room. The soundtrack exploded
with gunfire. Kohler clutched his chest, blown backward, bleeding, falling into
his wheelchair.
No! Rocher called,
trying to stop his guards from firing on Kohler.
The camerlegno,
still writhing on the floor, rolled and pointed frantically at Rocher.
Illuminatus!
You bastard,
Rocher yelled, running at him. You sanctimonious bas
Chartrand cut him
down with three bullets. Rocher slid dead across the floor.
Then the guards
ran to the wounded camerlegno, gathering around him. As they huddled, the video
caught the face of a dazed Robert Langdon, kneeling beside the wheelchair,
looking at the brand. Then, the entire frame began lurching wildly. Kohler had
regained consciousness and was detaching the tiny camcorder from its holder
under the arm of the wheelchair. Then he tried to hand the camcorder to
Langdon.
G give . . .
Kohler gasped. G give this to the m media.
Then the screen
went blank.
130
The camerlegno
began to feel the fog of wonder and adrenaline dissipating. As the Swiss Guard
helped him down the Royal Staircase toward the Sistine Chapel, the camerlegno
heard singing in St. Peters Square and he knew that mountains had been moved.
Grazie Dio.
He had prayed for
strength, and God had given it to him. At moments when he had doubted, God had
spoken. Yours is a Holy mission, God had said. I will give you strength. Even
with Gods strength, the camerlegno had felt fear, questioning the
righteousness of his path.
If not you, God
had challenged, then Who ?
If not now, then
When ?
If not this way,
then How ?
Jesus, God
reminded him, had saved them all . . . saved them from their own apathy. With
two deeds, Jesus had opened their eyes. Horror and Hope. The crucifixion and
the resurrection. He had changed the world.
But that was
millennia ago. Time had eroded the miracle. People had forgotten. They had
turned to false idolstechno deities and miracles of the mind. What about
miracles of the heart!
The camerlegno
had often prayed to God to show him how to make the people believe again. But
God had been silent. It was not until the camerlegnos moment of deepest
darkness that God had come to him. Oh, the horror of that night!
The camerlegno
could still remember lying on the floor in tattered nightclothes, clawing at
his own flesh, trying to purge his soul of the pain brought on by a vile truth
he had just learned. It cannot be! he had screamed. And yet he knew it was. The
deception tore at him like the fires of hell. The bishop who had taken him in,
the man who had been like a father to him, the clergyman whom the camerlegno
had stood beside while he rose to the papacy . . . was a fraud. A common
sinner. Lying to the world about a deed so traitorous at its core that the
camerlegno doubted even God could forgive it. Your vow ! the camerlegno had
screamed at the Pope. You broke your vow to God! You, of all men!
The Pope had
tried to explain himself, but the camerlegno could not listen. He had run out,
staggering blindly through the hallways, vomiting, tearing at his own skin,
until he found himself bloody and alone, lying on the cold earthen floor before
St. Peters tomb. Mother Mary, what do I do? It was in that moment of pain and
betrayal, as the camerlegno lay devastated in the Necropolis, praying for God
to take him from this faithless world, that God had come.
The voice in his
head resounded like peals of thunder. Did you vow to serve your God?
Yes! the
camerlegno cried out.
Would you die
for your God?
Yes! Take me
now!
Would you die
for your church?
Yes! Please
deliver me!
But would you
die for . . . mankind?
It was in the
silence that followed that the camerlegno felt himself falling into the abyss.
He tumbled farther, faster, out of control. And yet he knew the answer. He had
always known.
Yes! he shouted
into the madness. I would die for man! Like your son, I would die for them!
Hours later, the
camerlegno still lay shivering on his floor. He saw his mothers face. God has
plans for you, she was saying. The camerlegno plunged deeper into madness. It
was then God had spoken again. This time with silence. But the camerlegno
understood. Restore their faith.
If not me . . .
then who?
If not now . . .
then when?
As the guards
unbolted the door of the Sistine Chapel, Camerlegno Carlo Ventresca felt the
power moving in his veins . . . exactly as it had when he was a boy. God had
chosen him. Long ago.
His will be done.
The camerlegno
felt reborn. The Swiss Guard had bandaged his chest, bathed him, and dressed
him in a fresh white linen robe. They had also given him an injection of
morphine for the burn. The camerlegno wished they had not given him
painkillers. Jesus endured his pain for three days on the cross! He could
already feel the drug uprooting his senses . . . a dizzying undertow.
As he walked into
the chapel, he was not at all surprised to see the cardinals staring at him in
wonder. They are in awe of God, he reminded himself. Not of me, but how God
works THROUGH me. As he moved up the center aisle, he saw bewilderment in every
face. And yet, with each new face he passed, he sensed something else in their
eyes. What was it? The camerlegno had tried to imagine how they would receive
him tonight. Joyfully? Reverently? He tried to read their eyes and saw neither
emotion.
It was then the
camerlegno looked at the altar and saw Robert Langdon.
131
Camerlegno Carlo
Ventresca stood in the aisle of the Sistine Chapel. The cardinals were all
standing near the front of the church, turned, staring at him. Robert Langdon
was on the altar beside a television that was on endless loop, playing a scene
the camerlegno recognized but could not imagine how it had come to be. Vittoria
Vetra stood beside him, her face drawn.
The camerlegno
closed his eyes for a moment, hoping the morphine was making him hallucinate
and that when he opened them the scene might be different. But it was not.
They knew.
Oddly, he felt no
fear. Show me the way, Father. Give me the words that I can make them see Your
vision.
But the
camerlegno heard no reply.
Father, We have
come too far together to fail now.
Silence.
They do not
understand what We have done.
The camerlegno
did not know whose voice he heard in his own mind, but the message was stark.
And the truth
shall set you free . . .
And so it was
that Camerlegno Carlo Ventresca held his head high as he walked toward the
front of the Sistine Chapel. As he moved toward the cardinals, not even the
diffused light of the candles could soften the eyes boring into him. Explain
yourself, the faces said. Make sense of this madness. Tell us our fears are
wrong!
Truth, the
camerlegno told himself. Only truth. There were too many secrets in these walls
. . . one so dark it had driven him to madness. But from the madness had come
the light.
If you could
give your own soul to save millions, the camerlegno said, as he moved down the
aisle, would you?
The faces in the
chapel simply stared. No one moved. No one spoke. Beyond the walls, the joyous
strains of song could be heard in the square.
The camerlegno
walked toward them. Which is the greater sin? Killing ones enemy? Or standing
idle while your true love is strangled? They are singing in St. Peters
Square! The camerlegno stopped for a moment and gazed up at the ceiling of the
Sistine. Michelangelos God was staring down from the darkened vault . . . and
He seemed pleased.
I could no
longer stand by, the camerlegno said. Still, as he drew nearer, he saw no
flicker of understanding in anyones eyes. Didnt they see the radiant
simplicity of his deeds? Didnt they see the utter necessity!
It had been so
pure.
The Illuminati.
Science and Satan as one.
Resurrect the
ancient fear. Then crush it.
Horror and Hope.
Make them believe again.
Tonight, the
power of the Illuminati had been unleashed anew . . . and with glorious
consequence. The apathy had evaporated. The fear had shot out across the world
like a bolt of lightning, uniting the people. And then Gods majesty had
vanquished the darkness.
I could not stand
idly by!
The inspiration
had been Gods ownappearing like a beacon in the camerlegnos night of agony.
Oh, this faithless world! Someone must deliver them. You. If not you, who? You
have been saved for a reason. Show them the old demons. Remind them of their
fear. Apathy is death. Without darkness, there is no light. Without evil, there
is no good. Make them choose. Dark or light. Where is the fear? Where are the
heroes? If not now, when?
The camerlegno
walked up the center aisle directly toward the crowd of standing cardinals. He
felt like Moses as the sea of red sashes and caps parted before him, allowing
him to pass. On the altar, Robert Langdon switched off the television, took
Vittorias hand, and relinquished the altar. The fact that Robert Langdon had
survived, the camerlegno knew, could only have been Gods will. God had saved
Robert Langdon. The camerlegno wondered why.
The voice that
broke the silence was the voice of the only woman in the Sistine Chapel. You
killed my father? she said, stepping forward.
When the
camerlegno turned to Vittoria Vetra, the look on her face was one he could not
quite understandpain yes, but anger ? Certainly she must understand. Her
fathers genius was deadly. He had to be stopped. For the good of Mankind.
He was doing
Gods work, Vittoria said.
Gods work is
not done in a lab. It is done in the heart.
My fathers
heart was pure! And his research proved
His research
proved yet again that mans mind is progressing faster than his soul! The
camerlegnos voice was sharper than he had expected. He lowered his voice. If
a man as spiritual as your father could create a weapon like the one we saw
tonight, imagine what an ordinary man will do with his technology.
A man like you
?
The camerlegno
took a deep breath. Did she not see? Mans morality was not advancing as fast
as mans science. Mankind was not spiritually evolved enough for the powers he
possessed. We have never created a weapon we have not used! And yet he knew
that antimatter was nothinganother weapon in mans already burgeoning arsenal.
Man could already destroy. Man learned to kill long ago. And his mothers blood
rained down. Leonardo Vetras genius was dangerous for another reason.
For centuries,
the camerlegno said, the church has stood by while science picked away at
religion bit by bit. Debunking miracles. Training the mind to overcome the
heart. Condemning religion as the opiate of the masses. They denounce God as a
hallucinationa delusional crutch for those too weak to accept that life is
meaningless. I could not stand by while science presumed to harness the power
of God himself! Proof, you say? Yes, proof of sciences ignorance! What is
wrong with the admission that something exists beyond our understanding? The
day science substantiates God in a lab is the day people stop needing faith!
You mean the day
they stop needing the church, Vittoria challenged, moving toward him. Doubt is
your last shred of control. It is doubt that brings souls to you. Our need to
know that life has meaning. Mans insecurity and need for an enlightened soul
assuring him everything is part of a master plan. But the church is not the
only enlightened soul on the planet! We all seek God in different ways. What
are you afraid of? That God will show himself somewhere other than inside these
walls? That people will find him in their own lives and leave your antiquated
rituals behind? Religions evolve! The mind finds answers, the heart grapples
with new truths. My father was on your quest! A parallel path! Why couldnt you
see that? God is not some omnipotent authority looking down from above,
threatening to throw us into a pit of fire if we disobey. God is the energy
that flows through the synapses of our nervous system and the chambers of our
hearts! God is in all things!
Except science,
the camerlegno fired back, his eyes showing only pity. Science, by definition,
is soulless. Divorced from the heart. Intellectual miracles like antimatter
arrive in this world with no ethical instructions attached. This in itself is
perilous! But when science heralds its Godless pursuits as the enlightened
path? Promising answers to questions whose beauty is that they have no
answers? He shook his head. No.
There was a
moment of silence. The camerlegno felt suddenly tired as he returned Vittorias
unbending stare. This was not how it was supposed to be. Is this Gods final
test?
It was Mortati
who broke the spell. The preferiti, he said in a horrified whisper. Baggia
and the others. Please tell me you did not . . .
The camerlegno
turned to him, surprised by the pain in his voice. Certainly Mortati could
understand. Headlines carried sciences miracles every day. How long had it
been for religion? Centuries? Religion needed a miracle! Something to awaken a
sleeping world. Bring them back to the path of righteousness. Restore faith.
The preferiti were not leaders anyway, they were transformersliberals prepared
to embrace the new world and abandon the old ways! This was the only way. A new
leader. Young. Powerful. Vibrant. Miraculous. The preferiti served the church
far more effectively in death than they ever could alive. Horror and Hope.
Offer four souls to save millions. The world would remember them forever as
martyrs. The church would raise glorious tribute to their names. How many
thousands have died for the glory of God? They are only four.
The preferiti,
Mortati repeated.
I shared their
pain, the camerlegno defended, motioning to his chest. And I too would die
for God, but my work is only just begun. They are singing in St. Peters
Square!
The camerlegno
saw the horror in Mortatis eyes and again felt confused. Was it the morphine?
Mortati was looking at him as if the camerlegno himself had killed these men
with his bare hands. I would do even that for God, the camerlegno thought, and
yet he had not. The deeds had been carried out by the Hassassina heathen soul
tricked into thinking he was doing the work of the Illuminati. I am Janus, the
camerlegno had told him. I will prove my power. And he had. The Hassassins
hatred had made him Gods pawn.
Listen to the
singing, the camerlegno said, smiling, his own heart rejoicing. Nothing
unites hearts like the presence of evil. Burn a church and the community rises
up, holding hands, singing hymns of defiance as they rebuild. Look how they
flock tonight. Fear has brought them home. Forge modern demons for modern man.
Apathy is dead. Show them the face of evilSatanists lurking among usrunning
our governments, our banks, our schools, threatening to obliterate the very
House of God with their misguided science. Depravity runs deep. Man must be
vigilant. Seek the goodness. Become the goodness!
In the silence,
the camerlegno hoped they now understood. The Illuminati had not resurfaced.
The Illuminati were long deceased. Only their myth was alive. The camerlegno
had resurrected the Illuminati as a reminder. Those who knew the Illuminati
history relived their evil. Those who did not, had learned of it and were
amazed how blind they had been. The ancient demons had been resurrected to
awaken an indifferent world.
But . . . the
brands? Mortatis voice was stiff with outrage.
The camerlegno
did not answer. Mortati had no way of knowing, but the brands had been
confiscated by the Vatican over a century ago. They had been locked away,
forgotten and dust covered, in the Papal Vaultthe Popes private reliquary,
deep within his Borgia apartments. The Papal Vault contained those items the
church deemed too dangerous for anyones eyes except the Popes.
Why did they hide
that which inspired fear? Fear brought people to God!
The vaults key
was passed down from Pope to Pope. Camerlegno Carlo Ventresca had purloined the
key and ventured inside; the myth of what the vault contained was
bewitchingthe original manuscript for the fourteen unpublished books of the
Bible known as the Apocrypha, the third prophecy of Fatima, the first two
having come true and the third so terrifying the church would never reveal it.
In addition to these, the camerlegno had found the Illuminati Collectionall
the secrets the church had uncovered after banishing the group from Rome . . .
their contemptible Path of Illumination . . . the cunning deceit of the
Vaticans head artist, Bernini . . . Europes top scientists mocking religion
as they secretly assembled in the Vaticans own Castle St. Angelo. The
collection included a pentagon box containing iron brands, one of them the
mythical Illuminati Diamond. This was a part of Vatican history the ancients
thought best forgotten. The camerlegno, however, had disagreed.
But the
antimatter . . . Vittoria demanded. You risked destroying the Vatican!
There is no risk
when God is at your side, the camerlegno said. This cause was His.
Youre insane!
she seethed.
Millions were
saved.
People were
killed !
Souls were
saved.
Tell that to my
father and Max Kohler!
CERNs arrogance
needed to be revealed. A droplet of liquid that can vaporize a half mile? And
you call me mad? The camerlegno felt a rage rising in him. Did they think his
was a simple charge? Those who believe undergo great tests for God! God asked
Abraham to sacrifice his child! God commanded Jesus to endure crucifixion! And
so we hang the symbol of the crucifix before our eyesbloody, painful,
agonizingto remind us of evils power! To keep our hearts vigilant! The scars
on Jesus body are a living reminder of the powers of darkness! My scars are a
living reminder! Evil lives, but the power of God will overcome!
His shouts echoed
off the back wall of the Sistine Chapel and then a profound silence fell. Time
seemed to stop. Michelangelos Last Judgment rose ominously behind him . . .
Jesus casting sinners into hell. Tears brimmed in Mortatis eyes.
What have you
done, Carlo? Mortati asked in a whisper. He closed his eyes, and a tear
rolled. His Holiness ?
A collective sigh
of pain went up, as if everyone in the room had forgotten until that very
moment. The Pope. Poisoned.
A vile liar,
the camerlegno said.
Mortati looked
shattered. What do you mean? He was honest! He . . . loved you.
And I him. Oh,
how I loved him! But the deceit! The broken vows to God!
The camerlegno
knew they did not understand right now, but they would. When he told them, they
would see! His Holiness was the most nefarious deceiver the church had ever
seen. The camerlegno still remembered that terrible night. He had returned from
his trip to CERN with news of Vetras Genesis and of antimatters horrific
power. The camerlegno was certain the Pope would see the perils, but the Holy
Father saw only hope in Vetras breakthrough. He even suggested the Vatican
fund Vetras work as a gesture of goodwill toward spiritually based scientific
research.
Madness! The
church investing in research that threatened to make the church obsolete? Work
that spawned weapons of mass destruction? The bomb that had killed his mother .
. .
But . . . you
cant! the camerlegno had exclaimed.
I owe a deep
debt to science, the Pope had replied. Something I have hidden my entire
life. Science gave me a gift when I was a young man. A gift I have never
forgotten.
I dont
understand. What does science have to offer a man of God ?
It is
complicated, the Pope had said. I will need time to make you understand. But
first, there is a simple fact about me that you must know. I have kept it
hidden all these years. I believe it is time I told you.
Then the Pope had
told him the astonishing truth.
132
The camerlegno
lay curled in a ball on the dirt floor in front of St. Peters tomb. The
Necropolis was cold, but it helped clot the blood flowing from the wounds he
had torn at his own flesh. His Holiness would not find him here. Nobody would
find him here . . .
It is
complicated, the Popes voice echoed in his mind. I will need time to make
you understand . . .
But the
camerlegno knew no amount of time could make him understand.
Liar! I believed
in you! GOD believed in you!
With a single
sentence, the Pope had brought the camerlegnos world crashing down around him.
Everything the camerlegno had ever believed about his mentor was shattered
before his eyes. The truth drilled into the camerlegnos heart with such force
that he staggered backward out of the Popes office and vomited in the hallway.
Wait! the Pope
had cried, chasing after him. Please let me explain!
But the
camerlegno ran off. How could His Holiness expect him to endure any more? Oh,
the wretched depravity of it! What if someone else found out? Imagine the
desecration to the church! Did the Popes holy vows mean nothing?
The madness came
quickly, screaming in his ears, until he awoke before St. Peters tomb. It was then
that God came to him with an awesome fierceness.
Yours is a
Vengeful God!
Together, they
made their plans. Together they would protect the church. Together they would
restore faith to this faithless world. Evil was everywhere. And yet the world
had become immune! Together they would unveil the darkness for the world to see
. . . and God would overcome! Horror and Hope. Then the world would believe!
Gods first test
had been less horrible than the camerlegno imagined. Sneaking into the Papal
bed chambers . . . filling his syringe . . . covering the deceivers mouth as
his body spasmed into death. In the moonlight, the camerlegno could see in the
Popes wild eyes there was something he wanted to say.
But it was too
late.
The Pope had said
enough.
133
The Pope
fathered a child.
Inside the
Sistine Chapel, the camerlegno stood unwavering as he spoke. Five solitary
words of astonishing disclosure. The entire assembly seemed to recoil in
unison. The cardinals accusing miens evaporated into aghast stares, as if
every soul in the room were praying the camerlegno was wrong.
The Pope fathered
a child.
Langdon felt the
shock wave hit him too. Vittorias hand, tight in his, jolted, while Langdons
mind, already numb with unanswered questions, wrestled to find a center of
gravity.
The camerlegnos
utterance seemed like it would hang forever in the air above them. Even in the
camerlegnos frenzied eyes, Langdon could see pure conviction. Langdon wanted
to disengage, tell himself he was lost in some grotesque nightmare, soon to
wake up in a world that made sense.
This must be a
lie! one of the cardinals yelled.
I will not
believe it! another protested. His Holiness was as devout a man as ever
lived!
It was Mortati
who spoke next, his voice thin with devastation. My friends. What the
camerlegno says is true. Every cardinal in the chapel spun as though Mortati
had just shouted an obscenity. The Pope indeed fathered a child.
The cardinals
blanched with dread.
The camerlegno
looked stunned. You knew ? But . . . how could you possibly know this?
Mortati sighed.
When His Holiness was elected . . . I was the Devils Advocate.
There was a
communal gasp.
Langdon
understood. This meant the information was probably true. The infamous Devils
Advocate was the authority when it came to scandalous information inside the
Vatican. Skeletons in a Popes closet were dangerous, and prior to elections,
secret inquiries into a candidates background were carried out by a lone
cardinal who served as the Devils Advocatethat individual responsible for
unearthing reasons why the eligible cardinals should not become Pope. The
Devils Advocate was appointed in advance by the reigning Pope in preparation
for his own death. The Devils Advocate was never supposed to reveal his
identity. Ever.
I was the
Devils Advocate, Mortati repeated. That is how I found out.
Mouths dropped.
Apparently tonight was a night when all the rules were going out the window.
The camerlegno
felt his heart filling with rage. And you . . . told no one ?
I confronted His
Holiness, Mortati said. And he confessed. He explained the entire story and
asked only that I let my heart guide my decision as to whether or not to reveal
his secret.
And your heart
told you to bury the information?
He was the
runaway favorite for the papacy. People loved him. The scandal would have hurt
the church deeply.
But he fathered
a child ! He broke his sacred vow of celibacy! The camerlegno was screaming
now. He could hear his mothers voice. A promise to God is the most important
promise of all. Never break a promise to God. The Pope broke his vow!
Mortati looked
delirious with angst. Carlo, his love . . . was chaste. He had broken no vow.
He didnt explain it to you?
Explain what?
The camerlegno remembered running out of the Popes office while the Pope was
calling to him. Let me explain!
Slowly, sadly,
Mortati let the tale unfold. Many years ago, the Pope, when he was still just a
priest, had fallen in love with a young nun. Both of them had taken vows of
celibacy and never even considered breaking their covenant with God. Still, as
they fell deeper in love, although they could resist the temptations of the
flesh, they both found themselves longing for something they never expectedto
participate in Gods ultimate miracle of creationa child. Their child. The
yearning, especially in her, became overwhelming. Still, God came first. A year
later, when the frustration had reached almost unbearable proportions, she came
to him in a whirl of excitement. She had just read an article about a new
miracle of sciencea process by which two people, without ever having sexual
relations, could have a child. She sensed this was a sign from God. The priest
could see the happiness in her eyes and agreed. A year later she had a child
through the miracle of artificial insemination . . .
This cannot . .
. be true, the camerlegno said, panicked, hoping it was the morphine washing
over his senses. Certainly he was hearing things.
Mortati now had
tears in his eyes. Carlo, this is why His Holiness has always had an affection
for the sciences. He felt he owed a debt to science. Science let him experience
the joys of fatherhood without breaking his vow of celibacy. His Holiness told
me he had no regrets except onethat his advancing stature in the church
prohibited him from being with the woman he loved and seeing his infant grow
up.
Camerlegno Carlo
Ventresca felt the madness setting in again. He wanted to claw at his flesh.
How could I have known?
The Pope
committed no sin, Carlo. He was chaste.
But . . . The
camerlegno searched his anguished mind for any kind of rationale. Think of the
jeopardy . . . of his deeds. His voice felt weak. What if this whore of his
came forward? Or, heaven forbid, his child ? Imagine the shame the church would
endure.
Mortatis voice
was tremulous. The child has already come forward.
Everything
stopped.
Carlo . . . ?
Mortati crumbled. His Holinesss child . . . is you.
At that moment,
the camerlegno could feel the fire of faith dim in his heart. He stood
trembling on the altar, framed by Michelangelos towering Last Judgment. He
knew he had just glimpsed hell itself. He opened his mouth to speak, but his
lips wavered, soundless.
Dont you see?
Mortati choked. That is why His Holiness came to you in the hospital in
Palermo when you were a boy. That is why he took you in and raised you. The nun
he loved was Maria . . . your mother. She left the nunnery to raise you, but
she never abandoned her strict devotion to God. When the Pope heard she had
died in an explosion and that you, his son, had miraculously survived . . . he
swore to God he would never leave you alone again. Carlo, your parents were
both virgins. They kept their vows to God. And still they found a way to bring
you into the world. You were their miraculous child.
The camerlegno
covered his ears, trying to block out the words. He stood paralyzed on the
altar. Then, with his world yanked from beneath him, he fell violently to his
knees and let out a wail of anguish.
Seconds. Minutes.
Hours.
Time seemed to
have lost all meaning inside the four walls of the chapel. Vittoria felt
herself slowly breaking free of the paralysis that seemed to have gripped them
all. She let go of Langdons hand and began moving through the crowd of
cardinals. The chapel door seemed miles away, and she felt like she was moving
underwater . . . slow motion.
As she maneuvered
through the robes, her motion seemed to pull others from their trance. Some of
the cardinals began to pray. Others wept. Some turned to watch her go, their
blank expressions turning slowly to a foreboding cognition as she moved toward
the door. She had almost reached the back of the crowd when a hand caught her
arm. The touch was frail but resolute. She turned, face to face with a wizened
cardinal. His visage was clouded by fear.
No, the man
whispered. You cannot.
Vittoria stared,
incredulous.
Another cardinal
was at her side now. We must think before we act.
And another. The
pain this could cause . . .
Vittoria was
surrounded. She looked at them all, stunned. But these deeds here today,
tonight . . . certainly the world should know the truth.
My heart
agrees, the wizened cardinal said, still holding her arm, and yet it is a
path from which there is no return. We must consider the shattered hopes. The
cynicism. How could the people ever trust again?
Suddenly, more
cardinals seemed to be blocking her way. There was a wall of black robes before
her. Listen to the people in the square, one said. What will this do to
their hearts? We must exercise prudence.
We need time to
think and pray, another said. We must act with foresight. The repercussions
of this . . .
He killed my
father! Vittoria said. He killed his own father!
Im certain he
will pay for his sins, the cardinal holding her arm said sadly.
Vittoria was
certain too, and she intended to ensure he paid. She tried to push toward the
door again, but the cardinals huddled closer, their faces frightened.
What are you
going to do? she exclaimed. Kill me?
The old men
blanched, and Vittoria immediately regretted her words. She could see these men
were gentle souls. They had seen enough violence tonight. They meant no threat.
They were simply trapped. Scared. Trying to get their bearings.
I want . . .
the wizened cardinal said, . . . to do what is right.
Then you will
let her out, a deep voice declared behind her. The words were calm but
absolute. Robert Langdon arrived at her side, and she felt his hand take hers.
Ms. Vetra and I are leaving this chapel. Right now.
Faltering,
hesitant, the cardinals began to step aside.
Wait! It was
Mortati. He moved toward them now, down the center aisle, leaving the
camerlegno alone and defeated on the altar. Mortati looked older all of a
sudden, wearied beyond his years. His motion was burdened with shame. He
arrived, putting a hand on Langdons shoulder and one on Vittorias as well. Vittoria
felt sincerity in his touch. The mans eyes were more tearful now.
Of course you
are free to go, Mortati said. Of course. The man paused, his grief almost
tangible. I ask only this . . . He stared down at his feet a long moment then
back up at Vittoria and Langdon. Let me do it. I will go into the square right
now and find a way. I will tell them. I dont know how . . . but I will find a
way. The churchs confession should come from within. Our failures should be
our own to expose.
Mortati turned
sadly back toward the altar. Carlo, you have brought this church to a
disastrous juncture. He paused, looking around. The altar was bare.
There was a
rustle of cloth down the side aisle, and the door clicked shut.
The camerlegno
was gone.
134
Camerlegno
Ventrescas white robe billowed as he moved down the hallway away from the
Sistine Chapel. The Swiss Guards had seemed perplexed when he emerged all alone
from the chapel and told them he needed a moment of solitude. But they had
obeyed, letting him go.
Now as he rounded
the corner and left their sight, the camerlegno felt a maelstrom of emotions
like nothing he thought possible in human experience. He had poisoned the man
he called Holy Father, the man who addressed him as my son. The camerlegno
had always believed the words father and son were religious tradition, but
now he knew the diabolical truththe words had been literal.
Like that fateful
night weeks ago, the camerlegno now felt himself reeling madly through the
darkness.
It was raining
the morning the Vatican staff banged on the camerlegnos door, awakening him
from a fitful sleep. The Pope, they said, was not answering his door or his
phone. The clergy were frightened. The camerlegno was the only one who could
enter the Popes chambers unannounced.
The camerlegno
entered alone to find the Pope, as he was the night before, twisted and dead in
his bed. His Holinesss face looked like that of Satan. His tongue black like
death. The Devil himself had been sleeping in the Popes bed.
The camerlegno
felt no remorse. God had spoken.
Nobody would see
the treachery . . . not yet. That would come later.
He announced the
terrible newsHis Holiness was dead of a stroke. Then the camerlegno prepared
for conclave.
Mother Marias
voice was whispering in his ear. Never break a promise to God.
I hear you,
Mother, he replied. It is a faithless world. They need to be brought back to
the path of righteousness. Horror and Hope. It is the only way.
Yes, she said.
If not you . . . then who? Who will lead the church out of darkness?
Certainly not one
of the preferiti. They were old . . . walking death . . . liberals who would
follow the Pope, endorsing science in his memory, seeking modern followers by
abandoning the ancient ways. Old men desperately behind the times, pathetically
pretending they were not. They would fail, of course. The churchs strength was
its tradition, not its transience. The whole world was transitory. The church
did not need to change, it simply needed to remind the world it was relevant!
Evil lives! God will overcome!
The church needed
a leader. Old men do not inspire! Jesus inspired! Young, vibrant, powerful . .
. Miraculous.
Enjoy your tea,
the camerlegno told the four preferiti, leaving them in the Popes private
library before conclave. Your guide will be here soon.
The preferiti
thanked him, all abuzz that they had been offered a chance to enter the famed
Passetto. Most uncommon! The camerlegno, before leaving them, had unlocked the
door to the Passetto, and exactly on schedule, the door had opened, and a
foreign looking priest with a torch had ushered the excited preferiti in.
The men had never
come out.
They will be the
Horror. I will be the Hope.
No . . . I am the
horror.
The camerlegno
staggered now through the darkness of St. Peters Basilica. Somehow, through
the insanity and guilt, through the images of his father, through the pain and
revelation, even through the pull of the morphine . . . he had found a
brilliant clarity. A sense of destiny. I know my purpose, he thought, awed by
the lucidity of it.
From the
beginning, nothing tonight had gone exactly as he had planned. Unforeseen
obstacles had presented themselves, but the camerlegno had adapted, making bold
adjustments. Still, he had never imagined tonight would end this way, and yet
now he saw the preordained majesty of it.
It could end no
other way.
Oh, what terror
he had felt in the Sistine Chapel, wondering if God had forsaken him! Oh, what
deeds He had ordained! He had fallen to his knees, awash with doubt, his ears
straining for the voice of God but hearing only silence. He had begged for a
sign. Guidance. Direction. Was this Gods will? The church destroyed by scandal
and abomination? No! God was the one who had willed the camerlegno to act!
Hadnt He?
Then he had seen
it. Sitting on the altar. A sign. Divine communicationsomething ordinary seen
in an extraordinary light. The crucifix. Humble, wooden. Jesus on the cross. In
that moment, it had all come clear . . . the camerlegno was not alone. He would
never be alone.
This was His will
. . . His meaning.
God had always
asked great sacrifice of those he loved most. Why had the camerlegno been so
slow to understand? Was he too fearful? Too humble? It made no difference. God
had found a way. The camerlegno even understood now why Robert Langdon had been
saved. It was to bring the truth. To compel this ending.
This was the sole
path to the churchs salvation!
The camerlegno
felt like he was floating as he descended into the Niche of the Palliums. The
surge of morphine seemed relentless now, but he knew God was guiding him.
In the distance,
he could hear the cardinals clamoring in confusion as they poured from the
chapel, yelling commands to the Swiss Guard.
But they would
never find him. Not in time.
The camerlegno
felt himself drawn . . . faster . . . descending the stairs into the sunken
area where the ninety nine oil lamps shone brightly. God was returning him to
Holy Ground. The camerlegno moved toward the grate covering the hole that led
down to the Necropolis. The Necropolis is where this night would end. In the
sacred darkness below. He lifted an oil lamp, preparing to descend.
But as he moved
across the Niche, the camerlegno paused. Something about this felt wrong. How
did this serve God? A solitary and silent end? Jesus had suffered before the
eyes of the entire world. Surely this could not be Gods will! The camerlegno
listened for the voice of his God, but heard only the blurring buzz of drugs.
Carlo. It was
his mother. God has plans for you.
Bewildered, the
camerlegno kept moving.
Then, without
warning, God arrived.
The camerlegno
stopped short, staring. The light of the ninety nine oil lanterns had thrown
the camerlegnos shadow on the marble wall beside him. Giant and fearful. A
hazy form surrounded by golden light. With flames flickering all around him,
the camerlegno looked like an angel ascending to heaven. He stood a moment,
raising his arms to his sides, watching his own image. Then he turned, looking
back up the stairs.
Gods meaning was
clear.
Three minutes had
passed in the chaotic hallways outside the Sistine Chapel, and still nobody
could locate the camerlegno. It was as if the man had been swallowed up by the
night. Mortati was about to demand a full scale search of Vatican City when a
roar of jubilation erupted outside in St. Peters Square. The spontaneous
celebration of the crowd was tumultuous. The cardinals all exchanged startled
looks.
Mortati closed
his eyes. God help us.
For the second
time that evening, the College of Cardinals flooded onto St. Peters Square.
Langdon and Vittoria were swept up in the jostling crowd of cardinals, and they
too emerged into the night air. The media lights and cameras were all pivoted
toward the basilica. And there, having just stepped onto the sacred Papal
Balcony located in the exact center of the towering façade, Camerlegno
Carlo Ventresca stood with his arms raised to the heavens. Even far away, he
looked like purity incarnate. A figurine. Dressed in white. Flooded with light.
The energy in the
square seemed to grow like a cresting wave, and all at once the Swiss Guard
barriers gave way. The masses streamed toward the basilica in a euphoric
torrent of humanity. The onslaught rushed forwardpeople crying, singing, media
cameras flashing. Pandemonium. As the people flooded in around the front of the
basilica, the chaos intensified, until it seemed nothing could stop it.
And then
something did.
High above, the
camerlegno made the smallest of gestures. He folded his hands before him. Then
he bowed his head in silent prayer. One by one, then dozens by dozens, then
hundreds by hundreds, the people bowed their heads along with him.
The square fell
silent . . . as if a spell had been cast.
In his mind,
swirling and distant now, the camerlegnos prayers were a torrent of hopes and
sorrows . . . forgive me, Father . . . Mother . . . full of grace . . . you are
the church . . . may you understand this sacrifice of your only begotten son.
Oh, my Jesus . .
. save us from the fires of hell . . . take all souls to heaven, especially,
those most in need of thy mercy . . .
The camerlegno
did not open his eyes to see the throngs below him, the television cameras, the
whole world watching. He could feel it in his soul. Even in his anguish, the
unity of the moment was intoxicating. It was as if a connective web had shot
out in all directions around the globe. In front of televisions, at home, and
in cars, the world prayed as one. Like synapses of a giant heart all firing in
tandem, the people reached for God, in dozens of languages, in hundreds of
countries. The words they whispered were newborn and yet as familiar to them as
their own voices . . . ancient truths . . . imprinted on the soul.
The consonance
felt eternal.
As the silence
lifted, the joyous strains of singing began to rise again.
He knew the
moment had come.
Most Holy
Trinity, I offer Thee the most precious Body, Blood, Soul . . . in reparation
for the outrages, sacrileges, and indifferences . . .
The camerlegno
already felt the physical pain setting in. It was spreading across his skin
like a plague, making him want to claw at his flesh like he had weeks ago when
God had first come to him. Do not forget what pain Jesus endured. He could
taste the fumes now in his throat. Not even the morphine could dull the bite.
My work here is
done.
The Horror was
his. The Hope was theirs.
In the Niche of
the Palliums, the camerlegno had followed Gods will and anointed his body. His
hair. His face. His linen robe. His flesh. He was soaking now with the sacred,
vitreous oils from the lamps. They smelled sweet like his mother, but they
burned. His would be a merciful ascension. Miraculous and swift. And he would
leave behind not scandal . . . but a new strength and wonder.
He slipped his
hand into the pocket of his robe and fingered the small, golden lighter he had
brought with him from the Pallium incendiario.
He whispered a
verse from Judgments. And when the flame went up toward heaven, the angel of
the Lord ascended in the flame.
He positioned his
thumb.
They were singing
in St. Peters Square . . .
The vision the
world witnessed no one would ever forget.
High above on the
balcony, like a soul tearing free of its corporeal restrains, a luminous pyre
of flame erupted from the camerlegnos center. The fire shot upward, engulfing
his entire body instantly. He did not scream. He raised his arms over his head
and looked toward heaven. The conflagration roared around him, entirely
shrouding his body in a column of light. It raged for what seemed like an
eternity, the whole world bearing witness. The light flared brighter and
brighter. Then, gradually, the flames dissipated. The camerlegno was gone.
Whether he had collapsed behind the balustrade or evaporated into thin air was
impossible to tell. All that was left was a cloud of smoke spiraling skyward
over Vatican City.
135
Dawn came late to
Rome.
An early
rainstorm had washed the crowds from St. Peters Square. The media stayed on,
huddling under umbrellas and in vans, commentating on the evenings events.
Across the world, churches overflowed. It was a time of reflection and
discussion . . . in all religions. Questions abounded, and yet the answers
seemed only to bring deeper questions. Thus far, the Vatican had remained silent,
issuing no statement whatsoever.
Deep in the
Vatican Grottoes, Cardinal Mortati knelt alone before the open sarcophagus. He
reached in and closed the old mans blackened mouth. His Holiness looked
peaceful now. In quiet repose for eternity.
At Mortatis feet
was a golden urn, heavy with ashes. Mortati had gathered the ashes himself and
brought them here. A chance for forgiveness, he said to His Holiness, laying
the urn inside the sarcophagus at the Popes side. No love is greater than that
of a father for His son. Mortati tucked the urn out of sight beneath the papal
robes. He knew this sacred grotto was reserved exclusively for the relics of
Popes, but somehow Mortati sensed this was appropriate.
Signore?
someone said, entering the grottoes. It was Lieutenant Chartrand. He was
accompanied by three Swiss Guards. They are ready for you in conclave.
Mortati nodded.
In a moment. He gazed one last time into the sarcophagus before him, and then
stood up. He turned to the guards. It is time for His Holiness to have the
peace he has earned.
The guards came
forward and with enormous effort slid the lid of the Popes sarcophagus back
into place. It thundered shut with finality.
Mortati was alone
as he crossed the Borgia Courtyard toward the Sistine Chapel. A damp breeze
tossed his robe. A fellow cardinal emerged from the Apostolic Palace and strode
beside him.
May I have the
honor of escorting you to conclave, signore?
The honor is
mine.
Signore, the
cardinal said, looking troubled. The college owes you an apology for last
night. We were blinded by
Please, Mortati
replied. Our minds sometimes see what our hearts wish were true.
The cardinal was
silent a long time. Finally he spoke. Have you been told? You are no longer
our Great Elector.
Mortati smiled.
Yes. I thank God for small blessings.
The college
insisted you be eligible.
It seems charity
is not dead in the church.
You are a wise
man. You would lead us well.
I am an old man.
I would lead you briefly.
They both laughed.
As they reached
the end of the Borgia Courtyard, the cardinal hesitated. He turned to Mortati
with a troubled mystification, as if the precarious awe of the night before had
slipped back into his heart.
Were you aware,
the cardinal whispered, that we found no remains on the balcony?
Mortati smiled.
Perhaps the rain washed them away.
The man looked to
the stormy heavens. Yes, perhaps . . .
136
The midmorning
sky still hung heavy with clouds as the Sistine Chapels chimney gave up its
first faint puffs of white smoke. The pearly wisps curled upward toward the
firmament and slowly dissipated.
Far below, in St.
Peters Square, reporter Gunther Glick watched in reflective silence. The final
chapter . . .
Chinita Macri
approached him from behind and hoisted her camera onto her shoulder. Its
time, she said.
Glick nodded
dolefully. He turned toward her, smoothed his hair, and took a deep breath. My
last transmission, he thought. A small crowd had gathered around them to watch.
Live in sixty
seconds, Macri announced.
Glick glanced
over his shoulder at the roof of the Sistine Chapel behind him. Can you get
the smoke?
Macri patiently
nodded. I know how to frame a shot, Gunther.
Glick felt dumb.
Of course she did. Macris performance behind the camera last night had
probably won her the Pulitzer. His performance, on the other hand . . . he
didnt want to think about it. He was sure the BBC would let him go; no doubt
they would have legal troubles from numerous powerful entities . . . CERN and
George Bush among them.
You look good,
Chinita patronized, looking out from behind her camera now with a hint of
concern. I wonder if I might offer you . . . She hesitated, holding her
tongue.
Some advice ?
Macri sighed. I
was only going to say that theres no need to go out with a bang.
I know, he
said. You want a straight wrap.
The straightest
in history. Im trusting you.
Glick smiled. A
straight wrap? Is she crazy? A story like last nights deserved so much more. A
twist. A final bombshell. An unforeseen revelation of shocking truth.
Fortunately,
Glick had just the ticket waiting in the wings . . .
* * *
Youre on in . .
. five . . . four . . . three . . .
As Chinita Macri
looked through her camera, she sensed a sly glint in Glicks eye. I was insane
to let him do this, she thought. What was I thinking?
But the moment
for second thoughts had passed. They were on.
Live from
Vatican City, Glick announced on cue, this is Gunther Glick reporting. He
gave the camera a solemn stare as the white smoke rose behind him from the
Sistine Chapel. Ladies and gentlemen, it is now official. Cardinal Saverio
Mortati, a seventy nine year old progressive, has just been elected the next
Pope of Vatican City. Although an unlikely candidate, Mortati was chosen by an
unprecedented unanimous vote by the College of Cardinals.
As Macri watched
him, she began to breathe easier. Glick seemed surprisingly professional today.
Even austere. For the first time in his life, Glick actually looked and sounded
somewhat like a newsman.
And as we
reported earlier, Glick added, his voice intensifying perfectly, the Vatican
has yet to offer any statement whatsoever regarding the miraculous events of
last night.
Good. Chinitas
nervousness waned some more. So far, so good.
Glicks
expression grew sorrowful now. And though last night was a night of wonder, it
was also a night of tragedy. Four cardinals perished in yesterdays conflict,
along with Commander Olivetti and Captain Rocher of the Swiss Guard, both in
the line of duty. Other casualties include Leonardo Vetra, the renowned CERN
physicist and pioneer of antimatter technology, as well as Maximilian Kohler,
the director of CERN, who apparently came to Vatican City in an effort to help
but reportedly passed away in the process. No official report has been issued
yet on Mr. Kohlers death, but conjecture is that he died due to complications
brought on by a long time illness.
Macri nodded. The
report was going perfectly. Just as they discussed.
And in the wake
of the explosion in the sky over the Vatican last night, CERNs antimatter
technology has become the hot topic among scientists, sparking excitement and
controversy. A statement read by Mr. Kohlers assistant in Geneva, Sylvie
Baudeloque, announced this morning that CERNs board of directors, although
enthusiastic about antimatters potential, are suspending all research and
licensing until further inquiries into its safety can be examined.
Excellent, Macri
thought. Home stretch.
Notably absent from
our screens tonight, Glick reported, is the face of Robert Langdon, the
Harvard professor who came to Vatican City yesterday to lend his expertise
during this Illuminati crisis. Although originally thought to have perished in
the antimatter blast, we now have reports that Langdon was spotted in St.
Peters Square after the explosion. How he got there is still speculation,
although a spokesman from Hospital Tiberina claims that Mr. Langdon fell out of
the sky into the Tiber River shortly after midnight, was treated, and
released. Glick arched his eyebrows at the camera. And if that is true . . .
it was indeed a night of miracles.
Perfect ending!
Macri felt herself smiling broadly. Flawless wrap! Now sign off!
But Glick did not
sign off. Instead, he paused a moment and then stepped toward the camera. He
had a mysterious smile. But before we sign off . . .
No!
. . . I would
like to invite a guest to join me.
Chinitas hands
froze on the camera. A guest? What the hell is he doing? What guest! Sign off!
But she knew it was too late. Glick had committed.
The man I am
about to introduce, Glick said, is an American . . . a renowned scholar.
Chinita
hesitated. She held her breath as Glick turned to the small crowd around them
and motioned for his guest to step forward. Macri said a silent prayer. Please
tell me he somehow located Robert Langdon . . . and not some Illuminati
conspiracy nutcase.
But as Glicks
guest stepped out, Macris heart sank. It was not Robert Langdon at all. It was
a bald man in blue jeans and a flannel shirt. He had a cane and thick glasses.
Macri felt terror. Nutcase!
May I
introduce, Glick announced, the renowned Vatican scholar from De Paul
University in Chicago. Dr. Joseph Vanek.
Macri now
hesitated as the man joined Glick on camera. This was no conspiracy buff; Macri
had actually heard of this guy.
Dr. Vanek,
Glick said. You have some rather startling information to share with us regarding
last nights conclave.
I do indeed,
Vanek said. After a night of such surprises, it is hard to imagine there are
any surprises left . . . and yet . . . He paused.
Glick smiled.
And yet, there is a strange twist to all this.
Vanek nodded. Yes.
As perplexing as this will sound, I believe the College of Cardinals
unknowingly elected two Popes this weekend.
Macri almost
dropped the camera.
Glick gave a
shrewd smile. Two Popes, you say?
The scholar
nodded. Yes. I should first say that I have spent my life studying the laws of
papal election. Conclave judicature is extremely complex, and much of it is now
forgotten or ignored as obsolete. Even the Great Elector is probably not aware
of what I am about to reveal. Nonetheless . . . according to the ancient
forgotten laws put forth in the Romano Pontifici Eligendo, Numero 63 . . .
balloting is not the only method by which a Pope can be elected. There is
another, more divine method. It is called 'Acclamation by Adoration.' He
paused. And it happened last night.
Glick gave his
guest a riveted look. Please, go on.
As you may
recall, the scholar continued, last night, when Camerlegno Carlo Ventresca
was standing on the roof of the basilica, all of the cardinals below began
calling out his name in unison.
Yes, I recall.
With that image
in mind, allow me to read verbatim from the ancient electoral laws. The man
pulled some papers from his pocket, cleared his throat, and began to read.
'Election by Adoration occurs when . . . all the cardinals, as if by
inspiration of the Holy Spirit, freely and spontaneously, unanimously and
aloud, proclaim one individuals name.'
Glick smiled. So
youre saying that last night, when the cardinals chanted Carlo Ventrescas
name together, they actually elected him Pope?
They did indeed.
Furthermore, the law states that Election by Adoration supercedes the cardinal
eligibility requirement and permits any clergymanordained priest, bishop, or
cardinalto be elected. So, as you can see, the camerlegno was perfectly
qualified for papal election by this procedure. Dr. Vanek looked directly into
the camera now. The facts are these . . . Carlo Ventresca was elected Pope
last night. He reigned for just under seventeen minutes. And had he not
ascended miraculously into a pillar of fire, he would now be buried in the
Vatican Grottoes along with the other Popes.
Thank you,
doctor. Glick turned to Macri with a mischievous wink. Most illuminating . .
.
137
High atop the
steps of the Roman Coliseum, Vittoria laughed and called down to him. Robert,
hurry up! I knew I should have married a younger man! Her smile was magic.
He struggled to
keep up, but his legs felt like stone. Wait, he begged. Please . . .
There was a
pounding in his head.
Robert Langdon
awoke with a start.
Darkness.
He lay still for
a long time in the foreign softness of the bed, unable to figure out where he
was. The pillows were goose down, oversized and wonderful. The air smelled of
potpourri. Across the room, two glass doors stood open to a lavish balcony,
where a light breeze played beneath a glistening cloud swept moon. Langdon
tried to remember how he had gotten here . . . and where here was.
Surreal wisps of
memory sifted back into his consciousness . . .
A pyre of mystical
fire . . . an angel materializing from out of the crowd . . . her soft hand
taking his and leading him into the night . . . guiding his exhausted, battered
body through the streets . . . leading him here . . . to this suite . . .
propping him half sleeping in a scalding hot shower . . . leading him to this
bed . . . and watching over him as he fell asleep like the dead.
In the dimness
now, Langdon could see a second bed. The sheets were tousled, but the bed was
empty. From one of the adjoining rooms, he could hear the faint, steady stream
of a shower.
As he gazed at
Vittorias bed, he saw a boldly embroidered seal on her pillowcase. It read:
HOTEL BERNINI. Langdon had to smile. Vittoria had chosen well. Old World luxury
overlooking Berninis Triton Fountain . . . there was no more fitting hotel in
all of Rome.
As Langdon lay
there, he heard a pounding and realized what had awoken him. Someone was
knocking at the door. It grew louder.
Confused, Langdon
got up. Nobody knows were here, he thought, feeling a trace of uneasiness.
Donning a luxuriant Hotel Bernini robe, he walked out of the bedroom into the
suites foyer. He stood a moment at the heavy oak door, and then pulled it
open.
A powerful man
adorned in lavish purple and yellow regalia stared down at him. I am
Lieutenant Chartrand, the man said. Vatican Swiss Guard.
Langdon knew full
well who he was. How . . . how did you find us?
I saw you leave
the square last night. I followed you. Im relieved youre still here.
Langdon felt a
sudden anxiety, wondering if the cardinals had sent Chartrand to escort Langdon
and Vittoria back to Vatican City. After all, the two of them were the only two
people beyond the College of Cardinals who knew the truth. They were a
liability.
His Holiness
asked me to give this to you, Chartrand said, handing over an envelope sealed
with the Vatican signet. Langdon opened the envelope and read the handwritten
note.
Mr. Langdon and
Ms. Vetra,
Although it is my
profound desire to request your discretion in the matters of the past 24 hours,
I cannot possibly presume to ask more of you than you have already given. I
therefore humbly retreat hoping only that you let your hearts guide you in this
matter. The world seems a better place today . . . maybe the questions are more
powerful than the answers.
My door is always
open,
His Holiness,
Saverio Mortati
Langdon read the
message twice. The College of Cardinals had obviously chosen a noble and
munificent leader.
Before Langdon
could say anything, Chartrand produced a small package. A token of thanks from
His Holiness.
Langdon took the
package. It was heavy, wrapped in brown paper.
By his decree,
Chartrand said, this artifact is on indefinite loan to you from the sacred
Papal Vault. His Holiness asks only that in your last will and testament you
ensure it finds its way home.
Langdon opened
the package and was struck speechless. It was the brand. The Illuminati
Diamond.
Chartrand smiled.
May peace be with you. He turned to go.
Thank . . .
you, Langdon managed, his hands trembling around the precious gift.
The guard
hesitated in the hall. Mr. Langdon, may I ask you something?
Of course.
My fellow guards
and I are curious. Those last few minutes . . . what happened up there in the
helicopter?
Langdon felt a
rush of anxiety. He knew this moment was comingthe moment of truth. He and
Vittoria had talked about it last night as they stole away from St. Peters
Square. And they had made their decision. Even before the Popes note.
Vittorias father
had dreamed his antimatter discovery would bring about a spiritual awakening.
Last nights events were no doubt not what he had intended, but the undeniable
fact remained . . . at this moment, around the world, people were considering
God in ways they never had before. How long the magic would last, Langdon and
Vittoria had no idea, but they knew they could never shatter the wonderment
with scandal and doubt. The Lord works in strange ways, Langdon told himself,
wondering wryly if maybe . . . just maybe . . . yesterday had been Gods will
after all.
Mr. Langdon?
Chartrand repeated. I was asking about the helicopter?
Langdon gave a
sad smile. Yes, I know . . . He felt the words flow not from his mind but
from his heart. Perhaps it was the shock of the fall . . . but my memory . . .
it seems . . . its all a blur . . .
Chartrand
slumped. You remember nothing ?
Langdon sighed.
I fear it will remain a mystery forever.
When Robert
Langdon returned to the bedroom, the vision awaiting him stopped him in his
tracks. Vittoria stood on the balcony, her back to the railing, her eyes gazing
deeply at him. She looked like a heavenly apparition . . . a radiant silhouette
with the moon behind her. She could have been a Roman goddess, enshrouded in
her white terrycloth robe, the drawstring cinched tight, accentuating her
slender curves. Behind her, a pale mist hung like a halo over Berninis Triton
Fountain.
Langdon felt
wildly drawn to her . . . more than to any woman in his life. Quietly, he lay
the Illuminati Diamond and the Popes letter on his bedside table. There would
be time to explain all of that later. He went to her on the balcony.
Vittoria looked
happy to see him. Youre awake, she said, in a coy whisper. Finally.
Langdon smiled.
Long day.
She ran a hand
through her luxuriant hair, the neck of her robe falling open slightly. And
now . . . I suppose you want your reward.
The comment took
Langdon off guard. Im . . . sorry?
Were adults,
Robert. You can admit it. You feel a longing. I see it in your eyes. A deep,
carnal hunger. She smiled. I feel it too. And that craving is about to be
satisfied.
It is? He felt
emboldened and took a step toward her.
Completely. She
held up a room service menu. I ordered everything theyve got.
The feast was
sumptuous. They dined together by moonlight . . . sitting on their balcony . .
. savoring frisée, truffles, and risotto. They sipped Dolcetto wine and
talked late into the night.
Langdon did not
need to be a symbologist to read the signs Vittoria was sending him. During
dessert of boysenberry cream with savoiardi and steaming Romcaffé,
Vittoria pressed her bare legs against his beneath the table and fixed him with
a sultry stare. She seemed to be willing him to set down his fork and carry her
off in his arms.
But Langdon did
nothing. He remained the perfect gentleman. Two can play at this game, he
thought, hiding a roguish smile.
When all the food
was eaten, Langdon retired to the edge of his bed where he sat alone, turning
the Illuminati Diamond over and over in his hands, making repeated comments
about the miracle of its symmetry. Vittoria stared at him, her confusion
growing to an obvious frustration.
You find that
ambigram terribly interesting, dont you? she demanded.
Langdon nodded.
Mesmerizing.
Would you say
its the most interesting thing in this room?
Langdon scratched
his head, making a show of pondering it. Well, there is one thing that
interests me more.
She smiled and
took a step toward him. That being?
How you
disproved that Einstein theory using tuna fish.
Vittoria threw up
her hands. Dio mìo! Enough with the tuna fish! Dont play with me, Im
warning you.
Langdon grinned.
Maybe for your next experiment, you could study flounders and prove the earth
is flat.
Vittoria was
steaming now, but the first faint hints of an exasperated smile appeared on her
lips. For your information, professor, my next experiment will make scientific
history. I plan to prove neutrinos have mass.
Neutrinos have
mass ? Langdon shot her a stunned look. I didnt even know they were
Catholic!
With one fluid
motion, she was on him, pinning him down. I hope you believe in life after
death, Robert Langdon. Vittoria was laughing as she straddled him, her hands
holding him down, her eyes ablaze with a mischievous fire.
Actually, he
choked, laughing harder now, Ive always had trouble picturing anything beyond
this world.
Really? So
youve never had a religious experience? A perfect moment of glorious rapture?
Langdon shook his
head. No, and I seriously doubt Im the kind of man who could ever have a
religious experience.